Women, Islam
Women, Islam
Women, Islam
VOLUME 8
The titles published in this series are listed at the end of this volume.
By
LEIDEN BOSTON
2009
ISSN 1572-5618
ISBN 978 90 04 17144 2
Copyright 2009 by Koninklijke Brill NV, Leiden, The Netherlands.
Koninklijke Brill NV incorporates the imprints Brill, Hotei Publishing,
IDC Publishers, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers and VSP.
All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced, translated,
stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, electronic,
mechanical, photocopying, recording or otherwise, without prior written permission
from the publisher.
Authorization to photocopy items for internal or personal use is granted by
Koninklijke Brill NV provided that the appropriate fees are paid directly to
The Copyright Clearance Center, 222 Rosewood Drive, Suite 910,
Danvers, MA 01923, USA.
Fees are subject to change.
PRINTED IN THE NETHERLANDS
CONTENTS
Abbreviations ........................................................................................................... xi
Introduction Theory and Reality of Human Rights ............................................1
I. Framework, Goals and Structure ........................................................................1
II. On Methodology ................................................................................................7
A. Feminist Legal Methods...............................................................................7
B. Applying Feminist Methods to Human Rights Law ....................................8
C. Whose Right and Who is Right? .........................................................11
Chapter I Where and What are Womens Rights for
One and for the Other ........................................................................................13
I. International Law, Human Rights, and the Status of Women ..........................13
A. Introductory Remarks ................................................................................13
B. Human Rights Law and the Status of Women:
Dening Womens Needs as Human Rights ..............................................15
1. A Historical Perspective .......................................................................15
2. Where and What are Womens Human Rights .....................................19
3. Human Rights of Women v. Womens Rights: Feminist
Critiques of the Way Human Rights Law Addresses
Womens Interests.................................................................................41
C. Conclusions ................................................................................................43
II. Women in Islam and Islamic Law ....................................................................44
A. Introductory Notes .....................................................................................44
B. Terminological Clarications .....................................................................45
C. Islamic Law: A Search for the Divine Will ................................................46
1. General Clarications ............................................................................46
2. Islamic Law in its Traditional Form ......................................................49
D. Status of Women under Islamic Law: Between Tradition
and Modernity ............................................................................................56
1. General Differences between Approaches ............................................57
2. Right to Marry and Choose a Spouse ....................................................60
3. Rights and Obligations of Spouses during the Marriage.......................63
4. Dissolution of Marriage.........................................................................67
5. Custody and Guardianship of Children.................................................69
6. Polygamy...............................................................................................70
7. Conclusions ...........................................................................................71
III. Islamic Law as a Process ................................................................................72
IV. Concluding Remarks .......................................................................................74
viii
CONTENTS
CONTENTS
ix
Chapter IV
ABBREVIATIONS
AFDI
BYbIL
CEDAW
CRC
EuCHR
EuComHR
EuCtHR
EuGRZ
Fn
HRLJ
ICCPR
ICESCR
ICJ
ILC
ILM
Int.-Am.CHR
Int.-Am.CtHR
LoNOJ
NILR
RdC
R.G.D.I.P.
UN
UNTS
YbEuCHR
YbILC
INTRODUCTION
One very illustrative example of this vision of international law, although expressed in a
more delicate form, is the book by GOLDSMITH, Jack L., POSNER, Eric A. The Limits of
International Law, Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2005. See also the discussion of this
book in various articles resulting from a symposium and published in vol. 34 (2006) of the
Georgia Journal of International and Comparative Law.
INTRODUCTION
ways in which international law operates being still able to achieve compliance.
Unfortunately, these other ways are very timid, often invisible to an external
observer, and of questionable effectiveness in certain situations. Thus, although one
might admit importance of these more subtle ways in which international law operates, one is nevertheless disappointed by many ways in which powerful States are still
able to escape compliance with rules of international law and impose their will on the
rest of the world.
This contradiction or set of contradictions and problems is also reected and
appears even more visible in the eld of human rights law. Nowadays international
human rights law covers a very wide area, if not all, areas of human life. Moreover,
there is not only a great number of international human rights instruments formulating
guarantees of a multitude of rights, but also an extensive machinery for the protection
and enforcement of these rights. Despite all these developments, our world is very far
from a situation where human rights violations would represent an exception.
One of the most important problems or difculties which international human
rights law is facing relates to the issues of enforcement, implementation and respect
of the multitude of human rights formulated in various international instruments.
Although, for different reasons, States accept a variety of human rights obligations,
they are usually not really concerned with the respect for human rights or are not able
to ensure respect for human rights. Even when States undertake certain actions in
response to human rights violations, the primary motivation behind these actions is
not the concern with human rights themselves but other, more benign and egoistic
considerations. Otherwise, we might ask why States could agree on the necessity of
intervention and actually intervene, although too late and not always effectively in the
genocide in the former Yugoslavia but simply stood by and watched on the genocide
in Rwanda. Why violations of womens rights and support of terrorist activities is a
reason enough to intervene in Afghanistan and not in Saudi Arabia? As pointed out by
one author: The abyss between should and is, assumptions and analysis, is cloaked
underneath a vocabulary of virtual reality, in which ratication of a human rights
treaty is assumed to entail a commitment to human rights().2
Thus, when the issue of effectiveness and enforcement of human rights is addressed
in literature or in human rights practice, the unsuitability of States for the fulllment
of the role of protectors of human rights is readily admitted.3 Proposals for improvement of compliance with human rights norms usually address such issues as necessity for education, rising of human rights awareness and human rights activism
combined with the internal pressure on governments to pursue a human rights
friendly national and foreign policy. Although I do not question the necessity and
effectiveness of such measures, it is important to emphasize here that such measures
do not belong to the traditional legal sphere. Moreover, what is more important,
these measures do not t into the State-centered vision and structure of international
law in general and human rights law in particular. All these measures place emphasis
on individuals as an active agency. Traditional international law does not recognize
such an active role of individuals.
The compliance will thus be achieved, not because of the functioning of traditional
international law including human rights law but despite it. Furthermore, such a
pattern of compliance based on persuasion and lack of legal enforcement raises
another fundamental question, namely that of universality of human rights values as
reected in ofcial human rights instruments. No educational or awareness-raising
measures will be effective in a community which regards values reected in human
rights instruments as alien and imposed on them from outside. Moreover, taking into
account power-play inherent in realities of international law, the following question is
often raised: Is the denition of human rights standards by representatives of certain
communities (States, cultures) another way to impose the world-view of a more powerful State/culture? Is it not a new, more indirect method of achieving domination?
My reection on all these contradictions gave rise to the present research. To address
all these contradictions in a general framework of international law or human rights
law would require a very extensive research going beyond the limits of this book.
I chose therefore the form of a case-study to examine some of these contradictions in a
particular context. This will also allow us to go to the core of problems and issues and
to provide more or less concrete and practical answers to certain questions. One particular area chosen for the research is the area of womens human rights,4 because, as
will become clear later, it reects a number of problems and contradictions within
human rights law. Furthermore, issues of inclusion/exclusion, universality/diversity
are at the core of discussions surrounding issues of womens rights and interests.
In relation to human rights of women the set of problems mentioned above appears
in the following form. If one looks through international law books and more specically human rights textbooks and compilations of documents, one will discover a
signicant number of instruments dealing in one way or another with the status of
women.5 The legal signicance of these instruments varies from declarations and
resolutions to conventions adopted by the UN as well as by its specialized agencies.6
If not further specied, the expression womens human rights is used in this paper to refer
in general to any provisions of international human rights law dealing with issues relative to
women.
For a detailed overview of instruments dealing with womens human rights see: ALFREDSSON,
Gudmundur, TOMASEVSKI, Katarina, eds. A Thematic Guide to Documents on the Human Rights
of Women: Global and Regional Standards Adopted by Intergovernmental Organizations,
International Non-Governmental Organizations and Professional Associations. The Hague,
Boston, London: Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1995, XVII-434 pp.
More on nature and signicance of various instruments on human rights of women see
below: Chapter One, I.A. 1 & 2.
INTRODUCTION
7
8
9
10
11
means and ways for improvement: Why is the dialogue between Islam and human
rights more successful in the context of the CEDAW, despite the fact that contradictions
between both are apparently deeper in this area? Seen in this light the research can
contribute to the discussion taking place under the heading of cultural relativism.
Yet at another level of abstraction, the general purpose of this research may be
described as follows: Given the realities of modern international and human rights
law, namely the possibility of domination and pressure by more powerful States on the
rest of the world, the constant presence of certain (often quite signicant) degree of
self-interest and power-play in the practice of international law and human rights law
as its branch, what can we (lawyers) do to make globalization (and not domination)
and universality (of human rights and not imposition of particular values) a stronger
characteristic of modern international law/relations. In particular, what role should
available legal mechanisms play in this context (how can they be used)? Instead of
hiding behind common illusions about the nature of international law, let us face the
reality, analyze contradictions/problems as they appear in practice and use them as a
tool for directing the further development of the practice of international law in a
desired direction promoting inclusion and dialogue.
The principal thesis defended in this book is the following. A comparative analysis
of any given set of ides, in our case Islamic and human rights visions of womens
status, even if they appear to be irreconcilable, will demonstrate that, being human
creatures, they contain a number of similarities.12 For the same reason, any system of
ideas bears a potential for renewal. In order to develop a constructive interaction
between two sets of ideas, it is necessary to discover similarities between them, their
common points and initiate a dialogue on this basis. However, oftentimes, it is very
difcult to see and to admit these similarities. As a consequence, even if a dialogue is
initiated, the parties do not fully (and sometimes not at all) understand each other.
What is needed in such cases is an unbiased, fresh comparative look at both systems
and an open-minded attitude of the parties involved. I also argue that international law
in general, and human rights law in particular, if functioning adequately, provides a
unique space for such an open-minded, unbiased encounter and dialogue. However,
working methods and attitudes adopted by lawyers in modern international legal
framework are often simply inadequate, sometimes even dangerous for the promotion
of this dialogue.
Chapter One will present two apparently competing or contradictory forces which
for purposes of simplication are labeled women and Islam As far as the former is
concerned, taking into account general purposes of the research and the fact that
women were to some extent successful in bringing their demands to international law,
its presentation is framed in the following way: The Chapter starts with a general
description of human rights law and an attempt to situate it in a larger framework of
international law, its structure and processes. Then the place attributed to the interests
12
To say that Islamic law is a human creature does not mean in this context the denial or
rejection of its divine origin. For a detailed explanation see part on Islam and Islamic law
in Chapter One.
INTRODUCTION
of women by human rights law and its ways to deal with them is analyzed. Particular
attention is paid to the CEDAW and to the analysis of its provisions. Finally, as a
conclusion of this rst part of the Chapter, feminist critiques of the way the CEDAW
addresses womens needs will be presented in order to shed some light on inadequacies, drawbacks of the protection granted by the human rights law to womens interests, but also of international law framework in general. In this context, feminist
critiques appear as a continuing voice of this rst force or actor: women.
Next part of Chapter One deals with the force dened as Islam.13 In particular, the
nature and fundamental characteristics of Islamic law and attempts at its implementation and application in various parts of the world will be analyzed. The basic aim
of this part is to offer a possibility to develop a deeper and more complete understanding of the forces hiding behind the general label of Islam. It should also help
to shed later more light on the possibilities of interaction between womens human
rights and Islam.
Chapter Two will present the arena where later our two actors will meet. In terms
of international law, this Chapter will present the reservations regime in general with
all its ambiguities and contradictions. This analysis is also particularly useful as means
of understanding ways by which international law accommodates and responds to the
universality/diversity tension/dichotomy and its ways to address diversity. The two
forces, Islam and human rights law related to the status of women, which were simply
placed side by side in Chapter One will meet each other and interact in Chapter Three.
This encounter is described through analysis of participation of Muslim States in the
CEDAW. Reservations entered by these States when becoming parties to the CEDAW
and the reservations regime in general as reected in their practice are placed at the
center of the analysis of Chapter Three. The main purpose of Chapters Two and Tree
is to illustrate how the contradictions mentioned before in this introduction are
reected in the reservations regime in general and in certain aspects of application,
enforcement and implementation of womens human rights in particular. Furthermore,
different ways to deal with related problems and difculties developed in the practice
of States and bodies established for the supervision and monitoring of human rights
are also analyzed.
On the basis of this new understanding of the interaction Chapter Four will provide
some tentative suggestions about more adequate ways to deal with problems and contradictions described in Chapters Two and Three. These suggestions will concentrate
on the particular case of the participation of Muslim States in the CEDAW. However,
the overall analysis also has a much wider signicance, which will be articulated in
the concluding part. In particular, it will come back to some general ideas about the
nature of human rights law and international law and their mutual relationship.
13
Thus, the methodology chosen for this research is based on deductive analysis.
From the study of particular cases/areas more general conclusions are made. Peculiarities
of each area of analysis form basis for suggestions made at the end of the research. The
methodology of the research and the way in which its results are presented deserves
some further clarications.
II. ON METHODOLOGY
It should be kept in mind that the analysis and presentation, although not based entirely
on, are to a very large extent inspired by my understanding of feminist legal scholarship.14 This scholarship is for me a method, a guidance, not necessarily a theory. For
this reason, I will not expressly refer to it systematically. For the same reason it is
necessary to give an overview of my vision of the feminist legal scholarship and
clarify its relationship to and signicance for the analysis of the subject.
Feminist legal scholarship has been originally developed in the context of national
laws of different countries. Later its methods were also applied to human rights law
and international law more generally. They are very useful as a tool for getting a fresh,
new vision of a subject, for adopting a more constructively critical attitude towards
apparently well-regulated and resolved issues. After a short presentation of feminist
legal methods in general, their application to the area of human rights of women will
be presented.
A. Feminist Legal Methods
Feminist legal scholarship developed various methods opening a way for challenge of
existing legal structures and processes.15 Central to feminist legal methods is asking the
woman question which means inquiring by every analysis whether women have been
left out of consideration.16 This approach implies the questioning of the fundamental
14
15
16
I have to emphasize and explain MY in this phrase. It originates from the acknowledgement
of the impossibility to dene an authentic feminist scholarship, except, probably for
some very general ideas which I will attempt to identify below. I have to stress, however,
that sometimes differences between various representatives of the feminist legal scholarship
are deeper or more signicant than similarities. The following article is illustrative of this
diversity: ROMERO, Adam P. Methodological Descriptions: Feminist and Queer Legal
Theories. Book Review of Janet Halleys Split Decisions: How and Why to take a Break
from Feminism. 19 Yale Journal of Law and Feminism 2007, pp. 227258; and for
a historical perspective LACEY, Nicola. Feminist Legal Theory and the Rights of Women
in: Knop, Karen, ed. Gender and Human Rights, Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2004,
pp. 1355.
For a detailed analysis of feminist legal methods see e.g. BARLETT, Katharine T. Feminist
Legal Methods. 103 Harvard Law Review 19891990, pp. 829888.
See e.g. GOULD, Carol C. The Woman Question: Philosophy of Liberation and the
Liberation of Philosophy. In: Gould, Carol C., Wartofsky, Marx W., eds. Women and
Philosophy: Toward a Theory of Liberation. New York: Perigee Books, 1980, pp. 544;
BARLETT, loc. cit. above, fn. 15, pp. 837849.
INTRODUCTION
assumption about law and legal system as an objective and neutral construction. More
concretely this method consists of an inquiry about consequences for women of particular rules and practices, even those which appear at the rst sight as gender-neutral or
favorable to women.17 Feminist legal methods are also characterized by a more contextsituated analysis. They depart from the generalized representation of situations common
to the legal analysis in favor of more contextualized, complex and multifaceted versions.
Many feminist scholars would plead in this context for more general rules which leave
room for new readings and applications because not all readings and applications, not all
situations and contexts can reasonably be taken into account by the rule-maker.18
Feminist legal methods place emphasis in this connection on the great diversity of
human experience and the necessity to take into account competing claims, new situations and perspectives rather than attempting to force them into already existing prescribed categories.19 Sharing and articulation of various experiences of women, in
particular on a public, institutional level is also an important element of the feminist
legal methodology. It provides feminist literature with a valuable background for their
further analysis, including the asking of the woman question.20
B. Applying Feminist Methods to Human Rights Law
All feminist critiques of international law in general and of human rights law in particular,
including the issue of human rights of women, can be divided in two large groups
according to the criterion of their relationship to the object of their critiques. One
group can be described as external critiques because the critical analysis developed by
this group of authors questions the legal system itself, its ability to respond to real
needs and interests of women. Representatives of external critiques usually are close
to critical legal studies, deconstruct without offering something else as solutions.
Another group can in contrast be dened as internal feminist critiques because the
system itself is not questioned, but certain aspects of the system are criticized and
proposals for reform are made. As far as human rights law is concerned, there are very
few critiques which can be described as external critiques. The overwhelming majority of feminist authors does not question the human rights system as such, but formulate various proposals for its reformation.
The feminist literature on womens human rights which can be categorized as internal
critiques despite a multitude of approaches has one characteristic common to all its categories. This common characteristic is the distinction made between denition of womens
human rights in international law and real interests of women. This distinction is already
17
18
19
20
reected in the choice of terminology. The term womens rights is used to describe the
ideal picture of what should be womens human rights when they accommodate adequately the experience and interests of women. In contrast, as human rights of women
are described rights granted to women by modern human rights law and which are
consequently criticized for paying not enough attention to the real situation of women.21
Critiques expressed in the feminist literature on human rights law concerning
women are very different as feminist theories of law and feminist methodologies are
different. It is not easy to divide them into categories, in particular because different
theories often overlap in the writings of the same author.22
Without going into detail of all these critiques I will just describe the principal
reproaches made in the feminist literature to the actual status of womens human rights
in international human rights law. Critiques start already with such formal aspect as
language used by human rights instruments. The language of human rights law is
described as a male language, where man is used instead of human being and the
pronoun he as a reference to the whole humanity.23 Developed further, this critique
of language goes so far as to describe the entire legal system and legal language as a
male conception which is construed to defend and protect traditional domination of
women by men.24 One of the main characteristics of this law dened by men and for
men is the distinction drawn between public and private domains. Public life dominated by men is subject to legal regulation, private life as domain of women is excluded
from the sphere of law. In terms of human rights law this resulted in the formulation of
and emphasis on rights for public domain and therefore for men, namely civil and
political rights. Moreover, as noted by some feminist scholars even within this category
of rights the experience and needs of women are not taken into account.25 This public/
private distinction can be dened in different ways and this denition has been modied at different stages of development of human rights law. This distinction can, therefore, be criticized from different points of view.26 For example, at the international law
level: reection of this public/private distinction can be found in a clear separation
21
22
23
24
25
26
See e. g. the use of terminology in ENGLE, Karen. International Human Rights and
Feminism: When Discourses Meet. 13 Michigan Journal of International Law 1992,
pp. 517610.
For a clear and concentrated presentation of feminist theories and their application to
international law see CHARLESWORTH, Hilary, CHINKIN, Christine. The Boundaries of
International Law: A Feminist Analysis. Manchester: Juris Publishing Manchester
University Press, 2001, pp. 3861.
See in particular, SPENDER, D. Man Made Language. London, Boston: Routledge & Paul
Kegan, 1980.
See for example CHARLESWORTH, Hilary. Alienating Oscar? Feminist Analysis of
International Law. In: Dallmeyer, Dorinda G., ed. Reconceiving Reality: Women and
International Law. Studies in Transnational Legal Policy N 25, The American Society of
International Law, Washington, D.C.1993, pp. 118; or for more detail and further references
CHARLESWORTH, Hilary, CHINKIN, Christine, loc. cit. above, fn. 22.
CHARLESWORTH, Hilary, CHINKIN, Christine, loc. cit. above, fn. 22, pp. 233237.
See different opinions expressed in feminist literature, e.g. ENGLE, Karen. After the Collapse
of the Public/Private Distinction: Strategizing Womens Rights. In: Dallmeyer, Dorinda G.,
ed. Reconceiving Reality: Women and International Law. Studies in Transnational Legal
10
INTRODUCTION
between external relations between States, which are the subject of international legal
regulations and internal affairs of States which are protected by the principle of noninterference not only by other States, but also by international law itself.27 In human
rights law this dichotomy takes shape of a distinction made between civil and political
rights on the one hand and economic, social and cultural rights on the other hand. Even
inside the category of economic, social and cultural rights the categories of public
sphere and private sphere can also be distinguished.
Another aspect of modern human rights law criticized in feminist literature is the
non-discrimination focus of modern human rights law relating to women. This nondiscrimination or equality basis of womens human rights means treatment of women
in the same way as men. The critiques put forward the question of whether mens
interests, the situation of men is the same as that of women, whether rights dened by
men and for men can adequately respond to womens needs?28
Finally, even if some authors admit that in the last years human rights law turned
towards women and formulated rights for women, they stressed that these rights cannot improve the situation of women signicantly because womens human rights are
not taken seriously.29 They emphasize such characteristics of womens human rights
as weakness of provisions and enforcement possibilities, marginalization of human
rights of women. They also turn to potential conicts of rights which do not seem to
be resolved in practice in favor of human rights granted to women.30
Women who live in communities with practices and traditions that are discriminatory
and prejudicial to them and who condone such practices and traditions are often regarded
27
28
29
30
11
in the feminist literature as victims, inuenced, unable to decide, oppressed and in need
of guidance and help from the outside. There is a certain kind of superiority we know
what is good for you better than you and segregation we and they established
in this context by the mainstream Western feminist tradition. When faced with the fact
that women who are subjected to certain discriminatory practices can also condone such
practices, they do not inquire about the real reasons behind such an attitude but simply
reject the possibility that, for some reasons, these women can sincerely support any
discriminatory practices. More often, the possibility of the existence of such women is
not raised or addressed at all. This is particularly true for the part of feminist scholarship
dened above as external critique.31
Once the existence of this category of women is accepted or recognized, which has
been made by a part of the feminist scholarship, it is necessary to nd ways and means
to deal with them, to address their experience and interests. Without going into
detail of the different attitudes adopted in the feminist literature in this connection,
I will just mention that any constructive dialogue implies respect and taking the position, experience and interests of the other seriously. In this context it is impossible just
to talk in the categories of right and wrong; in any case, not on the basis of the premises
I am right you are wrong. Therefore, any plain interdiction of all culturally and
traditionally determined practices is detrimental to the promotion of mutual respect as
a basis for a dialogue and simply ineffective.32
C. Whose Right and Who is Right?
Here we come to another important point addressed in the feminist literature, namely
that of the objectivity of law and its ability to dene and determine what is right:
who and how denes the rightness.33 In this connection Katharine Barlett describes
31
32
33
24 Journal of International Law and Politics 1992, pp. 795856 who attempt to nd
theoretical arguments allowing resolution of possible conicts between human rights of
women and religious human rights in favor of womens human rights with an article by
Mayer: MAYER, Ann Elizabeth. A Benign Apartheid: How Gender Apartheid Has been
Rationalized. 5 UCLA Journal of International Law and Foreign Affairs 2001, pp. 237
338, which clearly demonstrates bias of human rights law in its approach to gender
discrimination justied by religious practices.
For a more detailed analysis and critique of attitudes towards this issue in feminist literature
see ENGLE, Karen. Female Subjects of Public International Law: Human Rights and the
Exotic Other Female. 26 New England Law Review 1992, pp. 15091526.
For an example of propositions developed in order to address this problem see GUNNING,
Isabelle R. Arrogant Perception, World-Travelling and Multicultural Feminism: The Case
of Female Genital Surgeries. 23 Columbia Human Rights Law Review 19911992,
pp. 189247. For an example of studies using the case of polygamy in order to demonstrate
that its simple interdiction without appropriately addressing all linked issues can result in
greater inequalities and suffering for women see: GRIFFITHS, Anne. Gendering Culture:
Towards a Plural Perspective on Kwena Womens Rights. In: Cowan, Jane K., Dembour,
Marie-Benedicte, Wilson, Richard A., eds. Culture and Rights: Anthropological
Perspectives. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001, pp. 102126. This article
analyzes the situation in an African country.
Feminist answers to this question reach from rational position assuming the possibility of
objectivity of law and objective knowledge of right to postmodernist theories questioning
12
INTRODUCTION
34
35
36
37
the very possibility of knowledge. For a detailed analysis see e. g. BARLETT, loc. cit. above,
fn. 15, pp. 867880.
Id., pp. 880881.
Id., p. 881.
Id., p. 885.
Id., p. 886.
I
WHERE AND WHAT ARE WOMENS RIGHTS
FOR ONE AND FOR THE OTHER
14
CHAPTER I
traditional international law, there is a third source of rules for States, namely general
principles of law. However, the exact nature of this source is relatively obscure, but
can be traced back to the implied consent of States.39
Once rules are established through one or another source of international law,
application and implementation of these rules lies exclusively in the hands of States.40
In case of a breach of a rule of international law consequences are also determined
by States. In classical international law they were determined by affected States
themselves through different forms of self-help. In the modern international law punishment and enforcement of the violated rule is often effected through institutions
established by States and is associated with denial of benets and advantages of being
a member of a particular institution or structure.
The effective functioning of such a system which contains no ofcial relations of
hierarchy but is based on horizontal relationship between equal subjects is possible
only due to reciprocity inherent to such relationships. It is in this sense that international legal order is often described as a system of contractual obligations between
independent States.
Thus, law operates between States on the basis of their consent and reciprocity.41
The centrality and independence of the State in this system are expressed through the
notion of sovereignty which also protects States from any outside intervention.
Human rights law appeared as a part of international law only after the Second
World War in response to this wars atrocities. The Universal Declaration of Human
Rights of 194842 for the rst time recognized that not only States, but also human
beings may have rights protected at international level, that States should not be
completely free to treat their citizens a category initially protected by the notion of
sovereignty from any control or inuence from outside as they wish. Thus, conceptually, human rights are safeguards against the abuse of power by governments/States
relying on self-restraint of the same governments/States.
However, the drafters of the Universal Declaration did not really care about the
question of compliance with standards dened therein; even less did the question
of enforcement come to their minds, since declaration is supposed to be a non-binding
instrument.
39
40
41
42
International Law Formation. 48 Virginia Journal of International Law 2007, pp. 119
186; VAGTS, Detlev F. International Relations Looks at Customary International
Law: A Traditionalists Defence. 15 European Journal of International Law 2004,
pp. 10311040.
More about general principles of law as a source of international law see below I.B.2.a)
with further references.
Sometimes States can establish bodies empowered to different extent with implementation
and supervisory functions. However, in all cases States have to agree to establish such a
body and determine themselves modalities of establishment and powers granted to such
bodies, so that at the nal analysis the decision rests with States.
It has to be stressed again that despite all new doctrines developed in international law, this
traditional vision remains valid and even returns in a new form. For some examples see
HOLLIS, loc. cit. above, fn. 38 and PARISI, Francesco, GHEI, Nita. The Role of Reciprocity
in International Law. 36 Cornell International Law Journal 2003, pp. 93123.
Adopted and proclaimed by General Assembly resolution 217 A (III) of 10 December 1948.
15
Indeed, many of the states that contributed to the drafting of the Universal Declaration
saw no apparent contradiction between endorsing international norms abroad and continuing oppression at home. They thought that the Universal Declaration would remain a
pious set of clichs more practiced in the breach than in the observance.43
Rights rhetoric became very popular; several treaties for protection of human rights
were drafted and concluded subsequently. However, despite further articulation of
various human rights, even as formal obligations incumbent on States, there have
been very few changes in other areas of human rights law. Thus, the question of compliance with and enforcement of these internationally dened human rights norms
remained largely unresolved. States being principal subjects of international law and
the entity responsible for the respect of human rights are at the same time the principal
perpetrators of human rights violations. The international law system has not been
able to respond to this paradox adequately and it continues to inuence realities of
functioning of human rights law, mostly to its detriment.
B. Human Rights Law and the Status of Women: Dening Womens
Needs as Human Rights
After having more or less claried the nature and basic tensions of human rights law,
it is necessary to get a closer look at the framing and content of the problem of
womens rights and interests as a human rights issue and related questions.
1. A Historical Perspective
When one is presenting a historical development of an issue, the rst question to
answer is about a point of time which can be identied as the starting point. This is an
important and not always easy to answer question, also with regard to the issue of the
incorporation of womens needs into the denition of human rights.
There are at least two principal points of departure for a historical overview of womens
human rights. If we understand human rights as a part of international law, it is impossible
to look at womens struggle for the recognition of their needs as an issue of human rights
law before the emergence of human rights themselves. Therefore, our history would not
start before the Second World War but with some aspects of it going back to the era of
the League of Nations. However, if we dene human rights in a broader sense, as a
struggle of human beings for equality, justice and recognition of their fundamental needs,
it can be traced as far back as to the origins of human culture itself. This broader vision
of human rights and therefore of womens role therein is very illustrative of the situation
of women in general and is very helpful for a correct understanding of the underlying
motives of womens movements from the very beginning till modern times. I choose,
therefore, to present the latter historical perspective. It should also be kept in mind that
this is just a general overview, the aim of which is not to go into historical detail, but to
give the reader a broad vision of the movement, its principal aims and motives.
43
IGNATIEF, Michael. Human Rights as Politics and Idolatry. Princeton, Oxford: Princeton
University Press, 2001, p. 6.
16
CHAPTER I
In the primitive human society a womans biological role also determined her
social position. Taking into account the life conditions in that society it was difcult
for women to extend their activities beyond child bearing, home work etc. With the
advancement of technical progress, women have freed more and more time from the
above-mentioned traditional biologically determined activities. Nevertheless, access
to other activities has been denied to women by men who already dominated all other
areas by different means, the most important being denial of the acquisition of knowledge justied by the natural role of women. Thus, the original contributors to womens human rights in broader sense were those who rst taught women to read and,
therefore, to explore the world outside the home and immediate community.44
We may conclude that two principal factors determined not only the choice by
women of ways and means in their struggle for recognition of their rights, but also the
way in which international human rights law has been reecting womens needs.
These factors are, rstly, limitation of womens role by various means to the domain
of family and home and, secondly, male domination of other areas of life.
Since the struggle for human rights, as any other activity out of home, initially was
also male dominated, it did not reect adequately at the beginning not at all womens
needs. The term rights already presupposed that it relates to one or another aspect of
the so-called public sphere closed to women for a very long time. This division of life in
public and private and understanding of rights as only civil and political rights hindered
the advancement of women even after they have got access to the public sphere.
With the increase of womens human rights movement women gradually introduced their demands into human rights law. The rst step consisted in introducing
equal treatment as far as the existing rights are concerned. In legal terms this meant
introduction of non-discrimination clauses into various human rights instruments.
However, civil and political rights could not respond adequately to womens needs
because the principal domain of womens activities remained the home and not public
or political life. Therefore, the next step was to work towards the recognition of
specic needs of women. Economic, social and cultural rights are, to some extent,
more attentive to womens needs. However, since the formulation of this type of right
was also made almost exclusively by men, they did not always reect adequately the
experience of women. Moreover, the recognition of some womens needs often had a
detrimental effect reinforcing the traditional vision of womens role as being limited
to their home. Therefore, the next requirement formulated by womens movements
has been the elimination of this traditional division of roles between men and women.
In this connection the thesis has been put forward that the entire body of human rights
law or international law in general should be reformulated in order to accommodate
adequately the experience of women.45
All the above-described tendencies can be perfectly illustrated by the development
of international human rights law concerning women.
44
45
FRASER, Arvonne S. Becoming Human: the Origins and Development of Womens Human
Rights. 21 HRQ 1999, p. 855.
More to this aspect see under II.C. below.
17
Already the Charter of the UN contains a provision stating the necessity of respect
for human rights for all without distinction as to race, sex, language, or religion,46
It could be asked what type of human rights does the UN Charter refer to. Without
going into the detail of this ambiguous issue, one can presume that at least the rights
enumerated in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights should fall into this
category.47 The majority of rights formulated in the Declaration belong to the group of
civil and political rights. Although the Declaration emphasizes in the Preamble equal
rights of men and women, it also contains some ambiguous provisions. The role attributed to the family in the Universal Declaration is particularly problematic from the
point of view of the status of women: The family is the natural and fundamental
group unit of society and is entitled to protection by society and the State.48
Without any further clarication and in the absence of any other regulations this
provision can be very easily used by traditionalists to reinforce the stereotype about the
natural role of women.49 This trend of reinforcement of the stereotype of inferiority
of women is even more visible in two ILO Conventions: the Convention Concerning
Night Work of Women Employed in Industry50 and the Convention Concerning the
Employment of Women on Underground Work in Mines of All Kinds.51 Both conventions contain a blanket prohibition of certain types of work for women. Only women
and all women without exception are prohibited from exercising certain types of work.
Such a prohibition is based on the assumption of a necessity to protect the family
through the protection of womens health, safety, and morality. Moreover, a blanket
prohibition also implies the assumption that women are not able to make individual
decisions as to the appropriateness for them of one or another type of work.
With the growing inuence of womens movements on international human rights
law the awareness of real womens needs and problems increased. This led to the
46
47
48
49
50
51
18
CHAPTER I
52
53
54
55
56
57
58
59
60
Adopted by the General Assembly of the UN by its resolution 1040 (XI) of 29 January
1957, and entered into force on 11 August 1958.
Adopted by the General Assembly of the UN by its resolution 1763 (XVII) of 7 November
1962, entered into force on 9 December 1964.
Adopted by the General Conference of the ILO on 29 June 1951, and entered into force on
23 May 1953.
Adopted by the General Conference of the ILO on 25 June 1958 and entered into force on
15 June 1960.
Adopted by the General Assembly of the UN by its resolution 640 (VII) of 20 December
1952, and entered into force on 7 July 1954.
Adopted by the General Conference of the UNESCO on 14 December 1960, entered into
force on 22 May 1962.
Further referred to as the ICESCR.
Further referred to as the ICCPR.
Adopted by the General Assembly resolution A/RES/48/104 at its 85th plenary meeting on
20 December 1993.
19
61
62
63
64
From the point of view of some feminist authors this emphasis on equality in modern
human rights law relating to women is of questionable value to real interests of women.
More about feminist critics see below in this Chapter under II.C.
According to the traditional theory of sources of international law the ICJ Statute in its
Article 38, paragraph 1 formulates and denes the three existing sources. The further
analysis in this Chapter will refer to a rather traditional presentation of sources in
international law without referring to existing challenges to and discussion around this
theory.
About the discussion of the legal force and legal signicance of this type of international
instruments see e.g. CHINKIN, Christine. The Challenges of soft law: development and
change in international law. 38 ICLQ 1989, pp. 850-866; PELLET, Alain. The Normative
Dilemma: Will and Consent in International Law-Making. 12 Australian Year Book of
International Law 1992, pp. 22-53; SHELTON, Dinah (Ed.) Commitment and Compliance:
the Role of NonBinding Norms in the International Legal System. Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 2000, XXVI, 560 p.; SHELTON, Dinah L. Soft Law. In: Handbook of
International Law, Routledge Press, Forthcoming 2008 Available at SSRN: http://ssrn
.com/abstract=1003387.
Some problems as to the exact content of one or another provision of a treaty may arise in
certain cases, in particular when provisions are formulated in vague, very general terms.
20
CHAPTER I
whether one or another State is bound by a particular rule incorporated into the treaty.65
In contrast, the disadvantage of a treaty as a source is that only States which expressly
consented to be bound by the provisions of the treaty are obliged to comply with rules
formulated in that treaty. It is clear that in the majority of cases States opposed to principles and purposes of one or another treaty will remain outside of its regime. From the
point of view of international law there will be very few, if any, means or possibilities
to intervene in order to improve the situation in these States. These two characteristics
distinguish a treaty from custom as a source of international law.
Custom, dened as evidence of a general practice accepted as law66 does not
have such a clear content. Sometimes it is even impossible to make an unambiguous
determination as to whether one or another rule already acquired a character of
a customary rule of law or not. However, once established without doubts, a rule
of customary law binds all States without exception, even those which did not
expressly consent to it.67
Finally, rules or norms of public international law can also have as their source
general principles of law. The exact denition of this source of international law and
ways of determining the content of these principles is subject to a debate in the doctrine of international law.68 The notion of general principle presupposes that the rule
derived from this source can only be of a very general character. A general principle
of law shall be respected by all States without exception.
Womens human rights are the subject of a very wide range of treaties. Some of
these treaties deal exclusively or mainly with womens rights. Others, while being
65
66
67
68
21
of general character, address some issues specic to women.69 Although these treaties
are ratied by a great number of States, the main problem relates to the fact that States
remaining outside of the treaty are in most cases those where the situation of women
is particularly precarious. Are there some rules of customary law which could be
applicable to such States? It is very difcult to determine the customary character of
any rule relating to womens human rights due to the inconsistency of State practice.
The only women-related rule which can be dened as a rule of customary law with
certain degree of certainty is the general requirement of non-discrimination on the
basis of sex. However, its limits and exact scope are very uid, because there is no
unanimous interpretation of the rule prohibiting gender discrimination.70
Thus, despite a great number of treaties and other instruments dealing with womens
human rights there are very few rules of customary law or general principles of law
dealing with similar issues, and those which exist have a very limited scope. The further analysis will therefore concentrate on written instruments dealing with womens
human rights leaving custom and general principles of law outside. Another reason
why instruments and in particular treaties form the subject of the present study is that
the overwhelming majority of womens human rights, especially those which reect
specic needs of women can be derived only from provisions of treaties. Since the
most comprehensive treaty dealing with womens interests is the CEDAW, the next
part of the study will concentrate on this treaty. Analysis of this treaty should shed
some light on the second part of the question formulated in the title of this chapter,
namely what are womens human rights. Other instruments containing provisions
relative to womens human rights will also be taken into account where necessary.
b) Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination Against Women
(1) Facts and Figures
As a starting point, I will recall some historical facts and the most important gures in
relation to the CEDAW. The rst concrete debate about the possibility of adoption of
a convention dealing with the situation of women took place in 1972 in the Commission
on the Status of Women.71 In 1976 the CSW presented its draft of the CEDAW to the
General Assembly. After discussion and amendment of this draft by the Third
Committee of the General Assembly, the General Assembly adopted the CEDAW on
69
70
71
For a general overview of treaties dealing with womens human rights see ALFREDSSON,
Gudmundur, TOMASEVSKI, Katarina, eds. loc. cit. above, fn. 5, and I.B.1. above.
However, even the customary character of the rule prohibiting gender discrimination is in
no case unambiguously established. See e.g. the list of human rights violations sufciently
established as customary law according to the Third restatement of the Foreign Relations
Law of the United States, 1987, para. 702. Compare also WANG, Shirley C. The Maturation
of Gender Equality into Customary Law. 27 New York University Journal of International
Law and Politics 1995, pp. 899-932.
Further referred to as the CSW. The CSW decided to request the Secretary General to call
upon member States of the UN to transmit their views or proposals on the envisaged
international convention. This request was addressed to the Secretary-General in CSWs
resolution 5 (XXIV).
22
CHAPTER I
18 December 1979 by its resolution 34/180 (1979). The CEDAW entered into force
on 3 September 1981, on the thirtieth day after the deposit of the twentieth instrument
of ratication.72 By the end of 2007 there were 185 States parties to the CEDAW.73
Seventy-six of these States used of their right to enter reservations which is limited
only by the principle incorporated in article 28, paragraph 2 of the CEDAW according
to which incompatible reservations shall not be permitted. Seventeen of these States
subsequently withdrew their reservations in total,74 so that at present there are
fty-nine States maintaining their reservations.75 An important step forward in the
strengthening of the CEDAW was the adoption on 6 October 1999 by the General
Assembly in its resolution 54/4 of an Optional Protocol to the CEDAW. The Optional
Protocol providing for special procedures of the supervision of the compliance of
States parties with the CEDAW entered into force on 22 December 2000. By the end
of 2007 there were 90 States parties to this protocol.76
As to the process and circumstances of adoption of the CEDAW, it is characterized
by two main tendencies. Firstly, when the idea about a convention on women appeared,
there were many voices arguing that such a convention would be unnecessary and
superuous. When it nevertheless came to the negotiation of the text of such a convention this tendency has been transformed into an ideological and religious confrontation77 and, therefore, a need to use the constructive ambiguity in formulating the
terms of the future convention. Such an attitude resulted in a relatively long time
being taken in elaboration of the Convention78 and what a lawyer would call weak
terms of the convention. In other words, various provisions of the CEDAW are formulated in very general and ambiguous terms. As a consequence, many provisions of the
Convention have a character of policy statements or expressions of intentions rather
than concrete legal obligations.
72
73
74
75
76
77
78
23
The second tendency became apparent after 1975, when the International Womens
Year79 and a Decade for Women80 were proclaimed by the UN. An International
Womens Conference had been planned for the year 1980 which should be a culmination
of the Decade for Women. Starting with the year 1975 there was, therefore, a rush
toward the adoption of the Convention. As a consequence, some controversial questions have been left aside, the terms of the Convention could not be discussed in much
detail; and again an ambiguity of terms reects this attitude. All the above-mentioned
tendencies inuenced already the formulation of the Preamble of the CEDAW.
(2) Purposes and Principles
The fteen-paragraph Preamble is commonly regarded as being too long and too
political.81 It does not concentrate on the purposes of the Convention but rather uses
the language of a political declaration. Furthermore, statements made in the Preamble
are not always taken up in the main text of the Convention.
After a reference to previous instruments dealing with a similar subject,82 as usual
in preambles to the UN conventions, the concern is expressed that despite various
instruments extensive discrimination against women continues to exist.83 The following paragraph states that the discrimination against women violates the principles
of equality of rights and respect for human dignity and describes how it affects not
only the situation of women, but also the family and society as a whole. The concern
is also expressed that in situations of poverty women are the most affected group.84
The next three paragraphs form the most controversial part of the Preamble. Thus,
paragraph 9 states that the establishment of the new international economic order based
on equity and justice will contribute signicantly towards the promotion
of equality between men and women. Leaving aside the discussion of the nature of
the new economic order and the degree to which justice and equality do really form the
basis of this order, it is difcult to understand how this paragraph relates to the remainder
of the CEDAW. This statement would t more into the CEDAW and would better reect
79
80
81
82
83
84
By its resolution 168 (LII) the ECOSOC designed the year 1975 as International Womens
Year in June 1972. The General Assembly conrmed this by resolution 3010 (XXVII) in
December 1972.
The UN Decade for Women: Equality, Development and Peace (1976-1985).
BURROWS, Noreen. The 1979 Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination
Against Women. XXXII NILR 1985, pp. 421, 423, DONNER, Laura A., loc. cit. above fn. 78,
pp. 246-247, REANDA, Laura. The Commission on the Status of Women. In: Alston, P., ed.
The United Nations and Human Rights: A Critical Appraisal. Oxford: Clarendon Press,
1992, p. 287. Compare also the opinion expressed by the United Kingdom during
the preparatory work: UN Doc. A/C.3/34/SR 71, para. 49, p. 9 and A/32/218/Add. 1, para.
14, p. 4.
Paragraph 1 of the Preamble refers to the Charter of the UN, the following paragraph to the
Universal Declaration of Human Rights, the next one to the International Covenants on
Human Rights. Paragraphs 4 and 5 make a general reference to the international conventions
concluded and to the resolutions, declarations and recommendations adopted under the
auspices of the UN and its specialized agencies.
Paragraph 6 of the Preamble to the CEDAW.
Paragraph 8 of the Preamble to the CEDAW.
24
CHAPTER I
its purposes should the presumption incorporated therein be reversed: the promotion of
real equality between men and women will contribute signicantly to the establishment
of a new economic order based on equality and justice.
Paragraph 10 relates to the full enjoyment of the rights of men and women, without
specifying the need for equality between sexes and is, therefore, already in this sense
not appropriately placed in the preamble of a convention aimed at the establishment
of equality between men and women. Moreover, the content of the paragraph as a
whole is so general that it could be placed in a preamble of any human rights treaty:
the eradication of apartheid, all forms of racism, racial discrimination, colonialism,
neo-colonialism, aggression, foreign occupation and domination and interference in the
internal affairs of States is essential to the full enjoyment of the rights of men and women.
The negative effect of such general statements in the preamble which is commonly
considered to be the place for the formulation of purposes and principles of a
convention is that this declaratory and vague character will be transferred even to the
substantive provisions of the convention. In case of doubt as to the character of one
or another provision it would rather be presumed to contain no concrete and immediate obligation but an intention to work towards implementation of some goals with a
consequence of weakening the legal force of such provisions and complicating the
supervision of compliance with them.
The same general character of political declaration is found in the eleventh paragraph which refers to such general notions as international peace and security, mutual
co-operation among States, disarmament, justice, equality and mutual benet in
relations among countries, right to self-determination, respect of national sovereignty
and territorial integrity.85
In contrast, the three following paragraphs are important as they set up a framework,
purposes and ways of eliminating discrimination against women. Firstly, the conviction is expressed that the full and complete development of a country, the welfare of
the world and the cause of peace require the maximum participation of women on
equal terms with men in all elds. Although quite general, this statement emphasizes
the importance of womens role and their participation in all areas of life.
85
25
Paragraph 13 deals with the role of women in a family and the signicance of
maternity. An important step forward is the emphasis placed on the role of both parents
in the family and in the upbringing of children and the fact that the role of women in
procreation should not be a basis for discrimination but that the upbringing of children
requires a shared responsibility between men and women and society as a whole.
These ideas are reinforced in the next paragraph stressing the importance of a change
in the traditional role of men as well as the role of women in society for the full
achievement of equality between men and women.
The nal paragraph recalls the principles set forth in the Declaration on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women and the necessity to adopt all measures
required for the elimination of such discrimination in all its forms and manifestations.
Traditionally, preambles to other human rights treaties are more concrete and
concentrate on clear objectives. They rstly place a new instrument into an already
existing human rights framework recalling the most important provisions of international instruments in force relating to the subject. Secondly, an explanation is given as
to the reason for the adoption of a new instrument. Finally, principles and purposes of
this new instrument are set forth. If we compare, for example the preamble of the
CEDAW with that of the CERD, which served as a model during the drafting of the
former, the difference will become obvious. Although the Preamble to the CERD is
also quite long it contains twelve paragraphs , it is very substantive and deals only
with the three above-mentioned points without making recourse to the language of
political declarations.86 We can also have a look at the Preamble to the Convention on
the Rights of the Child.87 This Convention has some common points with the CEDAW,
in that it deals with a group which did not traditionally get enough attention in international human rights law, regulates new areas commonly considered to be outside
of a domain suitable for legal regulation etc. Despite all these facts the Preamble
explains in clear and concentrated terms the place of this instrument in human rights
law, reasons for adoption of this instrument and gives a description of principles and
purposes which the Convention intends to achieve.
Thus, as already mentioned above, this political declaration language can be detrimental to the effective implementation of the CEDAW and weaken the legal force of
its provisions. However, there is a way to understand these elements of political declaration as an aim, as an attempt to place the issue of discrimination against women in
a larger framework beyond traditional legal spheres, an attempt to make clear for
States that elimination of discrimination requires not only efforts of a purely legal
character but in order to be real and effective should go beyond traditional legal
spheres and include actions in all aspects of human life. Unfortunately, the drafters of
the CEDAW did not express this idea more explicitly. Moreover, these aspects of the
Preamble are reected in the main text of the CEDAW only to a limited extent.
86
87
26
CHAPTER I
Firstly, this denition deals with discrimination against women, and not with a
more general concept of discrimination based on sex. The choice in favor of the former
was made deliberately during the preparatory work of the CEDAW.88 The second
important general feature of the denition relates to the fact that it does not limit
discrimination to rights and freedoms enumerated in the CEDAW itself. It relates to
any human right or fundamental freedom. As a consequence, in cases not falling under
one of the articles dening specic rights of women it should be possible to grant
protection on the basis of article 1 exclusively.
As in the case of the denition adopted in the CERD, the words effect or purpose
indicate that intention is not a necessary element in establishing the existence of discrimination.89 Inclusion of unintentional discrimination into the denition is decisive
to the elimination of all forms of discrimination against women including those which,
for example, are based on the so-called best interest of women and in fact safeguard
and reinforce prejudicial stereotyped notions of sex roles.
A further important element of the denition is the phrase irrespective of their
marital status which in addition to the equal treatment of men and women requires
equal treatment of married as well as unmarried women.
Finally, the eld of application of the CEDAW and its denition of the discrimination
extends not only to public life, as traditionally, but also covers private life.90 Some
authors questioned to what extent such interference of legal regulations into the private
88
89
90
Some States proposed and would prefer to have a denition of discrimination based on sex
in general, without limiting it to discrimination against women. See e.g. proposals of
Sweden and Canada in UN Doc. A/32/218/Add.1, para. 6, p. 2 and evaluation of this
proposal by the Secretary General in UN Doc. E/CN.6/591, paras. 3033, p. 10.
Such denition of discrimination which does not require intent corresponds to a widely
accepted denition of discrimination in international law in general. See e.g. BAYEFSKY,
Anne F. The Principle of Equality or Non-Discrimination in International Law. 11 Human
Rights Law Journal 1990, pp. 810; BOSSUYT, Marc. Linterdiction de la discrimination
dans le droit international des droits de lhomme. Bruxelles: Bruylant, 1976, pp. 3637;
MCKEAN, Warwick. Equality and Discrimination under International Law. Oxford:
Clarendon Press, 1983, pp. 264284.
This is particularly clear if we compare the denition of discrimination formulated in article
1 of the CEDAW with that of the CERD. The latter refers to political, economic, social,
cultural or any other eld of public life (emphasis added). This reference to public life
initially contained in various proposals of denition of discrimination during the preparatory
work of the CEDAW was nally omitted at the proposal of several States and international
bodies. See e.g. proposal of Portugal in UN Doc. E/CN.6/591, p. 52.
27
sphere can be effective and whether it is desirable.91 On the other hand, in the light of
the fact that the majority of discriminatory practices against women take place in this
private sphere, such a denition of discrimination can only be welcomed.92
The next important characteristic of the denition of discrimination adopted in the
CEDAW is the omission of the word preference as compared to the denition
contained in the CERD. During preparatory work States discussed very actively
whether and in which form this notion of preference should be included into the denition. Due to the problematic nature of this notion it was nally decided to remove
the word preference from the denition.93 Thus, the more restrictive denition of
the CEDAW contains a danger of leaving some forms of discrimination outside of the
legal framework established by the Convention.
Exceptions to this denition of discrimination against women are formulated in
article 4 and article 11 of the CEDAW. Article 4 deals with two types of protective
measures. Firstly, according to paragraph 1
Adoption by States Parties of temporary special measures aimed at accelerating de facto
equality between men and women shall not be considered discrimination as dened in the
present Convention, but shall in no way entail as a consequence the maintenance of unequal or separate standards; these measures shall be discontinued when the objectives of
equality of opportunity and treatment have been achieved.
91
92
93
94
See e.g. the following observation made by Theodor Meron: It is certainly true that
discrimination against women in personal and family life is rampant and may obviate equal
opportunities which may be available in public life. There is danger, however, that state
regulation of interpersonal conduct may violate the privacy and associational rights of the
individual and conict with the principles of freedom of opinion, expression, and belief.
In: MERON, Theodor. Human Rights Law-Making in the United Nations: A Critique of
Instruments and Process. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1986, p. 62.
A majority of authors and in particular feminist authors see the extension of protection
against discrimination according to the CEDAW to the private sphere as one of the main, if
not the main, achievement of the CEDAW. Of course, difculties related to the effectiveness
of the CEDAW may arise. The problem of conict of rights addressed above in the statement
by Theodor Meron (see previous footnote) cannot be denied. It would go beyond the scope
of the present research to address all these issues in detail. At the present stage it is important
to emphasize that it is impossible to achieve de facto equality between men and women
without interference into private sphere. To what extent such interference is necessary, what
are the appropriate means and ways are distinct questions which cannot be addressed here.
UN Doc. E/CN.6/SR.632, para. 5051; E/5909, para. 32, p. 30.
Some of the measures of second type are already prescribed by the CEDAW, namely, in
paragraph 2 of its article 11.
28
CHAPTER I
circumstances they may have adverse effects on the position of women in the society.
Particular attention and supervision is therefore required in application of protective
measures.
(4) General Undertakings of States Parties
As a following step the CEDAW describes in general terms means by which the
required equality can be achieved and imposes on States parties an obligation to use
these means.
Thus, article 2 obliges States to take a number of measures primarily in the legislative, but also in other spheres deemed to ensure that States pursue a policy of
eliminating discrimination against women. These measures include the embodiment
of the principle of equality in the constitution or other relevant legislation and its
practical realization; prohibition of discrimination; legal protection of rights of
women, in particular through national tribunals and other public institutions; obligation to refrain from engaging in any act or practice of discrimination and, as a
consequence, necessity to control public authorities in order to ensure that they act
in conformity with this obligation; suppression of any national penal provision
which constitutes discrimination against women. The above-enumerated obligations
contained in paragraphs (a) to (d) and (g) of article 2 deal with the so-called public
sphere. They are also formulated primarily as obligations requiring concrete action
with a concrete result, although some elements of these obligations require a certain
type of conduct and not necessarily an immediate result.
Obligations imposed on States in paragraphs (e) and (f) of article 2 are different in
nature. Already the language of these two provisions distinguishes them from the
above-mentioned group of obligations. According to them States take all appropriate
measures to achieve certain goals:
to eliminate discrimination against women by any person, organization or enterprise in the case of paragraph (e) and
to modify or abolish existing laws, regulations, customs and practices which
constitute discrimination against women in the case of paragraph (f ).
No denition of what is appropriate is provided. To some extent these two
provisions, as well as all other general undertakings of States parties described in this
part are concretized in the part of the CEDAW which deals with several specic rights
of women. Nevertheless, the vague language of these paragraphs leaves implementation
of a signicant part of the obligation to the discretion of each particular State.
Moreover, even when an objective judgment by an independent body about the
implementation of these obligations can be made, it should take into account to a very
great extent individual circumstances of each particular State. Nevertheless, this type
of obligation does not allow a State to remain passive without undertaking any action.
As clearly stated in the introductory phrase of article 2, all the measures described
therein should be undertaken without delay.
General obligations imposed on States parties by virtue of articles 3 and 5 of the
CEDAW are of a similar nature as obligations embodied in paragraphs (e) and (f )
of article 2.
29
A specic signicance of this article may be seen in the fact that the provision turns
the attention of States to non-legal elds, such as education, media and other public
information where States through appropriate action should also contribute to the
advancement of equality between men and women.
More innovative and signicant is article 5. This article deals with an area traditionally quite distant from law, namely, social and cultural patterns of conduct, which,
according to the text of the article, should be modied
with a view to achieving the elimination of prejudices and customary and all other practices which are based on the idea of the inferiority or the superiority of either of the sexes
or on stereotyped roles for men and women.
The Committee dealt with this article in its General Recommendation N 3 adopted at its
6th Session. In this recommendation the Committee after having stressed that in many
different countries stereotypes and prejudices about women still exist urged all States
parties effectively to adopt educational and public information programs which will help to
eliminate prejudices and current practices that hinder the full operation of the principle of
social equality of women. Seen in the light of this comment made by the Committee article
5 becomes closely related to obligations formulated for States in article 3. From a purely
legal point of view this does not, however, add much to concretization and increase of the
legal force of the provision. For the full text of all recommendations adopted by the CEDAW
Committee see Compilation of General Comments and General Recommendations adopted
by Human Rights Treaty Bodies, UN Doc. HRI/GEN/1/Rev.8, 8 May 2006; also available at
http://www.unhchr.ch/tbs/doc.nsf/(Symbol)/ca12c3a4ea8d6c53c1256d500056e56f?Open
document.
30
CHAPTER I
The above presented general provisions can thus be divided into two groups the rst
one containing the so-called hard obligations of a rather traditional type, the second
one including soft obligations of effort. The former deals with areas traditionally
covered by law and compliance with this type of provision can relatively easily be
measured on hand of objective criteria and requires achievement of a concrete result.
The latter type intervenes into spheres traditionally labeled as extra-legal and placed
during a very long period of time out of the reach of legal regulations. As far as their
implementation and enforcement is concerned, there is a big margin of discretion for
States. However, one thing is clear: should a State undertake no action at all in order
to comply with this type of provision, it will be found in violation of its obligations
under the CEDAW.
Finally, since we deal with a non-discrimination convention, it is useful to compare
its general provisions with some similar provisions of another non-discrimination
convention, namely, the CERD. As far as the general undertakings of States parties
are concerned, there is one striking difference. The CEDAW contains no article
similar to article 4 of the CERD which requires States parties to declare illegal and
prohibit organizations and all other propaganda activities which promote and incite
racial discrimination.96 Several questions arise in this connection: Does this mean that
discrimination against women, discrimination based on sex is less important, or to put
it differently, of a lesser gravity than discrimination based on race? Both the UN
Charter and the Universal Declaration of Human Rights as well as other instruments
containing non-discrimination clauses list both grounds of discrimination race and
sex side by side without making any distinction between both, without establishing
any hierarchy. The absence of a provision similar to article 4 would, however, suggest
that if, for example, a religious group would propagate the idea that one or another
group of human beings is inferior due to its physical characteristics, such as color of
skin, the group shall be either prohibited or obliged to abstain from the part of its
activities which propagate the idea. Should the State fail to do so, it will violate its
international obligations. On the other hand, a religious or any other group propagating and defending the idea that a half of humanity is inferior due to one of its physical
characteristics, namely sex, cannot be prohibited or restricted in its activities. The
only action a State is authorized and required to undertake is to take all appropriate
measures with a view of achieving the elimination of these traditional stereotypical ideas in accordance with article 5 read in conjunction with article 3 of the CEDAW.
The difference is striking. It even allows organizations and groups propagating ideas
of inferiority of women to defend their right to do so on the basis of freedom of
expression, religious belief, etc.
How to deal with these contradictions, conicts between rights? An attempt to
provide an answer to this question in the context of Islam will be made in the nal
96
Article 4 (b) of the CERD reads as follows: [States] shall declare illegal and prohibit
organizations, and also organized and all other propaganda activities, which promote and
incite racial discrimination, and shall recognize participation in such organizations or
activities as an offence punishable by law.
31
chapter of the research, when the scope of the rights of women according to the
CEDAW, as well as the scope of provisions of Islamic law dealing with the status of
women will become clear.
The nal article of the general part of the CEDAW requires States parties to take
all appropriate measures, including legislation, to suppress all forms of trafc in
women and exploitation of prostitution of women. The place of this article in the part
of the CEDAW dealing with general obligations can only be explained by the fact that
to place it in any other part of the CEDAW would be even more inappropriate.
(5) Specic Obligations of States Parties
(a) Public and Political Life. Rights of women in the area of public and political
life are addressed in Part Two of the Convention. Article 7 explicitly mentions three
sets of rights which States shall ensure to women on equal terms with men. Firstly,
the right to vote in all elections and public referenda and to be eligible for election
to all publicly elected bodies. Secondly, the right to participate in the formulation
of government policy and the implementation thereof and to hold public ofce and
perform all public functions at all levels of government. Thirdly, the right to participate
in non-governmental organizations and associations concerned with the public and
political life of the country.
The issue of political rights of women already forms the subject of one UN convention, namely the Convention on the Political Rights of Women. However, the CEDAW
formulates some rights going beyond those guaranteed by the above-mentioned
convention. These are the rights to participate in the formulation of government policy
and implementation thereof and to participate in non-governmental organizations and
associations.97
It should also be mentioned that article 7 does not limit rights of women in public and
political life to three sets of rights enumerated therein. According to article 7, States
have a general obligation to take all appropriate measures to eliminate discrimination
against women in this area.98
Article 8 deals with the representation by women of their governments at the international level and their participation in international organizations. Once again, the
article is formulated in such a manner as to require States to take all appropriate
measures to ensure to women, on equal terms with men and without any discrimination
the above-mentioned opportunity.
97
98
This imposes on States an obligation to ensure that such entities as political parties, trade
unions and other similar non-governmental bodies do not discriminate against women. See
Committees General Recommendation N 23, paras. 33 and 42.
See General Recommendation N 23, para. 5: The obligation specied in article 7 extends
to all areas of public and political life and is not limited to those areas specied in
subparagraphs (a), (b) and (c). The political and public life of a country is a broad concept.
It refers to the exercise of political power, in particular the exercise of legislative, judicial,
executive and administrative powers. The term covers all aspects of public administration
and the formulation and implementation of policy at the international, national, regional
and local levels. The concept also includes many aspects of civil society ().
32
CHAPTER I
Finally, Part Two of the CEDAW contains article 9 dealing with the question of
nationality, one of the most controversial articles of the Convention.99 The question
of nationality of married women forms a subject of a separate convention. This
Convention on the Nationality of Married Women adopted in 1957 overlaps to some
extent with article 9 of the CEDAW. Thus, article 9 repeats one of the central provisions
of the 1957 Convention, namely, that
neither marriage to an alien nor change of nationality by husband during marriage shall
automatically change the nationality of the wife, render her stateless or force upon her the
nationality of the husband.100
99
100
101
102
33
State raties the CEDAW without already having brought its legislation into
accordance with article 9 of the CEDAW. In such a case the State in order not to
violate its obligations under the Convention should at least undertake immediately all
necessary steps for modication of relevant legislation.
(b) Economic and Social Life. The next very extensive part of the CEDAW deals with
rights of women in economic and social life. It addresses the rights of women in four
principal areas: education, employment, health care and the rights of rural women.
Almost all provisions of this part of the CEDAW are introduced by the phrase
States Parties shall take all appropriate measures to eliminate discrimination against
women () in order to ensure on a basis of equality with men () followed by enumeration of the most important rights in the area concerned or the mentioning of the
area itself. Everything said above about the relative weakness and difculties of
supervision of compliance of this type of provision is also valid here. Without going
into much detail of each article of this part of the CEDAW the analysis below concentrates on differences between the CEDAW and previous international instruments
dealing with similar issues.
The issue of equality in education addressed in article 10 of the CEDAW already
forms the subject of the 1960 UNESCO Convention against Discrimination in
Education. The principal difference between these two documents lies in the fact that
the UNESCO Convention does not limit itself to discrimination in education based on
sex but includes any other form of discrimination and cannot therefore address the
particular needs of women. Thus, for example, paragraph (f) of article 10 of the
CEDAW requires States to ensure by all appropriate measures the reduction of female
student drop-out rates and the organization of programs for girls and women who
have left school prematurely. There is no corresponding provision in the UNESCO
Convention. Furthermore, article 2, paragraph (a) of the UNESCO Convention permits
the establishment and the maintenance of separate educational systems or institutions
for pupils of two sexes,
if these systems or institutions offer equivalent access to education, provide a teaching
staff with qualications of the same standard as well as school premises and equipment
of the same quality, and afford the opportunity to take the same or equivalent courses of
study. (emphases added)
Although the CEDAW does not prohibit separate education of girls and boys, it
expressly encourages coeducation. Moreover, the above-quoted provision of the UNESCO
Convention uses the term equivalent (as opposed to the term same) to describe access
to education and courses of study offered by separate educational systems. This implies
at least a tolerance of one of the justications of differential and discriminatory treatment
of women, namely, that of women being equal but different. In contrast, one of the principal aims of the CEDAW is the elimination of stereotypical views on the role of men and
women, which is primarily formulated in its article 5, but also re-emphasized in article 10
dealing with education. Not only is the term equivalent replaced by the term same,
but States are also required to ensure by all appropriate means
the elimination of any stereotyped concept of the roles of men and women at all levels and
in all forms of education by encouraging coeducation and other types of education which
34
CHAPTER I
will help to achieve this aim and, in particular, by the revision of textbooks and school
programmes and the adaptation of teaching methods.103
103
104
105
106
107
35
of their economy.108 What is important, however, in such cases in the context of the
CEDAW is the respect of the principle of equality which means that if one or another
right (in our case in the area of social security) is granted to men, it shall also be
provided to women. If due to its nancial, economic situation a State is unable to
provide a benet to anybody, there is no violation of the CEDAW.
Rights to protection of health and to safety of working conditions, including the
safeguarding of the function of reproduction addressed in article 11 of the CEDAW
forms the subject of several ILO Conventions. Some of these conventions were
adopted before the Second World War, and have been criticized for their protectionist
attitude towards women. Such an attitude ofcially recognized and laid down in the
legislation is of a very questionable value in the achievement of real equality between
sexes. Several of these protectionist ILO Conventions still remain in force although
their subject-matter is regulated at the same time by recently adopted ILO conventions
with a gender-neutral language.109 To avoid such situations the CEDAW contains in
paragraph 3 of article 11 the following rule:
Protective legislation relating to matters covered in this article shall be reviewed periodically in the light of scientic and technological knowledge and shall be revised, repealed
or extended as necessary.
108
109
110
111
See, for example, Indias objection during the preparatory work of the CEDAW: UN Doc.
E/CN.6/591.
See for example the above-mentioned Convention on the Night Work of Women and the
recently adopted Convention on Night Work: Chapter One, I.A. More about the policy of
the ILO with regard to women workers see in TREBILCOCK, Anne. ILO Convention and
Women Workers. In: Askin, Kelly D., Koenig, Dorean M., eds. Women and International
Human Rights Law. Vol. II, Ardsley: Transnational Publishers Inc., 2000, pp. 301318.
Article 11, paragraph 2 (d).
(.) States Parties shall take all appropriate measures () to encourage the provision of
the necessary supporting social services to enable parents to combine family obligations
with work responsibilities and participation in public life, in particular through promoting
the establishment and development of a network of child-care facilities. Article 11,
paragraph 2 (c).
36
CHAPTER I
equality of men and women, access to health care services, including those related to
family planning. The second paragraph of this article emphasizes importance of special services in connection with pregnancy, connement and the post-natal period.
States parties shall ensure to women all appropriate services in these matters and
grant free services where necessary, as well as adequate nutrition during pregnancy
and lactation.
The recourse to very general language in article 12 can be explained by the absence
of a provision dealing with this issue at the initial stage of the preparatory work. The
provision was inserted following the 1975 conference on women112 and reects ideas
expressed in the declaration and program for action adopted at this conference.113 It is
interesting to note that the second part of this article dealing with pregnancy and other
related matters, in contrast to other provisions, is formulated in strong terms without
making recourse to appropriate measures language. This general provision of the
CEDAW forms the subject of a very detailed general recommendation adopted by the
Committee. This general recommendation explains not only what kind of measures
the States should adopt in order to comply with the article but also how they should
report on the article in order to provide to the Committee all necessary information to
decide whether States fulll their obligations under this article.114
All other matters related to economic and social life are covered by article 13 which
also uses appropriate measures language. This article was inserted by the General
Assembly to cover any possible omissions in the area of economic and social life.
A relatively new area of legal regulation is covered by article 14 dealing with the
situation of rural women. Discussion of this subject during the preparatory work of
the CEDAW was introduced by the FAO. The initiative to introduce such an article
came from India and an ofcial joint proposal was made by Egypt, India, Indonesia,
Iran, Pakistan, Thailand and the USA.115 This article which will not be discussed in
further detail also uses appropriate measures language except for a general
obligation of States parties to take into account the particular problems faced by
112
113
114
115
Some references to health care were also made in earlier versions of the CEDAW. However,
they were always connected to other provisions of the draft such as employment, social
security, family planning, rural women. No separate article on equality in health care was
included in documents leading up to the adoption of the version of the CEDAW by the
CSW and the ECOSOC.
See Report of the World Conference of the International Womens Year, Mexico City,
19 June-2 July 1975, UN Doc. E/CONF.66/34; UN Publications Sales Number E.76.IV.1;
in particular part E Health and Nutrition (paras 108123, pp. 2426) of the World Plan
of Action for the Implementation of the International Womens Year.
See General Recommendation N 24 adopted at the twentieth session of the Committee.
Contained in the Report of the Committee on the work of its Twentieth and Twenty-rst
session. UN Doc. A/54/38/Rev.1 at pp. 37. Some other issues related to health care are
addressed in earlier general recommendations of the Committee: General Recommendation
N 12 on violence against women; General Recommendation N 14 on female circumcision;
General Recommendation N15 on avoidance of discrimination against women in national
strategies for prevention and control of acquired immunodeciency syndrome (AIDS);
General Recommendation N 19 on violence against women.
UN Doc. E/CN.6/L.687, 28 September 1976.
37
rural women and the signicant roles which rural women play in the economic
survival of their families ()116
As a concluding remark the almost exclusive use of appropriate measures language
in this part of the CEDAW should be emphasized. The three exceptions are the following: the obligation to review protective legislation (article 11, paragraph 3), the obligation to ensure services in relation to pregnancy (article 12, paragraph 2) and the
obligation to take into account the particular situation of rural women (article 14, paragraph 1).
(c) Marriage, Family and other Civil Matters. Part Four of the CEDAW dealing with
marriage, family and other civil matters contains only two articles one of which is
formulated in strong terms, the other one uses appropriate measures language.
Article 15 deals with several issues in the area of civil matters which are of particular
importance to women. Firstly, according to the rst paragraph of this article, States
shall accord to women equality with men before the law. Secondly, the same legal
capacity in all civil matters and the same opportunity to exercise that capacity shall be
granted to men and women. The provision places particular emphasis on equal rights
to conclude contracts, to administer property and equal treatment in all stages of procedure in courts and tribunals.117 The Committee emphasized in one of its general
recommendations the particular importance of the latter set of rights to womens
ability to provide for themselves and their dependants.118
The third paragraph of article 15 deals with a sensitive issue of what is dened as
contracts and all other private instruments of any kind with a legal effect which is
directed at restricting the legal capacity of women. In accordance with this provision
of the CEDAW States parties agree that all such instruments shall be deemed null and
void. It is not very clear what kind of contracts fall into this category, but according to
some authors this can also include some matrimonial regimes providing for the right
of the husband to administer the property of the wife or restricting the capacity of the
wife to enter into contracts without the consent of her husband.119 If interpreted in this
manner the provision can be problematic for a great number of countries even those
where religion does not play a major role.
Finally, according to the fourth paragraph of the same article, States parties shall
accord to men and women the same rights with regard to the law relating to the
movement of persons and the freedom to choose their residence and domicile. This
provision also gave rise to much discussion at the stage of preparatory work, in
particular as far as the situation in some Muslim States is concerned.120 It is interesting
116
117
118
119
120
38
CHAPTER I
Article 16 particularly emphasizes the following rights in the area of marriage and
family relations: the right to enter into marriage and freely to choose a spouse and to
121
122
123
124
125
39
enter into marriage only with free and full consent; rights and responsibilities during
marriage and at its dissolution; rights and responsibilities as parents; the right to
decide freely and responsibly on the number and spacing of children and to have
access to the information, education and means to enable them to exercise these rights;
rights and responsibilities with regard to guardianship, wardship, trusteeship and
adoption of children or similar institutions; personal rights as husband and wife,
including the right to choose a family name, a profession, an occupation; rights in
respect of the ownership, acquisition, management, administration, enjoyment and
disposition of property.
In its general recommendation the Committee particularly stressed the gap existing
in many countries between provisions of national laws and the reality of womens
lives due to custom, tradition and failure to enforce these laws.126
(6) Mechanism for the Enforcement of the CEDAW
The CEDAW itself provides only for a reporting procedure. According to article 17 of
the Convention a Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women
shall be established for the purpose of considering the progress made in the implementation of the present Convention. Very few means are, however, placed at the
disposal of the Committee in order to enable it to fulll this function effectively.
Firstly, according to article 18
States Parties undertake to submit to the Secretary-General of the United Nations, for
consideration by the Committee, a report on the legislative, judicial, administrative or
other measures which they have adopted to give effect to the provisions of the present
Convention and on the progress made in this respect ()
126
127
40
CHAPTER I
States parties faces many problems and has been in itself criticized as not very
effective.128 Furthermore, the text of the CEDAW itself expressly limited the time at the
disposal of the Committee for consideration of reports to two weeks per year.129 Not only
is this period insufcient and shorter than the time used by other treaty-monitoring bodies, but the fact of limiting the time of meetings of a treaty-monitoring body is a unique
practice in this connection. The CEDAW attempted to amend the text of the Convention correspondingly, however, without success.130 Finally, institutional separation of the
Committee from other human rights treaty-monitoring bodies and services provided to
them was often invoked as a cause and evidence of marginalization of womens human
rights.131 This lasted till the 40th session of the CEDAW (held between 14 January and
4 February 2008) when responsibility for servicing the Committee was transferred to the
Ofce of the High Commissioner for Human Rights based in Geneva as is the case for
all other human rights treaty-monitoring bodies. As concluded by one author
The Convention and the Committee reect the society that created them. Responsibility for
the weakness of the Committee lies with the states that drafted the Convention, which are
apparently not ready to embrace womens equality wholeheartedly.132
One signicant step forward towards strengthening of the CEDAW was made quite
recently with the adoption of an optional protocol.133 This protocol allows individual
women, or groups of women to submit claims under a communication procedure and
creates an inquiry procedure in case of grave or systematic violations of womens
rights.134 Although the Protocol already entered into force in December 2000 it is still
impossible to judge how its operation will inuence the effectiveness of the CEDAW.
On the one hand these additional powers of the Committee place it on the same footing
with other treaty-monitoring bodies and open a possibility for positive developments.
The very fact of the adoption of the Protocol can be interpreted as a sign that individual
128
129
130
131
132
133
134
For the consideration of problems related to the reporting procedure see for example Note
by the Secretary-General Effective Implementation of International Instruments on
Human Rights, Including Reporting Obligations under International Instruments on
Human Rights. UN Doc. A/44/668, 8 November 1989, paras. 3153, pp. 1823; the letter
and the attached annex from the Dutch Human Rights and Foreign Policy Advisory
Committee addressed to the Secretary General of the United Nations by the Minister for
Foreign Affairs of the Netherlands: Reporting Obligations of States Parties to United
Nations Instruments on Human Rights, UN Doc. A/C.3/43/5, 5 October 1988.
Article 20 of the CEDAW.
See General Recommendation N22 adopted by the Committee on 3 February 1995,
contained in the UN Doc. A/50/38.
See e.g. BUSTELO, Mara R., loc. cit. above, fn. 127, pp. 98103; BYRNES, Andrew C., loc.
cit. above, fn. 127, pp. 6061.
MINOR, Julie A. An Analysis of Structural Weaknesses in the Convention on the
Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination Against Women. 24 Georgia Journal of
International and Comparative Law 1994, p. 151; Similar BYRNES, Andrew C., loc. cit.
above, fn. 100, p. 59.
The Optional Protocol was adopted by the General Assembly of the UN on 6 October 1999
and opened for signature, ratication and accession on 10 December of the same year;
entered into force on 22 December 2000.
More about the Optional Protocol and its procedures see below, Chapter Three, III.C.
41
States and international community as a whole are taking womens rights more
seriously. On the other hand, apart from traditional difculties faced by treaty-monitoring
bodies in the context of similar procedures, doubts may arise as to whether the Protocol
will signicantly improve the situation since an authority for reviewing communications
in case of violations of womens right has been already granted to the CSW.135 This
procedure in the CSW proved to be almost ineffective. It should be, however, noted
that this ineffectiveness could also be explained by limited powers granted to the
CSW in relation to this procedure.136
3. Human Rights of Women v. Womens Rights: Feminist Critiques of the Way
Human Rights Law Addresses Womens Interests
The above-made presentation leaves an impression of an international document
which despite certain weaknesses of its enforcement provisions responds to real
demands and reects real interests of women. The weakness of the enforcement provisions could appear as a logical consequence of it being a human rights treaty:
enforcement of human rights treaties in general is characterized by recourse to soft
mechanisms. However, certain representatives of the feminist legal scholarship will
regard the very fact that the elaboration of a separate convention dealing with womens
human rights was necessary as a proof of the failure of human rights law to address
womens interests adequately.
Nevertheless, the instrument coming closer than any other to demands made by
feminist critiques is the CEDAW. In certain sense this Convention can even be
regarded as a product of feminist movements. It attempts to speak neutral language, to
escape all stereotypical images, even to eliminate them, recognizes different needs of
women, and attempts to eliminate public/private distinction. Nevertheless, despite all
possible improvements introduced through this document, from the point of view of
feminist analysis several critiques are applicable to the Convention itself. For example,
the CEDAW does not go far enough in dening and protecting womens rights in the
private sphere. Thus, the issue of violence against women, including domestic
violence, is not even mentioned in the text of the Convention, although it was at
135
136
Originally the authority to review communications was granted to the CSW in 1948 rst
under the ECOSOC resolution 76(V) and later under the ECOSOC resolution 304 (XI).
Subsequently there were several attempts to modify and improve this procedure which did
not, however, lead to any signicant positive changes. For more detail see e.g. GALEY,
Margaret E. International Enforcement of Womens Rights. 6 HRQ 1984, pp. 464475;
RREANDA, Laura. The Commission on the Status of Women. In: Alston, Philip, ed. The
United Nations and Human Rights: A Critical Appraisal. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1992,
pp.295300.
Thus, for almost thirty years the CSW could only take note of communications received.
Subsequent reforms improved some aspects of this procedure. Any step forward was,
however, accompanied by hot debates. In 1974 the CSW even decided to discontinue
receiving communications and changed its decision only in 1976 after strenuous lobbying
by several NGOs and three of its members: see Report of the CSW on the work of its
twenty-fth session, 14 January 1 February 1974, UN Doc. E/CN.6/589 (1974) at 52 and
Report of the CSW on the work of its twenty-sixth session 13 September 1 October and
617 December 1976, UN Doc. E/CN.6/608 (1976) at 2425.
42
CHAPTER I
concern as an issue of womens rights at the agenda of NGOs already at the preparatory
stage of the Convention. Despite this fact, violence against women was mentioned for
the rst time in an ofcial document as an issue of human rights law only in 1985.137
Subsequently, the Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women
attempted to ll this gap through the adoption of general recommendations dealing
with the issue of violence against women.138
Furthermore, the protective provisions contained in the CEDAW, if not adequately
interpreted and applied, can be detrimental to the elimination of discriminatory
stereotypical attitudes and practices.139
Finally, many refer to article 5 calling for the elimination of prejudicial practices
and traditions as a signicant step forward. Some feminist authors would, however,
be very critical in celebrating the insertion of this provision as an ultimate means for
achieving recognition of womens rights and needs. It has been shown in the feminist
literature that the simple prohibition of certain cultural practices, even if they are at
the rst sight discriminatory against women can result in even greater inequalities,
injustice and suffering of women.140 This has to do with another set of critiques
developed in the feminist literature quite recently.
This type of critique can be more adequately described as inside feminist critique,
because it invokes such default of feminist literature as its failure to address different
experiences of women in particular of women living in a cultural and historical context
distinct from the environment of traditional feminist women, namely that of white educated women living in developed Western countries.141 What is at the center of this
type of critique is the denition of the woman. Being concerned with and concentrated
on differences between men and women as the two distinct and opposed groups, many
feminist authors assume the sameness of all women and do not consider seriously
the possibility that legitimate differences might exist between women themselves. From
137
138
139
140
141
United Nations Report of the World Conference to Review and Appraise the Achievements
of the United Nations Decade for Women: Equality, Development and Peace, Nairobi,
1526 July 1985, UN Doc. A/CONF.116/27/Rev.1, UN Sales N E.85.IV.10(1986).
General Recommendation N 12 and General Recommendation N 19 Violence against
Women adopted on 30 January 1992 GAOR, 47th session, Supplement N38 UN Doc.
A/47/38 (1993).
For a detailed discussion of protective laws in general and CEDAWs provisions in particular
see CHEN, Mai. Protective Laws and the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Discrimination against Women. 15 Womens Rights Law Reporter 1993, pp. 136.
See e. g. BELL, Diane. Considering Gender: Are Human Rights for Women Too? An
Australian Case. In: An-Naim, Abdullahi A., ed. Human Rights in Cross-Cultural
Perspectives: A Quest for Consensus. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press,
1992, pp. 339362 using as example the case of Australian aboriginal population;
GRIFFITHS, Anne. Gendering Culture: Towards a Plural Perspective on Kwena Womens
Rights. In: Cowan, Jane K., Dembour, Marie-Benedicte, Wilson, Richard A., eds.
Culture and Rights: Anthropological Perspectives. Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press, 2001, pp. 102126 who addresses traditional practices of polygamy and customary
marriage in Botswana.
For an example see JOHNSON-ODIM, C. Common Themes, Different Contexts. In: C. Mohanty,
A. Russo, L. Torres, eds. Third World Women and the Politics of Feminism. Bloomington:
Indiana University Press, 1991, pp. 314327.
43
this point of view the CEDAW can be described as simplistic in that it pays no attention
at all except its provision on rural women to different experiences of women.
C. Conclusions
It should be acknowledged that the last years are marked by some signicant improvements in the situation with womens human rights, such as attempts to address specic
womens needs in the private sphere, attempts to deal with stereotyped roles of sexes
and cultural and religious justications of discrimination against women. Nevertheless,
a closer look at the situation leaves us with a rather negative impression of human
rights of women, which are not taken sufciently seriously by States as well as by the
international community as a whole with a consequence of marginalization of this
type of human rights.
In terms of a sources based analysis this lack of seriousness on the part of States results
in the limitation of any positive developments in the area of womens human rights to
treaty law. Such a development is in so far undesirable as it allows States which remain
outside of the treaty regime to continue their practices discriminatory against women.
The most progressive and comprehensive among existing international treaties
dealing with womens human rights, the CEDAW, encompasses almost all previous
instruments on the subject and goes even further in attempting to remedy shortcomings of these previous instruments. The CEDAW also attempts to address new
issues and to open new perspectives for further development of human rights law
concerning women.
Despite all possible criticism, recent improvements in the CEDAWs enforcement
mechanism open the way for hope and belief that better incorporation of womens
needs and experiences into human rights law is possible.
Moreover, the Committee, through its working methods and despite the few powers
granted to it, makes many not unsuccessful efforts to remedy enforcement difculties,
structural weaknesses and other deciencies of the Convention.
Thus, we can afrm that the voice of our rst actor, namely the feminist movements
as expressing womens needs, was at least to certain extent successful in bringing its
claims and demands to international law. There exists certain degree of interpenetration
between feminist movements and international law, which we will see is not the case
with our second actor labeled for convenience simply as Islam.
In its work the Committee should, however, take into account two points of criticism developed in the feminist literature. Firstly, being formulated under the inuence
of Western feminist movements, this Convention is hardly suited to address specic
experiences, needs and situations of women living in circumstances different from the
standard Western style of life. Although the CEDAW addresses the issue of cultural
and traditional practices, it does it in a very simplistic way. Relevant provisions of the
Convention simply call for elimination of practices discriminatory against women
without giving any guidance to governments which have to deal with this complex
phenomenon. Many anthropological studies have demonstrated that even when certain
traditional and cultural practices appear discriminatory against women, their simple
prohibition can not only be ineffective, but even lead to new inequalities and create
situations more detrimental to women than initially.
44
CHAPTER I
142
45
practices as in Saudi Arabia. Obviously, each State has a different vision of a proper
Islamic way of treating women. Therefore, as a next step we have to understand what
the term Islam and its different manifestations mean; why different interpretations of
Islamic law are possible; what motivates States in adopting one or another interpretation
as ofcial law of the State.
In the context of the goals of this research and keeping in mind the desire to develop
a constructive dialogue on the issue of the status of women, the question arises, whether
it is really possible to develop such an interpretation of Islamic law concerning women
which would not contradict the requirements of equality reected in the CEDAW.
If the answer is in the afrmative, in what context such an interpretation of Islamic law
is possible, what factors are able to favor a move towards such an interpretation, in
particular in the context of international law? In order to be able to give at least a tentative answer to all these questions, an attempt should rst be made to understand what
Islam and Islamic law means and how they function. Particular attention will be paid
to the latter concept. The understanding of the nature of Islamic law is also important
in the context of developments towards dynamism, diversity, and negotiation visible
in the articulation of womens rights. Is Islamic law able to adapt to these developments?
Are dynamism and diversity compatible with the nature of Islamic law?
If not further specied, the term Islam has been used in this paper to describe all
forces motivated and justied by Islam. It is in this sense that the term is also used in
the title of the research. However, one has always to keep in mind that Islam is a very
complex and multifaceted phenomenon. In this part some more nuanced approaches
to the denition of Islam will be introduced, and an attempt is made to understand the
basic characteristics of this phenomenon.
B. Terminological Clarications
First important clarication deals with the dichotomy between Islamic and Muslim
attributes, which according to my conception cannot always be used as interchangeable terms. The term Islamic is used to describe ideal situations, states, acts or
concepts determined by God. The term Muslim refers, in contrast, to situations,
states, acts or concepts as appearing in the practice of communities or individuals
claiming to follow Islam as a way of life. For example, I referred in the previous parts
to Muslim States, intentionally avoiding the expression Islamic States because, as
will be explained later, no State can claim the full and correct compliance with the
requirements of Islam. Although it should be admitted that it is not always easy and
possible to decide which of two attributes is better suited to describe one or another
phenomenon, concept or idea.143 Nevertheless, at present it should be made clear that
in my conception these two terms describe two distinct phenomenons and cannot be
143
The best example to illustrate this difculty is the term Islamic law itself. As will be
shown below, as a purely human creation law, even if based on Islam, cannot be Islamic
in the above-mentioned sense. On the other hand, having a Divine origin it cannot be
properly called Muslim law either. For the purposes of convenience and in the way of
simplication the term Islamic law is usually used in this book.
46
CHAPTER I
144
145
It should be mentioned that the majority population of Oman does not belong to either of
these movements, but identies itself as Ibadi community. In its practices relating to
personal status laws they are very close to Sunni Islam.
From 610 to 632 AD. A written version of the Quran in its present form appeared for the
rst time around the year 653 AD., some twenty years after the Prophets death. Before
this compilation the Quran was known in oral tradition and was learned by heart by
47
Although the Quran is supposed to contain responses to and guidance with respect
to all situations, it does not provide Muslims with an all-encompassing and well developed legal system.146 Moreover, even when certain matters are addressed in the Quran
it does not always mean that a clear and unambiguous rule exists. Rather, the practical
application and implementation of Quranic injunctions requires human interpretation
in the majority of cases. During the lifetime of the Prophet the Muslim community
had the possibility to address any questions related to the interpretation of the Quran
and its application in concrete situations to the Prophet. He naturally played the role
of a religious, moral, political leader and of a legislator and judge in all situations
related to any aspect of life of the Muslim community, because according to the beliefs
of Islam his infallibility was divinely protected. Sometimes the revelation was a direct
response to questions addressed to the Prophet by members of the Muslim community. After the death of the Prophet, although the Muslims had the divine guidance as
expressed in the Quran, they had no divinely protected infallible authority to which
they could address their questions and doubts arising out of the desire for practical
application and implementation of the Divine Will reected in the Quran. Human
beings were willing to follow the way of God, to implement his Will. However, these
fallible human beings had rst to understand this Will, to translate the ambiguous,
unclear message of the Quran into simple rules adapted to the realities of their lives.
Islamic law can be dened as an attempt to understand the Divine Will, as a search for
the Divine Will in a desire to organize life accordingly.
From this understanding of the relationship between the divine message contained
in the Quran and the human understanding of it is derived the distinction made in
Islamic law between the concept of Sharia and the concept of Fiqh. Sharia literally
means the path or the road leading to the water. Used in a religious context this term
means the way of good life. This way is understood to be shown or ordained by
God, the source of religious values.147 However, God shows this way to human beings
not as a clear-cut road but only through indicators.148 Human beings, in order to follow
146
147
148
many Muslims since the life-time of the Prophet. Some diffuse written pieces of the Quran
also circulated at that time. From the point of view of Islamic law and belief it is impossible
to doubt the authenticity of the Quran, although some Western scholars would do so.
However, this is counter-productive for the constructive dialogue between the Muslim
world and the human rights movement.
Muslim jurists and modern scholars agree that there are about 500 verses with legal
content. If compared to the overall number of verses in the Quran, which is more than
6000, it could appear insignicant at the rst glance. However, if one takes into account
the fact that non-legal verses are often repeated and of shorter length than legal verses,
then the amount of legal verses will appear quite important. See e.g. the argument made in:
GOITEIN, S.G. The Birth-Hour of Muslim Law. 50 Muslim World 1960, p. 24.
Correlative to the concept of Sharia is the concept of Din (submission). This
latter concept implies the following of the way of good life by a human being.
The material content, the subject-matter of both concepts which is the good way of life
is the same. For more detail see RAHMAN, Fazlur. Islam. Second Edition, Chicago, London:
University of Chicago Press, 1979, pp. 100109.
Technically from the point of view of Islamic legal theory an indicator is that through
which a rule of law becomes manifest to us. This concept of indicators (adilla) implies
that rules as such are not manifest, are not dictated as such by God. As indicated by Weiss
48
CHAPTER I
this way, have to know, to learn these indicators, as far as they are accessible to the
simple process of learning. However, more often the simple knowledge of given,
obvious indicators is not sufcient. The main purpose of Islamic law is to discover
and explain these indicators, which necessarily requires human intellectual activity:
understanding, comprehension designed in Arabic with the term Fiqh. It is this latter
aspect of Islamic legal thought which in its developed form is usually associated with
Islamic law, but often also labeled as Sharia. The following quotation illustrates very
well the relationship between Sharia and Fiqh:
Sharia law is a sort of Platonic ideal that scholars try to realize, however imperfectly and
fallibly, in their qh. Fiqh law accordingly derives its validity from its character as the
closest approximation of Sharia law that scholars are capable of achieving.149
In this sense no human being can claim full and denite knowledge of Sharia.
Moreover, Fiqh the human understanding of the Divine Will shall be undertaken
in accordance with a body of carefully worked out methodological principles. These
methodological principles are worked out by the science of Usul al-qh, which therefore can be dened as a mechanism of deducing concrete legal enactments, legal
norms and regulations from the word of God. Only a person who is able to use this
methodology is traditionally regarded by classical Muslim scholars as authorized to
deduce concrete legal regulations from the word of God. In order to be able to understand the structure and process of Islamic law, as well as to address some current
issues relating to the life of contemporary Muslim communities, we should make an
attempt to understand this methodology and its historical development.
Before starting a more detailed presentation, it should be emphasized that the vision
and understanding of Islamic law presented here are not self-evident and cannot be
regarded as commonly accepted not only in minds of many ordinary Muslims, but
also of many Muslim lawyers.150 Nevertheless, this vision can be defended as correct
and based on Islamic judicial tradition.
149
150
The indicators are thus clues to what is ab initio hidden from sight. Human scholars the
mujtahids use them to bring the rules of law to light. WEISS, Bernard G. The Search for
Gods Law: Islamic Jurisprudence in the Writings of Sayf al-Din al-Amidi. University of
Utah Press, 1992, p. 152. Islamic legal theory in its developed form has an elaborate
classication of all indicators which cannot be addressed further here. What is important
to emphasize and keep in mind at this point, is the general idea behind the concept of
indicators well-established in Islamic legal tradition, namely, that God did not formulate
rules of law ready for application. Even the most precise legal injunctions contained in the
Quran are no more than an indication of what a rule of law might be, no more than a
possibility to develop a rule of law.
WEISS, loc. cit. above, fn. 148, p. 16.
See for example the description of Sharia as encompassing primary sources (Quran and
Sunna) and Fiqh as a secondary source whereas Sharia is dened as having higher
authority in: MORGAN-FOSTER, Jason. Third Generation Rights: What Islamic Law Can
Teach the International Human Rights Movement. 8 Yale Human Rights and Development
Law Journal 2005, pp. 102103; the statement that the word for Islamic law is Sharia and
that Sharia regulates all aspects of Muslim lives without in this general description of
Islamic law even mentioning the word qh: GUICHON, Audrey. Some Arguments on the
Universality of Human Rights in Islam. In: Rehman, Javaid, Breau, Susan, eds. Religion,
49
151
152
153
Human Rights and International Law. A Critical Examination of Islamic State Practices.
Leiden, Boston: Martinus Nijhof Publishers, 2007, pp. 178179.
These are usual translations not necessarily reecting adequately the meaning attributed to
the corresponding Arabic term. Thus, qiyas as a logical reasoning is not limited to analogy,
although analogy forms the basis of this method. See e. g. HALLAQ, Wael B. NonAnalogical Arguments in Sunni Juridical Qias. 36 Arabica 1989, pp. 286306.
For examples of such analysis see e. g. MERNISSI, Fatima. The Veil and the Male Elite:
A Feminist Interpretation of Womens Rights in Islam. New York: Addison-Wesley Publishing
Company, 19901; BARLAS, Asma. Believing Women In Islam: Unreading Patriarchal
Interpretations of the Qur-an. Austin: University of Texas Press, 2002, XVI-254 pp.
RAHMAN, loc. cit. above, fn. 147, p. 54.
50
CHAPTER I
can be divided into two parts, chain of transmitters containing reference to persons
who successively, transmitted the story generation by generation and the text or the
story itself.154
The Sunna as an oral tradition was not systematically collected and learned by heart
during the lifetime of the Prophet, as was the case with the Quran. Furthermore, no
claim of divinely protected authenticity can be made on its behalf. The systematic collection of Prophetic oral traditions started only after Prophets death, towards the end
of the rst century of Islam (720AD).155 This process of collection brought to the surface a wide range of very different, sometimes even contradictory narratives, so that
the question about verication of their authenticity became of primary importance. Out
of this attempt to establish a more or less authentic collection of Prophetic traditions
the so-called science of Hadith came into existence. The science of Hadith in its developed form is a very complex construction. Its main aim is the determination of the
authenticity of each narrative.156 Various methods in particular related to the chain of
transmitters were developed by Muslim scholars to prove and establish the authenticity
of each Hadith. The verication places a very strong emphasis on the credibility of
each transmitter according to the best available information. Based on this verication
process of all recorded narratives, they are classied according to various degrees of
authenticity. As pointed out by certain modern authors, the principal weakness of this
verication process relates to its insufcient methods which need to be more historically grounded.157 It should not also be forgotten that as in any selection process a
certain degree of subjectivity is always present.
Thus, without disputing the divine origin of the Quran and the necessity to follow
the example of the Prophet, we have to admit the paramount role of human enterprise
in conveying concrete meaning to and implementing the message contained in these
two sources of Islamic law.
The involvement of fallible human beings in the creation of concrete legal regulations becomes even more important if not exclusive with the recourse to and the very
fact of recognition of the next two traditional methods of Islamic law, namely, ijma
and qiyas. The qiyas as a general concept referring to methods of logical reasoning
raises less questions than ijma which can be dened as a sanctioning authority of
a generation of Muslim community. According to the traditional concept of ijma, any
154
155
156
157
More about distinction between Sunna and Hadith see e.g. RAHMAN, loc. cit. above,
fn. 147, pp. 4367.
It is during this period that the so-called travel in search of knowledge (talab al-ilm)
became a common practice. The foremost goal of these traveling students was collection
of hadith (narratives about the sayings and acts of the Prophet).
More about the authentication process and the question of authenticity of Hadith see e.g.
in AZIMI, Mohammad Mustafa. Studies in Early Hadith Literature. Indianapolis: American
Trust Publications, 1978, pp. 248268; verication of the authenticity of some early
hadith: pp. 269292.
See e.g. suggestions by Abu El Fadl to pay particular attention to complexities of life
circumstances of individuals, as well as to the issue of creative selection and recollection.
He also discussed the relationship between reliability of a particular Hadith and its legal
effects. ABOU EL FADL, Khaled M. Speaking in Gods Name: Islamic Law, Authority and
Women. Oxford: Oneworld Publications, 2001, pp. 8789.
51
Without going into the detail of this methodology, I will just emphasize the following
fact, proven in writings of several modern Muslim scholars. At the beginning all these
methods did not exist. Since the whole methodology was a creation of later generations
of Muslim scholars, one of the later functions of Islamic law became the justication
and re-enactment of the processes of legal reasoning behind existing rules.160 To put
it differently, since the early generation of Muslim scholars did not use these elaborated
mechanisms of classical Islamic theory to issue their rulings, one of the objectives of
classical Islamic law became the theoretical justication of these rulings.
Islamic law which more precisely should be called Islamic legal theory or methodology is in so far peculiar as its main focus is on the process or methodology of
law-creation and formulation of rules rather than on the rules themselves.161
158
159
160
161
One of the inuential manuals on Sunni Usul al-Fiqh by Sayf al-Din al-Amidi (d. 1233)
addresses among others the following issues when he discusses the concept of ijma:
Whether the participants in an Ijmaic consensus must be Muslims and contemporaries of
each other; whether commoners must be included along with mujtahids among the
participants in an Ijmaic consensus; whether an innovating mujtahid must be included;
whether the opinion of the majority of mujtahids is constitutive of Ijma; whether the
silence of mujtahids in the face of a known opinion is constitutive of Ijma; whether the
division of the people of a particular age between two opinions is tantamount to an Imaic
consensus to the effect that these two opinions alone will be acceptable in the future.
WEISS, loc. cit. above, fn. 148, pp. ixx.
ABOU EL FADL, loc. cit. above, fn. 157, pp. 6465.
HALLAQ, Wael B. A History of Islamic Legal Theories: An Introduction to Sunni Usul AlFiqh. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1997, note 1, p. 2.
See e. g. description of Islamic law as a doctrine and a method rather than a code by
Joseph Schacht: SCHACHT, Joseph. Problems of Modern Islamic Legislation. 12 Studia
Islamica 1960, p.108.
52
CHAPTER I
Then the question arises as to who can determine rules applicable to concrete
situations. Can every Muslim do it for him or herself or only specialists, and what
qualications should these specialists have etc.
Conceptually, according to the nature of Islam, it is a personal duty of every Muslim
to make all possible efforts to discover, understand and follow the way of life ordained
by God. There is no person or institution which can claim to be a representative of
Gods Will thus discharging others from the duty to seek for the right way and also
depriving them of their right to form and live according to their personal opinion
about the nature and substance of Gods Will. The only real limitation to the exercise
of this personal duty and a right at the same time is the Quran as a direct and
unchanged word of God.162
Since the primary text of Islamic law is open to various interpretations and every
Muslim has a duty and a right to interpret this text according to his or her personal
understanding, the rst few centuries of Islam faced a ourishing diversity of opinions
on different substantive questions relative to the life of Muslim communities. Moreover,
one of the fundamental principles of Islamic law requires every person engaged in this
interpretative process to respect opinions expressed by other persons engaged in the
same process as potentially correct, because nobody can pretend to know the real
content of Gods Will. Others can review and criticize only the correctness, sincerity
etc. of the interpretative process itself, but not the results of this process.163 This spirit
of egalitarianism and acceptance and even encouragement of diversity characterizing
particularly the rst centuries of Islam led to the proliferation of schools of legal
thought in Islam.164 Schools of legal thought were organized initially according to
purely geographic criteria. Moreover, differences between schools were also conditioned by geographical factors, including differences in social conditions, local custom
and traditions.165 Simultaneously, in response to this diversity, another trend has been
gaining more and more power in discourses of Muslim scholars. As in any legal system
the diversity is tolerable only to the extent that it does not offend the unity of the
system as such. Therefore, some mechanisms had to be established which would not
162
163
164
165
While talking about the Quran as the word of God, one has always to keep in mind that
despite its divine origin it requires as any other book human understanding in order to be
implemented. The text of the Quran is not always clear and unambiguous, therefore
constituting a source of different interpretations and opinions. It should be stressed that
even where the meaning appears nowadays clear the process of creation of this meaning
inevitably took place, but has been forgotten and is regarded as unchallengeable.
This principle known as every mujtahid is correct has been itself debated among Muslim
scholars as to its exact meaning; however, nobody disputed the idea of egalitarianism and
absence of ultimate representation of the Divine will embodied in this principle. See e.g.
ABOU EL FADL, loc. cit. above, fn. 157, pp. 910, 3339.
The term school does not refer to any formal organization or structure but implies a
certain degree of methodological unity leading to same solutions in majority of concrete
situations.
See e. g. SCHACHT, Joseph. An Introduction to Islamic Law. Oxford: Clarendon Press,
1964, pp. 2836; COULSON, Noel J. A History of Islamic Law. Edinburgh: Edinburgh
University Press, 1964, pp. 3652.
53
166
HALLAQ, Wael B. Was the Gate of Ijtihad Closed? 16 International Journal of Middle
East Studies 1984, p. 3; similar but more detailed denition WEISS, loc. cit. above, fn. 148,
pp. 683684.
54
CHAPTER I
opinion and were able to form their personal opinion on any issue of Islamic law
directly on the basis of textual sources.167 One of the intermediary categories of mujtahids are those who are qualied to solve unprecedented cases, but only within the
limits of and in accordance with the principles laid down by the founder of the school
to which they belong. To the extent to which they follow principles laid down by the
founder of their school, they are followers and do not exercise independent reasoning.
At the bottom of this hierarchy are those who just follow somebodys opinion without
being able to exercise any individual intellectual effort in the eld of Islamic law.168
The basic aim of this categorization was to create a xed structure of authority in
Islamic law thus introducing stability, unity and predictability into a uid and multifaceted system which it represented at an early stage.169
In this connection the tremendous importance of those qualied to exercises ijtihad
becomes clear. They were those who determined the content of law in its application
to concrete cases, they determined what and how the ruler should administer and
implement. The only legitimization of this authority of mujtahids came originally
from their ability to understand and interpret Gods Will, from their ability to use the
sophisticated methodology. Often they did not claim any ofcial power and even dissociated themselves very clearly from the ruling elite protecting and maintaining the
independence of their class, for example, through private nancing of their educational
and other institutions.170
167
168
169
170
That this construction that the four prominent jurists Malik, Hanbal, Abu Hanifa and
Shai did not follow anybodys opinion and were the founders of corresponding schools
is an articial one and developed for different reasons by later generation of Muslims is very
well proven and illustrated by HALLAQ, Wael B. Was al-Shai the Master Architect of
Islamic Jurisprudence? 25 International Journal of Middle East Studies 1993, pp. 587605
and HALLAQ, Wael B. Authority, Continuity, and Change in Islamic Law. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 2001, pp. 5785; see also for similar ideas MELCHERT,
Christopher. The Formation of Sunni Schools of Law, 9th10th Centuries C.E. Leiden, New
York: Brill, 1997, XXVIII-244 pp.; CALDER, Norman. Studies in Early Muslim Jurisprudence.
Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1993, X-267 pp.
One has to keep in mind that there are several types of such classication. All of them are
the product of later Muslim scholars. One of the earliest if not the earliest of such
classications was developed by Ibn Rushd, a Malikite jurist, (d. 520/1126) at the
beginning of the fth Islamic century. His classication includes only three categories in
contrast to later classications which distinguished six (developed about a century later
by a Shaite jurist Abu Amar Uthman Ibn al-Salah (d. 643/1245) ) or seven categories
(according to the Hanate classication articulated by Ahmad Ibn Kamal Pashazadeh
(d. 940/1533) ).
Remember the note about role of ijma, consensus and that it is in relation to this method of
Islamic law that the question of qualications of persons whose opinion should be relevant
to the formation of consensus (mujtahids) arose.
More about position of Muslim scholars and their educational system during the classical
period see e.g. in MAKDISI, George. The Rise of Colleagues: Institutions of Learning in Islam
and the West. Edinburgh: Edinburgh University Press, 1981, pp. 187223 in particular;
MAKDISI, George. Freedom in Islamic Jurisprudence: Ijtihad, Taqlid, and Academic
Freedom. In: Makdisi, George, Sourdel, D., Sourdel-Thomine, J., eds. La notion de la liberte
au Moyen Age: Islam, Byzance, Occident. Paris: Les belles Lettres, 1985, pp. 7988. More
about the relationship between jurists and ofcial ruling elite during this period: HALLAQ,
Wael B. Authority, Continuity, and Change in Islamic Law. Cambridge: Cambridge
55
It does not mean that these lawyers-interpreters could be completely free from any
inuence, but at the initial stage this inuence rarely, if ever, grew to the degree of a
complete control. At the same time the gradual development of the sophisticated
methodology required more and more qualications in different areas of knowledge
in order to be able to participate in the interpretative process which replaced legislation
in Muslim tradition. As a consequence, more and more Muslims have been excluded
from the interpretative process, making it more unied, but also more open to manipulation. A very limited number of persons authorized according to the above-described
rules to participate in the interpretative and law-creating process offered an opportunity
of complete control over the interpretative process by a centralized power.
With the development of State structures and centralization of State power this lawcreating discourse became dominated by State power, was inuenced by it and served
not only personal interests but also participated in the articulation, justication, and
protection of State interests. It should be noted that due to the informal character of
this law-creating interpretative activity there are very few, if any, control mechanisms
of the correctness of the process and therefore of its results.
In this connection it is important to mention the thesis about the closer of the gate
of ijtihad. At a certain point in time of history this thesis about the closer of the gate
of ijtihad appeared in the writings of Muslim scholars. As commonly represented in
the traditionalists discourse, this thesis says that by the end of the tenth century all
possible questions of Islamic law had been resolved and no new interpretations and
therefore law-creation was needed. It is often used in ofcial discourses in modern
times to prevent any changes in the existing beliefs about the correct Islamic way of
life. It is important to mention here that certain studies have shown that it was not in
this sense that the thesis appeared originally in writings of Muslim scholars171, and
that the gate of ijtihad was not closed in theory nor in practice.172
At the present stage and for the purposes of further analysis, it is important to
emphasize that the introduction of the European State system with its centralized
structure, the European legislative system with its courts and codications allowed
manipulation and use of this methodology for creation of rulings suited to the needs
of the ruling elite/State.173 The possibility of a political control over and inuence
171
172
173
University Press, 2001; TYAN, Emile. Histoire de lorganisation judiciaire en pays dIslam.
Leiden: E.J. Brill, 2nd revised edition, 1960; TYAN, Emile. Judicial Organization.
In: Khadduri, Majid, Liebesny Herbert J., eds. Origin and Development of Islamic Law.
Washington D.C.: Middle East Institute, 1984, pp. 236278.
HALLAQ, Wael B. Was the Gate of Ijtihad Closed? 16 International Journal of Middle
East Studies 1984, pp. 341 and HALLAQ, Wael B. On the Origins of the Controversy
about the Existence of Mujtahids and the Gate of Ijtihad. 63 Studia Islamica 1986,
pp. 129141. These studies demonstrate that the issue of the closer of the gate of ijtihad
which appeared in the writings of Muslim scholars only in sixth/twelfth century and in
relation to the question of qualications of mujtahids and existence of mujtahids, but not
the resolution of all possible questions.
Id., p. 4.
As rightly pointed out by two authors: Not only were indigenous Islamic laws disturbed or
displaced by the misfortunes of colonialism, the Sharia as a legal system was not allowed a
natural growth () In the urgency to build nation-States and to repress ethnic, cultural and
56
CHAPTER I
upon the legislature signied the end of independence and therefore of diversity of
the Islamic judicial thinking. The introduction of the practice of codication put an
end to the diversity, dynamism and continuous change which constituted the ultimate
mechanism allowing the adaptation to changing circumstances. This inability of the
traditional Islamic legal system to function in the framework of a State based
upon the European model was mentioned by colonial powers and new Muslim States
themselves. This resulted in the replacement of laws based on Islamic thinking in all
areas vital to the survival of the State. Any attempt to introduce legal codes based
on principles developed by Islamic legal theory on such issues as contracts, commercial interaction, taxation etc was abandoned. Simultaneously, while asserting their
independence, Muslim States felt the necessity to maintain their Muslim or Islamic
identity. The symbol of this identity became enthusiastic codication and application
of the so-called Islamic family or personal status law, which negatively affected in the
rst place women.
As a result, what we see nowadays is a very sophisticated construction elaborated
by human beings which is presented often in many ofcial and ofcialized discourses
as divine and immutable. It is on the basis of this construction that all rules are
formulated including those dealing with the issues of personal status, in particular the
status of women. The following parts will demonstrate how this human construction
is used and misused to produce rules discriminatory against women, which are
accepted by the ruling elite of the majority of Muslim States as THE Islamic way of
treating women. On the other hand it will be shown that even inside the same
construction, using the same methodology one can come to opposite results.
D. Status of Women under Islamic Law: Between Tradition and Modernity
The main aim of the previous part was to describe the basic features of the complex
construction called traditional or classical Islamic law and particularly to show that
this construction is as human as any other legal structure/system. It is obvious that
Islamic law is based on the Divine message but any step going beyond the simple
processes of reproducing the text introduces an element of human involvement. Islam
regards any human activity as open to contestation and criticism. Islamic law in its
traditional form should therefore also be de-sacralized and the possibility of contestation and new developments should be recognized. Ways and means by which this
process could take place cannot be discussed in the framework of the present
research.174 However, some examples as to how the revision of and new approach
towards the tradition of Islamic law can change the status of women and the whole
vision of the role to be played by women will be given below.
174
religious identities, Islam and the Sharia were frequently used to repress pluralism and the
rule of law. Rehman, Javaid, Breau, Susan, editors. Introductory reections to Religion,
Human Rights and International Law. A Critical Examination of Islamic State Practices.
Leiden, Boston: Martinus Nijhof Publishers, 2007, p. 14.
These issues are sometimes addressed by Muslim scholars. See e.g. works of Abdullahi
A. An-Naim.
57
175
Although it should be mentioned that a minority of Muslims argues for the limitation of
certain political rights of women. See below, fn. 395.
58
CHAPTER I
next stage. After having produced an amount of evidence as to the equality of all
human beings, the authors of this group turn to innate differences between both
sexes. As formulated by one of them:
These differences do not affect their equality, dignity and eligibility to certain rights, no
do they give precedence to one sex over the other. Both sexes have different innate
dispositions. They have different temperaments and different constitutions. These different
dispositions help them to full their different yet equally important tasks in life for which
they have been created176
They would ascribe to women such characteristics as shyness, love for adornment
and beautication, weakness in disputation, emotionality, sensitivity, cunningness etc.
They would say that women should not be blamed for such characteristics, because
they are inherent to their nature. Moreover, these characteristics do not affect womens status as dignied human beings, but help them fulll their tasks in life as wives
and mothers. At the nal analysis the whole concept of rights and obligations of
women in Islam according to this vision is based on this fundamental differentiation
of nature and therefore of roles ascribed to both sexes.177 These authors base their
assumption about innate differences of sexes mostly on some apparently available
empirical evidence.178 The Quran itself does not contain any general statement about
differences in roles ascribed to men and women or the superiority of men over women.
However, there are in the Quran some verses which can be interpreted as dening the
position of women and men in terms of difference or subordination, but only in relation to certain very particular matters and not as a general statement. Moreover, these
parts of the Quran have also been interpreted by some modernist authors in such a way
as to eliminate any idea of superiority of men over women. These issues will be
addressed in more detail later, in relation to specic issues of personal status law.
Furthermore, quite a signicant number of Prophetic traditions (Hadith) is produced
by conservative authors as evidence of the difference in roles but in the rst place of
the superiority of men over women. An analysis of these traditions is beyond the
scope of the present research. It should be, however, noted that these traditions are
often of a questionable authenticity and their interpretation and understanding is
always inuenced by the subjective views and experience of the male dominated
interpretative community. These types of tradition came under attack from several
modernist authors who were able to show on the basis of available empirical evidence
176
177
178
NASEEF, Fatima Umar. Women in Islam: A Discourse in Rights and Obligations. New
Dehli: Sterling Publishers, 1999, p. 57.
See e.g. DOI, Abdur Rahman I. Women in Shariah. Kuala Lumpur: A.S. Noordeen, 1992, p.
1; EL-BAHNASSAWI, Salem. Women Between Islam and World Legislations: A Comparative
Study. Kuwait: Dar-ul-Qalam, 1985, pp. 107130; EL-NIMR, Raga. Women in Islamic
Law. In: Yamani, Mai, ed., Feminism and Islam: Legal and Literary Perspectives. New
York: New York University Press, 1996, p. 93; IQBAL, Saa. Women and Islamic Law.
Delhi: Adam Publishers, 1991, pp. 1019; MUTAHHARI, Murtada. The Rights of Women in
Islam. Tehran: WOFIS, 1981, pp. 167187; NASEEF, loc. cit. above, fn. 176, pp. 5769.
See e.g. EL-BAHNASSAWI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, p. 130; MUTAHHARI, loc. cit above, fn. 177,
pp. 167170, 180187.
59
179
180
181
It is impossible to go into further detail of this issue in the framework of the present
research. For a new analysis of discriminatory Hadiths and their critique see e. g. ABOU EL
FADL, loc. cit. above, fn. 157, pp. 180188, 210249; ABOU EL FADL, Khaled M. And God
Knows the Soldiers: The Authoritative and Authoritarian in Islamic Discourses. Lanham,
New York, Oxford: University Press of America, 2001, pp. 6282.
For some authors this distinction between the general message of the Quran emphasizing
equality and justice and particular rules for concrete situations forms the core of their
reform proposal. They advocate a rule of abrogation according to which in the present time
all particular rules application of which results in injustice and inequality are abrogated by
parts of the Quran containing a general message of equality and justice. For more detail see
AN-NAIM, Abdullahi Ahmed. Toward an Islamic Reformation: Civil Liberties, Human
Rights, and International Law. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1996.
Some authors would, however, prefer to reject the science of Hadith to the extent that it is
incompatible with the Quranic principles of equality and justice due to the impossibility to
distinguish false traditions from true traditions: () I believe that any attempt to sift the
genuine [Hadith] from the false [Hadith], or to reinstate previously discredited reports of
Sunna, is a hopeless task to undertake today. AN-NAIM, loc. cit. above, fn. 180, p. 23.
60
CHAPTER I
182
183
184
185
186
There is some disagreement among those who accept such a possibility as to whether only
the father and grandfather can conclude a marriage contract on behalf of his daughter or
also other male relatives when they play the role of a guardian. The majority of authors are
of the opinion that only a father and a grandfather can conclude a marriage contract on
behalf of their daughter or grand-daughter without her consent. ABD AL ATI, Hammudah.
The Family Structure in Islam. American Trust Publications, 1977, pp. 8084.
EL-BAHNASSAWI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, pp. 5053; EL-NIMR, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, p. 96;
MUTAHHARI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, pp. 6774; NASEEF, loc. cit. above, fn. 176, pp. 8996.
Usually the father of the bride will be her guardian. If for some reason he is unable to
perform this function other close male relatives or on some instances also an Islamic
magistrate/judge or other representative of public authority will play this role. It is
interesting to note that some, in particular earlier, jurists set the condition that the guardian
must be an upright, non-corrupt person. However, the majority of the later jurists held the
opinion that a corrupt person may also be a guardian. See e.g. AL-MISRI, Ahmad ibn Naqib.
Reliance of the Traveller: A Classic Manual of Islamic Sacred Law. Beltsville: Amana
Publications, Revised Edition 1994, p. 519, m.3.4.
DOI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, pp. 3435; EL-BAHNASSAWI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, p. 51;
MUTAHHARI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, pp. 6871; ZAFRULLAH KHAN, Muhammad. Islam and
Human Rights. Islamabad, Tilford: Islam International Publications Ltd., Fourth Edition,
1989, p. 105.
The suitability is dened in terms of lineage, religiousness, profession and being free from a
defect that permits the annulment of a marriage, or some of these characteristics, depending
61
Of course, all the above described rules are applicable only to women, men being
considered as able to marry themselves. The only exception is a young boy on whose
behalf a father is also authorized to conclude a marriage contract by those authors who
accept the possibility of a conclusion of marriage contracts on behalf of children.
All the above-described provisions are not based on the Quran, but on certain
Prophetic traditions.
A different approach to these issues is adopted by the fourth school, namely the
Hana school. According to the opinion of this school any adult woman has the right
to conclude a marriage contract herself, without asking the permission of a guardian.189
However, the need to ascertain the male authority and control over womens behavior
places constraints upon this freedom accorded to women. The male guardian of a
woman has a right to intervene and ask for the annulment of a marriage contract on
the ground that the husband is not an equal to or compatible with the woman. Here we
come again to the notion of suitability of a husband and its denition, which in the
prevailing Hana doctrine includes six considerations: descent, Islam, profession,
freedom, good character and wealth or means.190 Thus, although by more indirect and
sophisticated means, the womans choice is also subordinated to male approval.
187
188
189
190
on the school to which a jurist belongs and his personal opinion. The last requirement
usually refers to the sanity of the person and some defects of sexual organs that do not
permit sexual intercourse. As unsuitable can also be considered the following: a non-Arab
man for an Arab woman, a corrupt man for a virtuous woman, a man of a lowly profession
for the daughter of someone with a higher profession. It is also emphasized that suitability
is not a mere recommendation but a legal restriction intended to protect a womans
interests. See e.g. ABD AL ATI, loc. cit. above, fn. 182, pp. 8497; AL-MISRI, loc. cit.
above, fn. 184, pp. 523524; BAKHTIAR, Laleh. Encyclopedia of Islamic Law: A
Compendium of the Views of the Major Schools. Chicago: ABC International Group, Inc.,
KAZI Publications, 1996, pp. 427428.
If a guardian refuses to marry a woman to a suitable groom, a judge has the power to
conclude the marriage without the consent of the guardian.
AL-MISRI, loc. cit. above, fn. 184, p. 523, m.3.15.
IBN ABIDIN, Muhammad Amin Ibn Umar. Radd Al-Muhtar ala al-Durr al-Mukhtar Shah
Tanwir al-Absar. Vol. IV, Beirut: Dar al-Kutub al-Ilmiya, 1994, p. 155.
For a detailed discussion of this aspect of the Hana marriage laws see SIDDIQUI, Mona. Law
and Desire for Social Control: An Insight into the Hana Concept of Kafaa with Reference to
the Fatwa Alamgiri (16641672). In: Yamani, Mai, ed. Feminism and Islam: Legal and
Literary Perspectives. New York: New York University Press, 1996, pp. 4968; SIDDIQUI,
Mona. The Concept of Wilaya in Hana Law: Authority versus Consent in al-Fatwa
al-Alamgiri. 5 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 19981999, pp. 171185.
62
CHAPTER I
Thus, even the majority of conservative authors do not question the necessity of a
womans consent for the conclusion of her marriage contract. The most problematic
issue relates to the role of a guardian in the conclusion of a marriage contract, in particular, from the point of view of those schools which require his participation in the
conclusion of the contract. An interesting analysis of reasons behind this requirement
and therefore a new vision of the role of a guardian is presented in an article by
Mohammad Fadel.191 The principal argument may be summarized as follows: First of
all, he asserts that the guardians role is exclusively a function of majority, or lack
thereof, of the ward, not the gender of the ward, since a guardian is required for both
boys and girls as long as they are minor. The most important difference between male
and female children relates to the rule of emancipation (denition of majority).
Whereas a male child was automatically emancipated upon reaching maturity, a
female was not emancipated until she got married and proved her ability to manage
property. Thus, women were presumed to be unable to manage their nancial affairs
and therefore placed under the supervision of a guardian. However, and here he points
to a contradiction in the reasoning of Maliki jurists, a man who in his daily life demonstrated inability to manage his nancial affairs still enjoyed a right to marry,
although his guardian had the option of annulling his marriage. Thus, he denounces
this difference in treatment of men and women as a major error in legal reasoning
and adds the following note: In some sense it is charitable to describe this as a
mistake and not attribute it to some other, less benign, explanations. In his further
analysis of the role of a guardian he comes to the conclusion that the requirement of a
guardian could make sense if one assumes that the guardian will strike a better
bargain for his principal, which does not imply any assumption about the ability of
a woman to negotiate. Rather it might be a recognition that parties to a marriage,
because of the nature of the relationship, are poorly situated to reach the bargain that
both parties would presumably want to reach. In this connection the recognition by the
Maliki jurists of the possibility for a woman to choose her guardian, including the
possibility to entrust a public authority (e.g. a judge) with the role of a guardian is of
fundamental importance.192 This analysis shows that even in the framework of an
apparently well-established and elaborated doctrine possibilities for improvement are
always present, if one adopts a constructive critical approach.193
Modern national legislation of many Muslim States is based on the traditional
approach. Thus, as far as the conclusion of a marriage is concerned, a strong emphasis
is placed on the invalidity of a marriage concluded under coercion. However, a virgin
191
192
193
63
First of all, the term temptation is a very vague one and can be easily misused by
a guardian to make a case before a judge. Secondly, taking into account the fact that
the majority of judges, if not all of them are male, often equipped with the same
prejudices about female nature and the appropriate role of women in society as the
guardians themselves, it is logical to conclude that judges will generally accept the
guardians argumentation. Thirdly, the husband is dened as an equal, which means
that the above described requirements of the suitability of a match are still applicable
with all possible negative consequences for women. Finally, the very fact that women
are regarded as unable to manage their affairs and as being in need of protection
either of their guardians or husbands places them in a subordinate position not only at
the level of custom and traditions but also at the ofcial, legislative level.
More women-friendly is the Egyptian legislation which, being based on the
Hana school of law, allows women to conclude the marriage contract without an
intermediary of the guardian and does not require his consent. However, the possibility for a guardian to request the annulment of a marriage contract if the husband
is not an equal of the wife, although limited to a certain extent, can still be used to
the detriment of women.
A noticeable development towards the improvement of womens status in this area
represents the new Moroccan Family Code which in essence adopts the modern interpretation of the right to marry and choose a spouse proposed by Mohammad Fadel
and presented above.
3. Rights and Obligations of Spouses during the Marriage
Once a woman is married the question of her rights and obligations during the marriage
arises. Here the major part of efforts is deployed by conservative authors to describe
194
who can be an authoritarian and violent person intimidating his daughter and preventing her
from appointing another guardian, or adapting the medieval procedure of the conclusion of
a marriage contract to the present State structure. This new rule can for instance allow a
woman to conclude a marriage contract herself, without a guardian, making the negotiation
of the marriage contract a regular procedure before a judge, where both parties may entrust
somebody to negotiate on their behalf.
So for example, article 12, paragraph 4 of former Moroccan Law of Personal Status
replaced by new Family Code, articles 12 and 13 of Algerian Personal Status Code.
64
CHAPTER I
and explain duties of women as wives than to accord them any rights.195 The only real
and strongly articulated right of a wife is her right to maintenance,196 which in all
cases includes food, clothing and accommodation.197 However, in return for this right
a wife is required to fulll a number of obligations which place her in a subordinate
position vis--vis her husband. The two main obligations of a wife from which a
variety of other obligations can be derived are the following: to be devoutly obedient
to the husband198 and to satisfy her husbands desire for sexual intercourse. In justifying the requirement of obedience of a wife to her husband the conservative authors
usually refer to his obligation of maintenance, as well as to the above-described
inherent characteristics of women that prevent them from passing a sound judgment
of a situation, in particular in relation to matters beyond child-raising and home
management.
The husbands duty of maintenance and the corresponding duty of a wife to obedience have been discussed in the modernist literature more than any other issue.
Reasons for such an attention can be seen in the fact that rstly, this rule pretends to
be based on a clear text of the Quran, and secondly, it establishes a relationship of
subordination unprecedented in the doctrine of Islamic law.
The following translation of the relevant part of the Quran reects the conservative
and ofcial understanding of it:
Men are the protectors and maintainers of women, because Allah has given the one more
(strength) than the other, and because they support them from their means. Therefore the
righteous women are devoutly obedient and guard in (the husbands) absence what Allah
would have them guard. As to those women on whose part you fear disloyalty and illconduct, admonish them (rst), (next), refuse to share their beds, (and last) beat them
(lightly) ().199
195
196
197
198
199
For example Naseef treats matrimonial rights of women on 5 pages and obligations of
women as wives on 16 pages: NASEEF, loc. cit. above, fn. 176.
This right to maintenance is granted to a woman at any stage of her life: when she is a child
it is her fathers duty to provide for her, when she gets married, the duty is transferred to
the husband. On some instances her son, her brother or the Muslim community will also
fulll this duty.
According to some authors and traditional opinion of several Muslim scholars, the husband
is not even obliged to provide for medical care expenses of his wife, except those linked to
pregnancy and child-birth. See e.g. ABD AL ATI, loc. cit. above, fn. 182, pp. 151157; ALMISRI, loc. cit. above, fn. 184, p. 544, m.11.4; BAKHTIAR, loc. cit. above, fn. 186, pp. 484485;
NASEEF, loc. cit. above, fn. 176, pp. 169173.
The obligation of obedience is restricted to what is lawful and correct in accordance with
the Divine Will. However, the denition of this lawfulness varies very much from one
group of scholars to another. Thus, many scholars will agree that a husband may prevent
his wife from visiting her relatives and friends and receiving them at home, and under
certain circumstances even prevent her from seeing her parents. For the majority of scholars
of this group it is obvious that the permission of a husband is required for a wife to be able
to work, to go outside of the home, to travel. As far as travel is concerned, the opinion of
most conservative authors goes so far as to forbid women to travel alone in any
circumstances. Such is the law, for example, in Saudi Arabia.
English translation of Quran by an ofcial institution of Saudi Arabia: The Presidency of
Islamic Researchers, IFTA, Call and Guidance.
65
It is in the rst place from this verse of the Quran that all rules relating to the wifes
obedience to her husband and the superiority of men over women are derived.200
However, the original Arabic text of the Quran is in no way so clear as it may
appear from this translation and has been interpreted by many modernist scholars
and even by earlier commentators of the Quran so as to convey a more egalitarian
spirit. The majority of arguments are based on the correct understanding of the
meaning of such Arabic terms as qawwam (translated above as protectors and
maintainers because of the superiority of one of them over the other); adribuhunna
(translated above as beat them) and nushuz (translated above as disloyalty and
ill-conduct on the part of wives). The analysis of the grammatical construction of the
sentence is equally important.
In translating the term qawwama modernist authors place emphasis on the material
and moral responsibility of men towards women, but not on their superiority. Thus,
Khaled Abou El Fadl commenting on this term gives the following explanation:
The verse explicitly conditions the status of qiwama to a very particular operative clause
(illa), and the operative clause is the ability to earn and spend. In other words, this is not
an unqualied status that men enjoy, or suffer, just by the virtue of being men. It is something
hinged on certain conditions precedent that needs to be fullled. If they are not fullled,
either because the man is not supporting the family, or because the woman is contributing
nancially to an equal extent, or perhaps because the woman has an equal earning potential
that she choose to forgo, then a mans qiwama cannot exist.201
As far as the term nushaz is concerned, the modernist authors emphasize, although
to a different degree, the gravity of the wifes misconduct.202 The most restrictive
understanding of this term refers only to the case of sexual lewdness upon the testimony of four witnesses.203
Most difculties arise in relation to the word translated above as the beating. Only
one author, as far as it is know to me, proposes another understanding of this term and
200
201
202
203
As already mentioned above, this is not the only verse of the Quran which might be
interpreted as detrimental to womens rights. However, other verses are more contextualized
and apply to particular areas only, whereas this verse is of a more general character.
ABOU EL FADL, Khaled M. Conference of the Books: The Search for Beauty in Islam.
Lanham, New York, Oxford: University of America Press, 2001, p. 273. Similar
interpretations of this term and its signicance are given by many other modernist authors.
See e. g. AL-HIBRI, Azizah. Islamic Law and Custom: Redening Womens Rights. In:
Askin, Kelly D., Koenig, Dorean M., eds. Women and International Human Rights Law.
Vol. III, Ardsley: Transnational Publishers Inc., 2001, pp. 402410. An interesting
comparison between different understandings of this passage is made by Stowasser. She
shows in her study that earlier commentators of the Quran adopted a more women-friendly
interpretation of this verse. With the advancement of time each successive interpreter gave
to it a more and more restrictive meaning. See: STOWASSER, Barbara. The Status of Women
in Early Islam. In: Hussain, F., ed. Muslim Women. St. Martins Press, 1984, pp. 2526.
ENGINEER, Asghar Ali. The Quran, Women and Modern Society. New Delhi: Sterling
Publishers, 1999, quoting different commentators, pp. 5758.
ABOU EL FADL, Conference of the Books, loc. cit. above, fn. 201, pp. 167188. He arrives
at this conclusion through the contextual and systematic analysis of this verse and several
related verses as well as a saying of the Prophet during his nal pilgrimage.
66
CHAPTER I
204
205
206
207
Meaning attributed to this term by Ahmed Ali as quoted in ABOU EL FADL, Conference of
the Books, loc. cit. above, fn. 201, pp. 178179 and ENGINEER, loc. cit. above, fn. 202,
p. 60. Both reject either implicitly or expressly this interpretation.
See e.g. ENGINEER, loc. cit. above, fn. 202, pp. 5864 (emphasizing the contradiction
between permitting wife-beating and the general egalitarian message of the Quran as well
as the contextual and not general character of this permission); ALI, Shaheen Sardar.
Gender and Human Rights in Islam and International Law: Equal Before Allah, Unequal
Before Man? The Hague, Boston, London: Kluwer Law International, 2000, pp. 6370
(analyzing various modernist, women-friendly interpretations of the rst part of this
passage, but completely avoiding the issue of beating); AL-HIBRI, loc. cit. above, fn. 201,
pp. 402410 (she discusses only the rst part of this passage and promises to address the
rest of it, including the issue of wife-beating in a series of subsequent articles).
This view is held, for example, by Abou El Fadl (ABOU EL FADL, Conference of the Books,
loc. cit. above, fn. 201, pp. 167188), Parvez (as quoted in ENGINEER, loc. cit. above, fn.
202, p. 61). However, the details of application of this punishment as well as methods by
which they arrived at this conclusion differ from one author to another. On the basis of
their reasoning it can also be argued and is actually argued by some of them that this
punishment should be applied to women as well as to men.
See e.g. ABOU EL FADL, Conference of the Books, loc. cit. above, fn. 201, p. 299; ENGINEER,
loc. cit. above, fn. 202, pp. 5657 with further references.
67
only countries which attempted to improve the situation and reect in its legislation
some of the modernist ideas. In Morocco article 4 of the Family Code states that the
family shall be headed and guided by both spouses. In Tunisia, the legislator although
maintaining the provision of its legislation declaring the husband head of household,
interprets this role of the husband as a responsibility and instead of requiring obedience
from the wife places emphasis on mutual cooperation between spouses.
4. Dissolution of Marriage
The same argument about the emotional nature of women is often used by conservative
authors to justify the very limited possibilities for women to ask for the dissolution of
a marriage as compared to the almost unrestricted right of a husband to dissolve the
marriage.208 It should be emphasized that issues relating to the dissolution of marriage
are discussed by this group of authors only to a very limited extent, if at all. Without
going into detail of this multifaceted issue, I will just describe some basic features of
the system of the dissolution of a marriage which is currently widely accepted as an
authoritative and authentic Islamic system.
The right to dissolve a marriage is an original right of a husband. All so-called
classical Muslim scholars agree that a husband has a right to divorce his wife by
simply pronouncing a specic formula and is not even obliged to inform the authorities about such a divorce.209 A marriage can also be dissolved by a judge on the
request of a wife on certain restricted grounds, such as insanity, major defects making
sexual intercourse impossible, some other cases of illness, mistreatment and inability
of a husband to fulll his duty of maintenance.210 A wife can divorce from her husband herself only if such a power was delegated to her by him, but she may also
request a divorce in return of a payment of an amount of money agreed between her
and her husband.211
Now we have to recall the difference existing between the Hana school and other
schools in relation to the ability of a woman to conclude a marriage contract herself.
It was stated that the Hana school recognizes this ability of women and although
208
209
210
211
See e.g. DOI, loc. cit. above, fn. 177, p. 95. Other justications include for example the fact
that a man is obliged to pay a dowry, which remains to the wifes disposition; the obligation
of maintenance is also sometimes linked to this issue. See e.g. the reservation entered by
Egypt to article 16 of the CEDAW. Some authors will simply deny that there is any
discrimination in divorce laws: see e. g. MAHMOOD, Tahir. The Grandeur of Womanhood in
Islam, p. 11.
For an overview of classical opinions of Muslim scholars on divorce see, for example:
ABD AL ATI, loc. cit. above, fn. 182, pp. 222243.
It should be mentioned that even in these restricted cases the annulment is often further
complicated by some additional requirements or simply by the difculty for a women to
bring necessary proof in support of her claim.
It is clear that the former will rarely be the case while the latter will become a commercial
deal where a husband will refuse to grant a divorce in order to get more money from his
wife, because, although the procedure of a wife buying a divorce may occur before a
judge, it is husband who, according to the traditional opinion of Muslim scholars, actually
grants the divorce. BAHTIAR, loc. cit. above, fn. 186, pp. 517518.
68
CHAPTER I
making it subject to certain control allows women more freedom in this respect than
other schools. At this stage, I have to emphasize the difference existing between the
Hana school and other schools in relation to the possibility for women to apply for
dissolution of a marriage by a judge. This possibility is limited in the traditional doctrine of the Hana school only to cases of impotence and other diseases preventing
sexual intercourse and procreation. Some later jurists of this school also added the
case of insanity to this list.212 Nevertheless, it is obvious that the freedom given to
women at the stage of the conclusion of a marriage has to be paid by a price of virtual
impossibility for a woman to get out of the marriage. Even cases of lack of maintenance
and mistreatment are not reasons enough to allow for a divorce by a judge.
The divorce is therefore made very easy for a husband and very difcult for a
wife. Furthermore, the nancial situation of a divorced woman can be very precarious,
since in some cases the right to nancial support from the husband is either not
recognized at all, or not beyond the waiting period of three months.213
The difculty of dealing with the issue of the dissolution of marriage is demonstrated by the fact that even modernist authors, when faced with this issue, have
a general tendency to emphasize the protection accorded to women in the case of
dissolution of a marriage contract. This, however, does not resolve the problem of
the inequality inherent to such a system placing the decision almost exclusively in
the hands of husbands. Nevertheless, at least on one occasion a new interpretation of
Quranic injunctions dealing with this issue was proposed.214 According to this interpretation, there is nothing in the Quran which would prevent women from having the
same rights to dissolve a marriage as men. This interpretation is based on following
theses. Firstly, none of the Quranic verses explicitly grants men the power to divorce
women. Rather, they seem to assume it. These verses are formulated in such a way
as not to empower men, but to mitigate their discretion. Secondly, the Quran often
refers to divorce or reconciliation between spouses as a collective decision of both
wife and husband, which indicates a normative moral trajectory. Thus, the Quran
assumes on the basis of the already existing practice that men will divorce women.
This does not necessarily mean that only men can divorce. Why cant we argue that
the consent of women is necessary for a divorce as well? Or, why cant we argue
that women shall have an equal power to divorce as long as they share with men the
obligation of qiwama?215
In modern national legislation of Muslim States the traditional approach is
dominant. However, various procedural measures are often introduced with the aim
to mitigate possible negative consequences for women. Many States recognize in
their legislation the widest possible range of grounds on which a judge can be asked
212
213
214
215
In all cases before granting a divorce, a judge shall ordain a waiting period to see whether
some improvements in the state of the husband will occur. Thus, for example, in the case
of impotence this waiting period is laid down at one year.
ABD AL ATI, loc. cit. above, fn. 182, p. 246; BAKHTIAR, loc. cit above, fn. 186, pp. 476
483 with further references.
ABOU EL FADL, Conference of the Books, loc. cit. above, fn. 201, pp. 265277
Id., p. 276
69
for a divorce as well as the largest possible powers of a judge to grant a divorce
without the consent of a husband. Thus, although the traditional view of the Hana
school allows for dissolution of marriage on the petition of a wife without consent
of a husband only in the case of impotence and other similar diseases and under a
condition that the wife was not aware of these defects at the time of a marriage, in
Muslim countries where the Hana school is the prevailing one and its opinions
form a basis for the legislation in issues of personal status, the modern legislator
nevertheless introduced some additional grounds for divorce by a judge. For example
the legislation of Egypt, although based on the Hana school, recognizes other
defects on the part of a husband, injury, absence of a husband and the non-payment
of maintenance as additional grounds for granting divorce to a wife without asking
the consent of a husband. Furthermore, dissolution of marriage on the initiative of a
wife through the nancial settlement is also made subject to certain restrictions in
many Muslim States. Thus, the legislation of some States species the maximum
limit of the material consideration payable by a wife to a husband. This material
consideration can be determined by court without the consent of a husband if he
unreasonably refuses to come to an agreement. Finally, if according to many
traditionalist authors after reaching an agreement about nancial settlement it is the
husband who pronounces the divorce, the legislation of many States grants this right
to declare the marriage dissolved to a court.
5. Custody and Guardianship of Children
According to the opinion of the majority of conservative scholars, a divorced wife is
only entitled to custody of her young children; the guardianship of children always
remains with the father or another male relative.216 In practical terms it means that
children just live with the mother. The father is not only obliged to pay maintenance
for his children (provide food, clothes and other necessary material support), but also
remains the decision-maker in all affairs relating to the childrens life, such as studies,
school, travel, education etc. This limited ability of a mother to take care of her children can only be exercised when the children are very young. Usually this age till
which the mother is entitled to custody is the age of puberty for boys and the age of
marriage for girls.217 Anyway, a woman looses her right to custody if she remarries.218
Once again, the justication is based on some inherent characteristics of women, in
216
217
218
ABD AL ATI, loc. cit. above, fn. 182, pp. 198203, 246; BAKHTIAR, loc. cit. above, fn. 186,
469475
This is the accepted Maliki opinion. The majority Hana opinion sets this limit at the age
of seven years for boys and nine years for girls; the Schai school does not set a precise
age, but says that a child shall remain with the mother till he or she is able to make a choice
between both parents; Hanbali also leaves the choice of the parent to the child, but say that
it should be made at the age of seven till which the child remains with his or her mother.
Some authors limit this age even to two years, the age till which a child should be weaned.
See the Jafari ruling for boys. BAKHTIAR, loc. cit. above, fn. 186, pp. 471472.
ESPOSITO, John L. Women in Muslim Family Law. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press,
1982, p. 37.
70
CHAPTER I
particular her weakness, and thus inability to protect her child, as well as her intellectual
capacities, which would prevent her from educating the child and preparing him or her
for life. In the case of remarriage it is said that she will be so preoccupied with fullling
her duties toward a new husband, that she will have no time for her children. In sum,
custody and care for children are presented in the apologetic tradition as a burden from
which women are liberated through the above described-rulings.219
The legislator in many Muslim countries attempted to soften this rule by giving the
children the right to decide about the appropriate parent to stay with after they reach
the age when the mother usually looses her custody. Laws also often emphasize
interests of the child and say that the rule about the termination of a mothers custody
can be disregarded if it is in the best interests of the child. The problem however, is
that even when the mother can have custody of her children she can almost never
obtain the guardianship of children. Even when the father is not able to exercise the
guardianship, be it because of his death or because of his bad character and behavior,
the guardianship will usually be attributed to another male relative but not to the
mother. Women are regarded as unable to fulll the duties of a guardian. This is linked
to the above-mentioned thesis about the inability of women to manage their affairs, in
particular nancial affairs.
This division of domains between men and women is in contradiction with other
provisions of Islamic law, for example, those allowing women to manage their own
property without any control. Since this rule is in no way expressly supported by the
Quran, it should be easier to modify it in particular placing greater emphasis on the
interests of the child.
6. Polygamy
On the basis of several passages from the Quran conservative authors insist that the
practice of polygamy is not only legitimate in Islam but simply could not be forbidden: It is impossible to forbid something which is permitted by God. Those who
defend the maintenance of this practice would say that polygamy according to the
prescriptions of the Quran is more restricted than the practice of the pre-Islamic
Arabia, because it limits the number of wives to four. The argument is also made that
the polygamy is better than extra-marital relationships which lead to the break-up of
the family, sexually transmitted diseases etc.220
The message contained in the Quran in relation to the polygamy is however not as
express and unambiguous as conservative authors tend to represent it. The modernist
authors interpret the relevant passages from the Quaran as an interdiction of polygamy, because one of the requirements for polygamy is to treat co-wives justly and
equally which is a condition impossible to fulll according to modernist authors.221
219
220
221
71
This interpretation can also easily be supported by the text of the Quran itself. The
nal part of the sentence addressing the issue of polygamy states that having only one
wife is more suitable because it prevents from doing injustice.222 It is interesting to
note, that this phrase is interpreted by many conservative authors as implying only
nancial equality, meaning providing for co-wives equal material support, although
the Arabic term adl used in the Quran in this context is clearly associated with justice in large sense and has never been reduced to its material aspect. In order to
impose this reading of Quran permissive of polygamy, some authors go so far as to
introduce it into translations of Quran: If you fear lest you become unfair, then you
shall be content with only one, or with what you already have. Additionally, you are
thus more likely to avoid nancial hardship.223 The progressive understanding of the
Qurans message limiting polygamy gains more and more support, so that even at the
ofcial level this opinion is taken seriously. The interdiction of polygamy in Tunisia
was made possible on the basis of this modern interpretation. A similar view was
adopted by the High court of Bangladesh and transmitted to the parliament for the
adoption as a law. In some Muslim States polygamy is subject to several restrictions
and especially to the authorization of a judge or of the wife or both. Although all
these restrictions and authorizations do not eliminate the discriminatory practice as
such, they are nevertheless often an effective way for restricting this practice and
moving gradually to its complete elimination. As with many other cultural and traditional practices, it should be kept in mind that a high degree of caution is required in
attempts to modify and eliminate them in order not to bring new and more profound
suffering and inequalities.
7. Conclusions
As for the conservative visions of the status of women, the male biases are clearly visible not only in the fact of the subordinated position accorded to women, but also in a
stronger emphasis placed on rights of men and corresponding duties of women, and
not on the rights of women and corresponding duties of men. Thus, although maintenance is dened as a duty of men with a possibility for women to make certain claims,
according to the majority Hana opinion, the non-fulllment of this duty is not even a
ground for a wife to claim divorce. Furthermore, in return for maintenance the wife
has to sacrice almost all her rights being placed in a position similar to a domestic
servant or even slave. Such rights of a wife as a fair and honorable treatment, mutual
agreement and consultation in all matters relating to family life, which are expressly
articulated in the primary text, in the Quran are either not mentioned at all or have only
222
223
72
CHAPTER I
the status of moral injunctions, advices to husbands with no consequences for them in
the case of non-respect. The inequality of value and legal force accorded to these
rights of a wife and the right of a husband to the obedience of his wife the slightest
detail of which is dened and has legal consequences attached to it is agrant.
The above presentation of new interpretations of some issues relating to the status of
women shows that Islam and gender equality are not two fundamentally irreconcilable
concepts. Islam and Islamic law by their very nature presuppose, allow and even require
the development of new interpretations. Unfortunately, for different reasons this diversity of views or certain parts of it is not only ignored, but often even suppressed by
the ofcial ruling elite in Muslim States. My aim in this chapter was not to advocate
one or another reform proposal but to show that the possibility for a non-discriminatory
interpretation of the Quranic message relating to women is possible and actually exists
among Muslim scholars. Moreover, even at the level of ofcial discourses in Muslim
States, in their internal legislation, certain advancement, modern re-interpretation
and diversity is visible.224 Thus, it is possible to afrm that despite all impediments and
difculties Islam and Islamic law remain a very multifaceted and constantly developing phenomenon, a characteristic which is often overlooked by Western societies,
politicians and even international lawyers who regard it as a xed and rigid block.
224
See e.g. the recognition of the interpretation forbidding polygamy in Tunisia and in
Bangladesh; restrictions placed on the unilateral right of a husband to dissolve the marriage
in Malaysia and the suppression of all restrictions existing before with regard to the right
of women to marry and choose a spouse in Morocco.
73
rights law. Thus, nobody will deny that the recognition of the legal personality of
women, their rights to participate in the life of society, to inherit, to participate in the
choice of their husbands in a society that denied womans humanity signied a step
forward. However, the later adoption of the medieval understanding of womens role
in society and their rights as an authentic and ofcial one resulted in a degradation of
womens status to a position of a domestic servant. In contemporary Muslim societies
many advocates of womens rights call for the adoption of legislation upon the example
of Western States arguing that the status of women in the West is that of real equality.
I do not deny that the situation of women in the West is signicantly better than in
Muslim States and that legislative reforms be they secular or based on one or another
new interpretation of the message of the Quran can lead to short-term improvements.
However, I have to re-call what was said in previous parts about the feminist movement and feminist critiques of the legislation concerning women not only at the
national level, but also of such an apparently progressive international instrument as
the CEDAW. At the time of its adoption the CEDAW was probably a very progressive
document which met few, if any, critiques from the point of view of its subject-matter.
Nowadays, feminist movements advocate for new rights and provisions to be adopted
at the international law level. It is not unimaginable today that the CEDAW will be
modied or somehow completed one day. In this context a situation can arise when
Muslim States will through a long process of re-interpretation and social re-orientation
come to a new Islamic understanding of womens rights and status and adopt new
legislation which corresponds to the present requirements of human rights law. On its
side, the feminist movement would succeed in bringing certain of its new claims to be
recognized at international level and adopted either as an amendment of the CEDAW
or as a new international treaty. As a result, Muslim States will again nd themselves
in conict with the requirements of human rights law, Islam again being the obstacle.
Should Muslim States re-initiate the entire process once again? In my opinion, the real
solution for the issue of the status of women in Muslim societies lies not in the competition for a better legislation, but in the reorientation of understanding of the nature
of law, whereby the famous expression attributed to Abu Hanifa, the founder of the
Hana school of Islamic law, should become a constant remainder: I believe that my
opinion is right, but possibly wrong, and your opinion is wrong, but possibly right..
If a State chooses to implement in its legislation Islamic law, it should place
emphasis on the understanding of Islamic law not as a compilation of rules, but as a
continuing process of the search for just and equitable solutions in concrete cases, the
search for the Divine Will, the understanding which characterized Islamic law at its
origins.225 How can this be done in practice? Is the realization of such a project at all
realistic in the contemporary State-centered world of centralized States? A detailed
225
The essence of this enterprising is very well expressed in the following advice reproduced
by Abou El Fadl in one of his books and attributed to his teachers (Shaykhs): Search for
God with condence and determination, but never allow yourself the arrogance of believing
you can ever capture Gods full majesty. Yield to God with humility, and never claim to
know the will of God with absolute certainty. () Know that it is beautiful to seek the truth,
but every time you claim to have found it, you are irting with a lie, andrisking the ugliness
of conceit. ABOU EL FADL, Conference of the Books, loc. cit. above, fn. 201, pp. 350351.
74
CHAPTER I
answer to these questions goes beyond the scope of present research. However some
implications of this proposition on the compliance of Muslim States with human
rights standards on the status of women and on the supervision and monitoring of this
compliance will be discussed in the concluding Chapter.
II
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES:
SOME THEORETICAL ISSUES
How are we to reconcile the act of justice that must always concern singularity, individuals,
irreplaceable groups and lives, the other or myself as other, in a unique situation, with
rule, norm, value or the imperative of justice which necessarily have a general form, even
if this generality prescribes a singular application in each case?
Derrida, Force of Law, p. 949 (emphasis in original)
76
CHAPTER II
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
77
226
227
228
229
230
231
This denition is given in article 2, paragraph 1 (d) of the Vienna Convention on the Law
of Treaties (hereafter referred to as the Vienna Convention) which is nowadays accepted
as a codication of the rules of general international law on reservations. The Vienna
Convention was signed on 23 May 1969: UN Doc. A/CONF.39/11/Add.2 and came into
force in 1980.
See e.g. BEHNSEN, Alexander, Das Vorbehaltsrecht vlkerrechtlicher Vertrge. Vorschlag
einer Reform, Berlin: Duncker & Humblot, 2007, Kapitel 2; HORN, Frank. Reservations
and Interpretative Declarations to Multilateral Treaties. Amsterdam, New York, Oxford,
Tokyo: North-Holland, 1988, pp. 78; KHNER, Rolf. Vorbehalte zu multilateralen
vlkerrechtlichen Vertrgen. Beitrge zum auslndischen ffentlichen Recht und
Vlkerrecht, Bd. 91, Heidelberg: Springer-Verlag, 1986, pp. 5364; RUDA, Jos Maria.
Reservations to Treaties. 146 RdC 1975 (III), pp. 11112.
See the resolution adopted by the Council of the League of Nations on 17 June 1927:
Document C.266.(2) 1927.V., LoN OJ, July 1927, pp. 800801. More about the work of the
League of Nations on reservations see in: HORN, loc. cit. above fn. 227, p. 15; KHNER,
Vorbehalte, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 5761; RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 112115.
Adopted on 22 May 1969 by the UN Conference on the Law of Treaties held at Vienna in
1968 and 1969: UN Doc. A/Conf.39/11 and Add. 1.
The nal text of the articles on reservations was adopted in 1965, although some minor
amendments were made in 1966. For the text with commentary see YbILC 1966, Vol. II,
pp. 189190; 202209.
The issue of the relationship and distinction between reservations and interpretative
declarations is a very complicated one and goes beyond the scope of the present research.
For more information see a very detailed report presented by the Special Rapporteur of the
ILC in the framework of the study of Reservations to Treaties: Third report on Reservations
to Treaties by Alain Pellet, UN Doc. A/CN.4/491/Add. 1 & Add.2 & Add.3 & Add.4 with
further references.
78
CHAPTER II
2. Theories
To say what a reservation is does not explain what effects it has. International law
knows two major theories on reservations.232 One of them, the so-called unanimity
rule, requires acceptance of a reservation proposed by one State by all the States parties to a treaty in order for the reserving State to become a party to that treaty and for
the reservation to become operative.233
The second theory has been developed on a regional level in the framework of
the Pan American Union (the predecessor of the Organization of American States).
This Pan American system of reservations inuenced very much the evolution of the
regime of reservations in international law in general, and forms a basis of the regime
of reservations in modern international law. According to this system a State which
accompanied its signature or ratication of a treaty by a reservation may become a
party to this treaty if the reservation is accepted by at least one State party to the treaty.
An objection from another State party to that reservation did not preclude the reserving State from becoming a party to the treaty.234 The following rules on the judicial
effects of reservations were formulated in a report and Draft Regulations approved by
the Governing Board of the Pan American Union:
With respect to the judicial status of treaties ratied, with reservations, which have not
been accepted, the Governing Board of the Pan American Union understands that:
1. The treaty shall be in force, in the form in which it was signed, as between those
countries which ratify it without reservations, in the terms in which it was originally
drafted and signed.
2. It shall be in force as between the governments which ratify it with reservations and
the signatory States which accept the reservations in the form in which the treaty
may be modied by said reservations.
232
233
234
The Soviet theory on reservations the absolute sovereignty theory according to which
States have an absolute right to make reservations is not addressed here. This theory was
rejected during the preparatory stage of the Vienna Convention even by the Soviet authors
themselves and has, therefore, only historical signicance. According to this theory the
right to make reservations is an expression of the sovereignty of a State. Therefore,
reservations become valid irrespective of any reactions of other States. Reservations have
thus a character of unilateral acts. More about this doctrine see in HORN, Frank, loc. cit.
above, fn. 140, pp. 2830 or original works e.g. BORISOV, S. Suverennoe pravo gosudarstv
uchastnikov mnogostoronnih dogovorov zaiavlat ogovorki. Sovietskoe Gosudarstvo
I Pravo 1952, pp. 6469.
One of the best formulations of the unanimity rule can be found in the report submitted by
the Committee of Experts to the Council of the League of Nations and approved in the
above mentioned resolution adopted on 17 June 1927 (fn. 228): In order that any
reservation whatever may be validly made in regard to a clause of a treaty, it is essential
that this reservation should be accepted by all the contracting parties, as would have been
put forward in the course of the negotiations. If not, the reservation, like the signature to
which it is attached, is null and void. LoN OJ, 1927, p. 881.
It should be noted that this system has been developed over several years. The year 1927
when the International Commission of American Jurists approved a Draft on Treaties
can be seen as a starting point. More detail about the historical development of the Pan
American system of reservations see e.g. in RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 115133.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
79
3. It shall not be in force between a government which may have ratied with
reservations and another which may have already ratied, and which does not
accept such reservations.235
The principal aim of the unanimity rule has been described as protection of the
absolute integrity of a treaty.236 The Pan American system sacrices integrity of a treaty
in favor of the promotion of interaction between States, in favor of universality of
participation. In both cases the sovereign will of States forms the basis of the system.
All other attempts to develop a new or different regime of reservations are no more
than a combination, in one manner or another, of these two systems. The only really
new element which is also contained in the modern regime of reservations is the
object and purpose test. This object and purpose test appeared for the rst time in the
advisory opinion of the ICJ on reservations to the Convention on the Prevention and
Punishment of the Crime of Genocide237 delivered on May 28th, 1951.238 In its request
for an advisory opinion, the General Assembly of the UN formulated the following
questions:
I. Can the reserving State be regarded as being a party to the Convention while still
maintaining its reservation if the reservation is objected to by one or more of the
parties to the Convention but not by others?
II. If the answer to Question I is in the afrmative, what is the effect of the reservation
as between the reserving State and:
(a) The parties which object to the reservation?
(b) Those which accept it?
III. What would be the legal effect as regards the answer to Question I if an objection
to a reservation is made:
(a) By a signatory which has not yet ratied?
(b) By a State entitled to sign or accede but which has not yet done so?239
All three questions were expressly limited to the Convention on the Prevention and
Punishment of the Crime of Genocide.240 The answer given by the ICJ to the last question is not relevant to the present research and will not therefore be addressed further.
After having observed that Question I does not refer to the possibility of making
reservations which according to the ICJ is implicitly admitted,241 it turns to the core of
the question, namely, the possibility for a State to maintain a reservation objected to
by some parties to the Convention while remaining a party to the Convention. The ICJ
235
236
237
238
239
240
241
ICJ, Reservations to the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide, Pleadings, Oral arguments, Documents, 1951, p. 17.
This thesis has been questioned to a certain extent by some scholars. See e.g. HORN, loc. cit.
above, fn. 227, pp. 2425.
The Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide adopted on
9 December 1948; 78 UNTS 277.
ICJ Reports, 1951, pp. 1569.
Id., p. 16.
Id., p. 16 and 20.
Id., pp. 2123.
80
CHAPTER II
particularly emphasized the special character of the Convention which was intended
to be universal in scope and its purely humanitarian object.242 The particular object
and purpose of the Convention imply that it was the intention of the General
Assembly, and of the States which adopted it that as many States as possible should
participate.243 The ICJ therefore afrmed that the regime of reservations applicable
to this type of treaty allows for very wide freedom in making reservations.
The freedom in making reservations is, however, limited by the criterion of
the compatibility of a reservation with the object and purpose of the treaty.244 The
ICJ concludes, therefore, that no absolute answer can be given to Question
I245 and proceeds to the examination of the second question. After having recalled
that no State can be bound by a reservation to which it has not consented, the ICJ
states that it will be up to each individual State to decide, when objecting, whether
the reserving State is, or is not, a party to the Convention.246 The ICJ noted, in this
connection, the following:
It must clearly be assumed that the contracting States are desirous of preserving intact at
least what is essential to the object of the Convention; should this desire be absent, it is
quite clear that the Convention itself would be impaired both in its principle and its
application.247
Finally, the ICJ mentioned that a State can object to a reservation without claiming
that the reservation is incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention.
In this case, the reserving and the objecting States might come to an understanding
that the Convention will enter into force between them, except for the clauses affected
by the reservation.248
By introducing the criterion of compatibility with the object and purpose of a treaty
the judges attempted to protect the integrity of a treaty without affecting signicantly
the universality of participation promoted by the Pan American system. Moreover, the
object and purpose test introduces an objective element into the regime of reservations
and places emphasis on the interests of the international community as a whole, on the
common interests of all States as a group, and not only as individual States.
The regime of reservations codied by the Vienna Convention mostly adopts the
solution proposed by the ICJ, in its advisory opinion, and is therefore based on the
242
243
244
245
246
247
248
Id., p. 23. In this connection the ICJ emphasized: In such a convention the contracting
States do not have any interest on their own; they merely have, one and all, a common
interest, namely, the accomplishment of those high purposes which are the raison dtre of
the convention.
Id., p. 24.
Id. The object and purpose of the Convention thus limit both the freedom of making
reservations and that of objecting to them.
Id., p. 26. The appraisal of a reservation and the effect of objections that might be made
to it depend upon the particular circumstances of each individual case.
Id.
Id., p. 27.
Id.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
81
Pan American system restricted by the compatibility criterion. Some traces of the
unanimity rule can however be found as well.249
B. The Vienna Convention Regime
1. Permissibility of Reservations
a) General Observations
According to the Vienna Convention regime any reservation shall fulll two conditions
in order to become binding or opposable.250 Firstly, it must be admissible in principle.
Secondly, it must be accepted by another party. The rst condition, namely the admissibility of a reservation, which is more often called the permissibility of a reservation,
is addressed in article 19 of the Vienna Convention:
A State may, when signing, ratifying, accepting, approving, or acceding to a treaty, formulate
a reservation unless:
(a) the reservation is prohibited by the treaty;
(b) the treaty provides that only specied reservations, which do not include the
reservation in question, may be made; or
(c) in cases not falling under sub-paragraphs (a) and (b), the reservation is incompatible with the object and purpose of the treaty.
249
250
251
The unanimity rule is applicable in the case of restricted multilateral treaties: article 20,
paragraph 2 of the Vienna Convention.
It means that the reservation can be invoked as legally binding by the reserving State
vis--vis all accepting States and vice versa. More about the effects of reservations
and acceptance see below II.B.2.
See, for example, the analysis of article 19 and of the terminology used therein in YbILC, 1962,
Vol. II, pp. 62, 65 and Vol. I, p. 149; 1965, vol. II, p. 52; FITUMAURICE, Gerald G. The Law and
Procedure of the International Court of Justice, 19511954: Treaty Interpretation and Other
Treaty Points. XXXIII BYbIL 1957, pp. 274275; DETTER, Ingrid. Essays on the Law
of Treaties. Stockholm, London: P.A. Norstedt & Sners frlag, Sweet & Maxwell,1967,
82
CHAPTER II
b) Compatibility Test
(1) Doctrinal Debate
The rst two paragraphs of article 19 can be applied without any difculty.252 The
application of the compatibility test is however very problematic. One of the main
difculties relates to the fact that the Vienna Convention establishes no general procedure for the authoritative determination of the nature of reservations.253 Despite
numerous proposals and initiatives during the preparatory stage of the Vienna
Convention, this question has been left open.254 From this ambiguity of the text of the
Vienna Convention, a doctrinal debate between the so-called opposability and permissibility schools arose. In very general terms it can be summarized as follows.
According to the opposability school the validity of reservations depends solely on
the acceptance of reservations by other States parties.255 More precisely it means that
The validity of reservations depends, under the Conventions system, on whether the
reservation is or is not accepted by another State, not on the fulllment of the condition
for its admission on the basis of its compatibility with the object and purpose of the treaty.
252
253
254
255
pp. 5051; IMBERT, Pierre-Henri. Les rserves aux traits multilatraux: Evolution du droit
et de la pratique depuis lavis consultatif donn par la Cour Internationale de Justice le 28
mai 1951. Paris: Pdone, 1979, pp. 8386; RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 179183.
Alain Pellet also mentions this problem in his Fifth Report without going into much detail:
The use of the verb formulate rather than make in the above provisions is the result of a
deliberate choice: the authors of the Convention wanted to make it clear that a reservation
is not sufcient in itself and produces effects (hence is made) only if it is either accepted
or expressly authorized by the treaty. This choice does not, of course, solve every problem
() A/CN.4/508/Add.3, paras. 228229, p. 6; nally he expressly adheres to this vision
in his Tenth Report: A/CN.4/558/Add.2, paras. 201206, pp. 2527.
It should just be mentioned in this connection that article 19 (b) of the Vienna Convention
relates to a preclusive authorization of reservations, in other words, to treaties permitting
reservations only of certain kind or to certain provisions, whereby reservations of another
kind or to other provisions are prohibited: See the insertion of the word only in the Draft
Articles at the Vienna Conference (A/CONF.39/C.1./L.136). See also UN Doc. A/16309/
Rev.1, YbILC, 1966, Vol. II, p. 207. Some difculties might also arise in relation to the
application of these at rst glance simple rules. They are, however, less important than
those related to article 19 (c), and to deal with them would go beyond the scope of this
research. For more detail see, for example: GREIG DW, Robert Garran. Reservations:
Equity as a Balancing Factor? 16 Australian Yearbook of International Law 1995, pp. 58,
64, and the Tenth Report, rst part of which discusses denition and exact understanding
of article 19 (a) and (b): A/CN.4/558.
Other difculties arising in connection with incompatible reservations will be analyzed
later. See, in particular, fn. 268 and the accompanying text.
YbILC, 1962, Vol. I, pp. 162165; 1965, Vol. II, p. 52; A/CONF.39/C.1/L.133/rev.1.
COMBACAU, Jean. Le droit des traits. P.U.F., Que sais-je N 2613, Paris, 1991, p. 60;
GAJA, Giorgio. Unruly Treaty Reservations. In: International Law at the Time of
Codication. Essays in honor of Roberto Ago. Milano: Dott.A. Guiffr Editore, 1987,
pp. 313320; REUTER, Paul. Introduction to the Law of Treaties. Publication of the Graduate
Institute of International Studies, Geneva, London, New York: Kegan Paul International,
1995, second rev. edition, p. 82; IMBERT, Les reserves, loc. cit. above, fn. 251, pp. 134137;
RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p. 190; ZEMANEK, Karl. Some Unresolved Questions
Concerning Reservations in the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties. In: Makarczyk,
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
83
These simple conclusions justify our regarding Article 19, subparagraph (c), as a mere
doctrinal assertion, which may serve as a basis for guidance to States regarding acceptance of reservations, but no more than that.256
In contrast, the permissibility school defends the thesis that the permissibility of
reservations can be determined objectively, independently of reactions of other States
parties.257 In fact, the difference between these two schools is already evident in the
use of terminology. Supporters of the opposability school use, very frequently, the
expression validity of reservation. Those who represent the permissibility school
use either the term permissibility or opposability in relation to reservations. They
avoid intentionally the expression validity of reservation which confuses these two
notions.258 According to the permissibility school
The issue of permissibility is the preliminary issue. It must be resolved by reference to
the treaty and is essentially an issue of treaty interpretation; it has nothing to do with the
question of whether, as a matter of policy, other Parties nd the reservation acceptable or
not. () The issue of opposability is the secondary issue and pre-supposes that the
reservation is permissible. Whether a Party chooses to accept the reservation, () is a
matter for a policy decision and, as such, not subject to the criteria governing permissibility
and not subject to judicial review.259
Without pretending to resolve this very complicated doctrinal debate, I would like
just to emphasize some, in my view, very important aspects. First of all, the permissibility schools theory seems to correspond better to the interpretation based on the
travaux prparatoires, given above, to article 19 of the Vienna Convention.260 An additional argument in favor of the thesis forwarded by the permissibility school is the
interpretation of article 19 and its relationship to articles 20 and 21 in the light of the
principle of effectiveness. The provision of article 19 (c) has, in fact, no relevance if
one admits that this provision is no more than a doctrinal assertion.261 Another argument is based on the interpretation of the phrase a reservation established with regard
256
257
258
259
260
261
Jerzy, ed. Essays in International Law in Honor of Judge Manfred Lachs. The Hague,
Boston, Lancaster: Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1984, pp. 331333.
RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p. 190. Emphasis added.
One of the main representatives of the permissibility school is Sir Derek Bowett: BOWETT,
Derek, W. Reservations to Non-Restricted Multilateral Treaties. BYbIL 19761977,
pp. 6792. See also HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, in particular pp. 111122. Overwhelming
majority of human rights activists also supports this school. See, for example, SIMMA,
Bruno. Reservations to Human Rights Treaties: Some Recent Developments. In: Hafner,
G. Loibl, G., Rest, A., Sucharipa-Behrmann, L., Zemanek, K., eds. Liber Amicorum
Professor Seidl-Hohenveldern in honor of his 80th birthday. Leiden: Kluwer Law
International, 1998, p. 663.
See, for example, critics of the term validity by representatives of the United Kingdom:
UN Doc A/C.6/48/SR.24, para. 42.
BOWETT, loc. cit. above, fn. 257, p. 88.
See above II.B.1.a).
GIEGERICH, Thomas. Vorbehalte zu Menschenrechtsabkommen: Zulssigkeit, Gltigkeit
und Prfungskompetenzen von Vertragsgremien. 55 ZaRV 1995, pp. 725726;
REDGWELL, Catherine J. Universality or Integrity? Some Reections on Reservations to
General Multilateral Treaties. 64 BYbIL 1993, p. 261.
84
CHAPTER II
to another party in accordance with articles 19, 20 and 23 contained in article 21 of the
Vienna Convention. This phrase implies that rules formulated in article 21 apply only
to reservations which comply with the requirements of article 19: to permissible reservations. A prohibited reservation formulated contrary to article 19, is not established
in accordance with that article and article 21 will not apply to such a reservation.
Incompatible reservations are, therefore, treated separately and cannot be accepted.262
In conclusion, I will just make some general observations. Of course, the solution
chosen by the opposability school is more appropriate in practical terms. In the
absence of any procedure for the establishment of the compatibility of reservations,
States remain the ultimate judges. However, in its attempt to simplify and resolve some
problems in practical terms the opposability school ignores and overlooks some
signicant features of the regime.
The theory developed by the permissibility school shows a number of deciencies
in practical terms, but it admits them. They do not destroy the logic and structure of
the regime. Moreover, surprisingly enough, instead of being content with the solution of leaving everything to their discretion States, in practice, develop attitudes
which conrm the thesis proposed by the permissibility school and thus provide
answers to some unresolved questions. Some examples will be given below when
the practice developed by States parties to the CEDAW is analyzed. Here it shall be
emphasized that the main difculty inherent in the theory developed by the permissibility school relates to the question of the procedure for determining the compatibility of reservations.
(2) Procedure for the Determination of the Compatibility of Reservations
(a) General Observations. As already mentioned above, the Vienna Convention
prescribes no particular procedure for the determination of the compatibility of
reservations. Based on this gap the supporters of the opposability school developed
an interpretation according to which the drafters of the Vienna Convention preferred
to leave the decision about the compatibility of reservations to the discretion of States
parties. A detailed analysis of travaux prparatoires reveals, however, another reality.
In fact various proposals as to the appropriate procedure for the determination of the
compatibility were made during the drafting process, including those which favored
the determination by individual States, as well as those which pleaded for collective
or objective determination.263 Finally, none of these proposals was adopted and the
question has been deliberately left open. In the absence of a regulation, the issue of
compatibility would in most cases be decided by States. The solution proposed by
262
263
HIGGINS, Rosalyn, Introduction to GARDNER, J.P., ed. Human Rights as General Norms and
a States Rights to Opt Out: Reservations and Objections to Human Rights Conventions.
London: British Institute of International and Comparative Law, 1997, p. xx; REDGWELL,
Universality or Integrity, loc. cit. above, fn. 261, p. 261. Same view has been expressed by
James Crawford during the discussion of the Second Report of Alain Pellet in the ILC:
YbILC, 1997, Vol. I, para. 81, p. 188, and nally Tenth Report A/CN.4/558/Add.2,
para.203, p. 26.
YbILC, 1962, Vol. I, pp. 162163; UN Doc. A/CONF.39/11, p. 128, 133.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
85
the opposability school will therefore be applied in practice in most cases. The
absence of an express regulation does not, however, mean the support of subjective
determination by individual States264 and permits the development of other procedures
for the determination of compatibility, which could lead to the establishment of a
customary rule in relation to multilateral treaties in general, or a particular group of
treaties. As a next step, some of the most important tendencies with regard to the
procedural aspect of the determination of compatibility in international law in general,
are presented.
Some treaties prescribe themselves a general procedure for the determination of the
compatibility of reservations. The best example, from the area of human rights treaties, is the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination.265 Article 20 (2) of this Convention states:
A reservation incompatible with the object and purpose of this Convention shall not be
permitted, nor shall a reservation the effect of which would inhibit the operation of any of
the bodies established by this Convention be allowed. A reservation shall be considered
incompatible or inhibitive if at least two thirds of the States Parties to this Convention
object to it.
264
265
266
CAMERON, Iain & HORN, Frank. Reservations to the European Convention on Human
Rights: The Belilos Case. 33 German Yearbook of International Law 1990, p. 89.
Adopted and opened for signature and ratication by General Assembly resolution 2106
A (XX) of 21 December 1965, entered into force on 4 January 1969. 660 UNTS 195.
An interesting new argument is developing in the modern international law. This argument
consists in attribution to dispute settlement clauses of certain treaties of such a central role
that a reservation to them should be regarded as incompatible with the object and purpose
of a treaty. This would obviously be the case if the very object of a treaty is to establish a
dispute settlement mechanism (see e.g. Tenth Report A/CN.4/558/Add.1, para. 99, p. 19).
Going beyond that, the argument is formulated according to which a dispute settlement or
supervisory mechanism is required in order to evaluate independently States compliance
with its fundamental obligations. This argument is particularly well formulated in the Joint
Separate Opinion of Judge Higgins, Judge Kooijmans, Judge Elaraby, Judge Owada and
Judge Simma to the Judgement in the Armed Activities on the Territory of Congo
86
CHAPTER II
Thus, in the majority of cases, the objective criterion of compatibility can be applied
only subjectively,267 namely by leaving the determination of compatibility to the
discretion of individual States. As a consequence many questions remain unresolved.
Should, for example, only one State object to a reservation on the ground of incompatibility does it mean that the reservation is qualied as incompatible? If the answer
is in the negative, how many objections on the ground of incompatibility are necessary in order to qualify the reservation as incompatible? Should the objections refer at
all to the incompatibility of a reservation?268 Obviously, since compatibility is an
objective criterion, it is impossible to treat the same reservation as incompatible vis-vis some States and as compatible vis--vis others. But how should clearly incompatible reservations which were not objected to by other States parties be dealt with?
These are only some questions left open by the drafters of the Vienna Convention.
An attempt to nd some answers is made later in this study, in particular in the light
of the practice developed by the States parties to the CEDAW in the context of reservations based on Islam.
(b) Competence of Treaty-Monitoring Bodies. Another set of questions arises in relation to those treaties which establish a treaty-monitoring body. Being vested, as a rule,
with general supervisory functions with regard to the implementation of a treaty by
which they are established, they do not have express authorization to pronounce on the
compatibility of reservations. What is the role of this type of body in the context of the
determination of the compatibility of reservations?
As a rst step, the distinction between treaty-monitoring bodies with mandatory
powers and treaty-monitoring bodies without mandatory powers shall be made.
Decisions taken by the former are obligatory for States parties, whereas the latter can
267
268
(New Application: 2002) case. Taking into account the nature of the crime of genocide and
the fact that according to the wording of article IX of the Genocide Convention, the ICJ
should have the power to resolve inter-State disputes not only about the interpretation of
the Genocide Convention, but also about fulllment by States of their obligations, and
thus, ultimately, about States responsibility for genocide, the judges afrmed the
following: It is thus not self-evident that a reservation to Article IX could not be regarded
as incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention and we believe that this is
a matter that the Court should revisit for further consideration. para. 29, p. 6. That this
argument constitutes just a development toward an eventual future establishment of a rule
is visible already from the quotation.
So Ago in YbILC, 1965, Vol. I, p. 161.
Alain Pellet raises similar and some further questions concerning impermissible
reservations unresolved by the Vienna Convention in his First Report: UN Doc. A/
CN.4/470, para. 112, p. 52 and also para. 124, pp. 5758. Most important of these questions
are the following: What is the precise meaning of the expressions compatibility with the
object and purpose of the treaty? Is an impermissible reservation null and void in itself
and does its nullity give rise (or not give rise) to the nullity of the expression of consent by
the State to be bound? Is an impermissible reservation null and void regardless of the
objections that may be made? Can the other contracting States accept an impermissible
reservation? What are the effects of such acceptance? If due note has been taken (by
whom?) of the impermissibility of a reservation, can the reserving State replace it with
another reservation or withdraw from the treaty?
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
87
just make recommendations. This question of the legal nature of the decisions taken
or determinations made by a treaty-monitoring body shall not be confused with
another question, whether a particular treaty-monitoring body can evaluate the compatibility of reservations. It is illogical to argue that a treaty-monitoring body cannot
pronounce on the compatibility of reservations because it lacks the authority to render
binding interpretations or judgments.269 That is to confuse a competence to do something with the binding effect of that which is done.270
Furthermore, it is important to keep in mind that neither the ICJ, in its advisory
opinion in 1951, nor the drafters of the Vienna Convention ever had to deal with the
question of the competence of treaty-monitoring bodies because, at the time, this phenomenon simply did not exist.271 It is, therefore, impossible to draw any conclusions
as to the powers of treaty-monitoring bodies in relation to the determination of compatibility of reservations only on the basis of analysis of the above-mentioned advisory
opinion of the ICJ, or travaux prparatoires of the Vienna Convention. Primary consideration shall be given to the nature of the treaty-monitoring bodies themselves.
Since the phenomenon of treaty-monitoring bodies is linked, to a very great extent,
to human rights treaties, the role of these bodies in the determination of the compatibility
of reservations will be considered more closely in the section dealing with reservations
to human rights treaties. In very general terms, as a preliminary conclusion, it can be
said that although not granted expressly the competence to determine the extent and
therefore also the compatibility of reservations is inherent in the functions of these
bodies. A body vested with the supervision of the implementation of a treaty shall
verify the extent of the obligations of States under a treaty and therefore interpret
possible reservations, including the determination of their compatibility.272
(3) Consequences of Determination of Incompatibility
Once the incompatibility of a reservation is established the question of the effects of
such a reservation arises. Since the Vienna Convention provides no unambiguous
269
270
271
272
Such was, for example, the reasoning of the United States and of France in their observations
on the General Comment N 24(52) adopted by the HRC, a treaty-monitoring body
established in accordance with article 28 of the ICCPR, on 2 November 1994. The
observations of the United States are contained in the UN Doc. A/50/40 (see part 1 in
particular); the observations of France are contained in the UN Doc. A/51/40 (see para. 7 in
particular). For the text of the General Comment see UN Doc CCPR/C/21/Rev.1/Add.6.
HIGGINS, Introduction, loc. cit. above, fn. 262, p. xxii.
See, in this connection, comments made by Rosalyn Higgins in her Introduction, pp. xviii-xxi;
Alain Pellet agreed with her arguments. See his Second Report: UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add.1,
para. 178, p. 55. See also similar observations by SHELTON, Dinah. State Practice on Reservations
to Human Rights Treaties. Canadian Yearbook of Human Rights 1983, p. 229.
See similar arguments advanced by Alain Pellet in his Second Report UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/
add. 1, paras. 206208, pp. 6869. The ICJ indirectly conrmed this when in the case of
Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo (New Application: 2002) it expressed its
assessment of the compatibility of Rwandas reservation to the dispute settlement provision
of the Genocide Convention (article IX): Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo
(New Application: 2002) (Democratic Republic of the Congo v. Rwanda), Provisional
Measures, Order of 10 July 2002, I.C.J. Reports 2002, p. 246, para. 72).
88
CHAPTER II
273
274
275
276
277
See more about unresolved questions and difculties above fn. 268 and accompanying text.
See e.g. NOWAK, Manfred. The Activities of the UN Human Rights Committee:
Developments From 1 August 1992 to 31 July 1995. 16 HRLJ 1995, p. 382; CAMERON &
HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 264, pp. 115116. The fourth possibility, which has almost never
been invoked in the literature, but has been developed in the States practice, is the
modication of reservations. This procedure is discussed in more detail below II.B.3.
A very difcult question arises in this connection: How should the prevailing will of a State
be determined? For different solutions proposed in literature see, in particular, BOWETT, loc.
cit. above, fn. 257, p. 89, but also NOWAK, loc. cit. above, fn. 274, p. 382; CAMERON & HORN,
loc. cit. above, fn. 264, p. 119, HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 119120. It may also be
asked whether it is at all necessary to enquire about this will of the reserving State at the
time when the State becomes a party to a treaty and formulates its reservation, as the will of
the State can change over time and a State with an initially prevailing will not to be a party,
can become willing to assume its treaty obligations. This question relates, however, to the
issue of the dynamic nature of the reservations regime and will be addressed later, when the
dynamism of the reservations regime will be discussed.
KHNER, Rolf. Vorbehalte und Auslegende Erklrungen zur Europischen Menschenrechtskonvention. Die Problematik des Art. 64 MRK am Beispiel der schweizerischen
auslegenden Erklrung zu Art. 6 Abs. 3 lit. e MRK. 42 ZaRV 1982, pp. 8287; KLIN,
Walter. Die Vorbehalte der Trkei zu ihrer Erklrung gem. Art. 25 EMRK. 14 EuGRZ
1987, p. 429; TOMUSCHAT, Christian. Turkeys Declaration under Article 25 of the
European Convention on Human Rights. In: Nowak, M., Steurer, D., Tretter, H., eds.
Fortschritte im Bewusstsein der Grind- und Menschenrechte: Festschrift fr F. Ermakora.
Kehl am Rhein, Strassbourg, Arlington: N.P. Engel Verlag, 1988, pp. 132133.
Alain Pellet in his First Report made the following very interesting observation concerning
the relationship between opinions adopted by the permissibility and the opposability
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
89
The main problem arising, in practice, in connection with this time-limit rule, is
that twelve months is not always a sufcient period for States to evaluate the nature of
a reservation and to express their opinion in this regard. Moreover, sometimes one
even has an impression that States do not regard this rule as imperative but as a mere
indication which, depending on circumstances, can be disregarded.279
The acceptance of a reservation renders this reservation opposable vis--vis an
accepting State. As formulated in article 21, paragraph 1 of the Vienna Convention,
an accepted reservation
(a) modies for the reserving State in its relations with that other party (accepting
State) the provisions of the treaty to which the reservation related to the extent of
the reservation, and
(b) modies those provisions to the same extent for that other party in its relations with
the reserving State.
278
279
280
281
schools: In all cases, however, the will of the contracting States must prevail, but,
depending on the standpoint, the emphasis will be placed on the initial will of the
negotiators or on the subsequent will of the States making reservations or objections. UN
Doc. A/CN.4/470, para. 105, p. 50.
Article 20, paragraph 5 of the Vienna Convention.
See the analysis of practice and the interpretation given to article 20, paragraph 5 by
CLARK, Belinda. The Vienna Convention Reservations Regime and the Convention on
Discrimination Against Women. 85 AJIL 1991, pp. 312314; GREIG DW, loc. cit. above,
fn. 252, pp. 118135; see also HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 206209; SWAINE, Edward
T. Reserving. 31 Yale Journal of International Law 2006, p. 319. This opinion did not
receive support from the Special Rapporteur of the ILC. See Eleventh Report: UN Doc.
A/CN.4/574, para. 144, p. 52.
RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p. 196.
Article 21, paragraph 2 of the Vienna Convention.
90
CHAPTER II
although the terms of the treaty as applicable between the reserving and the accepting
States are not the same as those which apply between other States parties.
However, if a State disagrees with a reservation, it shall be able to protect itself
from this unilateral modication of a treaty. In this case the Vienna Convention opens
a possibility for States to object to reservations. Obviously, the effects of objections
shall be different from those of acceptance. According to the provisions of the Vienna
Convention on the effects of objections, the objecting State has the right to oppose the
entry into force of the treaty between itself and the reserving State.282 However, if the
objecting State did not express such an intention explicitly, its objection does not
preclude the entry into force of the treaty as between the reserving and objecting
States.283 Treaty relations between these two States are modied according to the following rule formulated in the Vienna Convention: the provisions to which the reservation relates do not apply as between the two States to the extent of reservation.284
A question that has been discussed very actively in literature is whether, and to what
extent, the situation established in accordance with the rules of the Vienna Convention
between the reserving and the accepting States is different from that between the
reserving and the objecting States.285 This difference might be almost invisible in the
case of the reservation aimed to exclude the application of certain provisions (excluding reservations) in contrast to modifying reservations.286 However, as pointed out
by several authors, the liberty of action which in practice might indeed be the same
vis--vis the accepting as well as the objecting State, can be disputed by the objecting
but not by the accepting State.287 Thus, an objection, although often leaving the objecting State in a disadvantaged position in practical terms, allows this State to preserve
its legal position in the case of disputes, in other words the objecting State reserves its
right to complaint. Moreover, in certain circumstances objections can reinforce the
norm incorporated in the reserved provision.
Now, when the effects of objections to reservations according to rules codied
in the Vienna Convention are more or less clear, we can make an attempt to answer
the following question: is it logical to apply the same rules to permissible as well
282
283
284
285
286
287
See article 20, paragraph 4 (b) and article 21, paragraph 3 of the Vienna Convention.
Article 20, paragraph 4 (b) of the Vienna Convention.
Article 21, paragraph 3 of the Vienna Convention.
CASSESE, Antonio. A New Reservations Clause (Article 20 of the United Nations
Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination). In: Recueil
detudes de droit international en hommage Paul Guggenheim, Genve: Institut
Universitaire de Hautes Etudes Internationales, 1968, pp. 280281; CLARK, loc. cit. above,
fn. 279, pp. 307310; COCCIA, Massimo. Reservations to Multilateral Treaties on Human
Rights. 15 California Western International Law Journal 1985, pp. 3438; COOK, Rebecca
J. Reservations to the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination
Against Women. 30 VJIL 1990, pp. 653, 656660; RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p.199
200; SINCLAIR, Ian. The Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties. Second edition,
Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1984, pp. 7677
RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p. 199; ZOLLER, Elisabeth Laffaire de la dlimitation du
plateau continental entre la Rpublique franaise et le Royaume-Uni de Grande Bretagne
et dIrlande du Nord. 23 AFDI 1977, p. 308.
COCCIA, loc. cit. above, fn. 285, pp. 3738; COOK, loc. cit. above, fn. 285, pp. 658659;
HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p. 182.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
91
Although the Vienna Convention makes no explicit distinction between these two
cases, it seems that, in the light of the interpretation given to article 19 above,290 the
rules formulated in articles 20, paragraph 4 (b) and 21, paragraph 3 are applicable only
to objections to permissible reservations.291 In this connection the following statement
regarding article 19 paragraph (c) in the ILC commentary shall be recalled:
The admissibility or otherwise of reservation under paragraph (c), on the other hand, is
in every case very much a matter of the appreciation of the acceptability of the reservation
by the other contracting States; and this paragraph has, therefore, to be read in close
conjunction with the provisions of Article 17 (now Article 20) regarding acceptance of
and objection to reservations.292
Many authors are of the opinion that this passage supports the view according to
which the decision about the compatibility of reservations shall be left to the discretion of States, and that the same rules are applicable to objections to compatible as
well as to incompatible reservations.293 Nevertheless, it was also suggested that this
phrase indicates that some different rules shall apply to incompatible reservations.294
288
289
290
291
292
293
294
See First Report of Alain Pellet: UN Doc. A/CN.4/470, paras. 118120, pp. 5556.
Id., para. 120, p. 56.
See above II.B.1.b).
This view has been supported e.g. by BOWETT, loc. cit. above, fn. 257, p. 78 in particular;
CAMERON & HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 264, p. 89; NOWAK, loc. cit. above, fn. 274, p. 382;
SCHABAS, William A. Reservations to the Convention on the Rights of the Child. 18 HRQ
1996, p. 481.
YbILC 1966, Vol. II, p. 207.
See e.g. RUDA, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, p. 183.
TOMUSCHAT, Christian. Admissibility and Legal Effects of Reservations to Multilateral
Treaties. Comments on Arts. 16 and 17 of the ILCs 1966 Draft Articles on the Law of Treaties.
27 ZaRV 1967, p. 477. After having afrmed that this phrase in the commentary means that
some different rules shall apply to incompatible reservations, he analyses the wording of the
Vienna Convention itself. Having found no support of this interpretation of the commentary in
the text of the Vienna Convention itself, he nally comes to the conclusion that the rules
concerning acceptance and objections to reservation and their effects, in particular article 17,
paragraph 4 (now article 20), are also applicable to incompatible reservations. See also
REDGWELL, Universality or Integrity, loc. cit. above, fn. 261, pp. 255260. She shows that this
ambiguous phrase in the ILC commentary gave rise to discussion during the Diplomatic
Conference as to whether article 17, paragraph 4 (now article 20) shall be applicable to
incompatible reservations. Despite numerous proposals from States to clarify this question of
the relationship between article 19, paragraph (c) and article 20, paragraph 4, the Conference
failed to adopt any solution. The question has, therefore, been left open.
92
CHAPTER II
Unfortunately, the text of subsequent articles is not sufciently clear. However, all
ambiguities and gaps in the Vienna Convention shall not be interpreted as implying
more than a lack of consensus among States at the time of adoption of the Convention.
It may well be the case that during the time elapsed since the adoption of the Vienna
Convention, practice developed a particular interpretation, lling these gaps and
removing ambiguities.
3. Possibility of Modication of Reservations
As already mentioned above, States practice developed this possibility despite the fact
that it is not mentioned in the Vienna Convention at all. This procedure was developed
in relation to reservations judged as incompatible. Modication in this context means
reformulation of a reservation in such a manner as to make it compatible with the
object and purpose of the treaty. For the rst time the question of the possibility to
modify reservations has been actively discussed in the literature, although to a very
limited extent, in relation to the decision of the EuCtHR in the Belilos case.295
The possibility of modication of reservations is also mentioned without being
analyzed by Alain Pellet in his First296 and Fifth297 Reports. In the Fifth Report the
modication of reservations is compared with the partial withdrawal of reservations: () The modication of reservations can be means of partially withdrawing them, something which remains highly problematic and should therefore be
studied at the same time as withdrawal stricto sensu. Alain Pellet mentions the
modication of reservations as one of the possible reactions of a State on the determination of incompatibility of its reservation during the discussion of his Second
Report in the ILC:
Fourthly, another possibility which seemed more satisfactory and justiable from the legal
point of view, despite some difculties, was that the reserving State could regularize its
situation by replacing its impermissible reservation by a more limited, permissible one.298
295
296
297
298
299
See e. g. CAMERON & HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 264, pp. 118119; BOURGUIGNON, Henry J.
The Belilos Case: New Light on Reservations to Multilateral Treaties. 29 Virginia
Journal of International Law 1989, p. 383, who describes this idea as a bizarre novelty in
international law. See also some comments on the possibility to modify reservations made
by GREIG DW, loc. cit. above, fn. 252, pp. 116118; 157159. It should be noted, however,
that certain references to the possibility of modication of reservations were also made in
literature previously. See e. g. IMBERT, Les reserves, loc. cit. above, fn. 251, p. 293. Few
treaties did also mention expressly the possibility to modify reservations or partially
withdraw them. See references in the Seventh Report by Alain Pellet: UN Doc. A/
CN.4/526/Add.3, paras. 188192, pp. 24.
UN Doc. A/CN.4/470, para. 124, p. 57.
UN Doc. A/CN.4/508/Add.3, para. 224, p. 5.
YbILC, 1997, Vol. I, para. 39, p. 194.
UN Doc. A/CN.4/526/Add.3.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
93
the Special Rapporteur. In this report two kinds of modication of reservations are
distinguished. Firstly, if the modication is intended to lessen the scope of the reservation, in which case nothing prevents the modication of the reservation, it shall be
treated as a partial withdrawal.300 Secondly, if the effect of the modication is to
strengthen an existing reservation it is comparable to the late formulation of a reservation and should therefore not be permitted without the consent of States parties, except
in cases where a treaty itself allows such a procedure.301
As far as the modication which amounts to a partial withdrawal is concerned, the
Special Rapporteur suggests that the same procedure should be applied to it as to
the withdrawal of reservations. In particular, he criticizes the practice adopted by the
Secretary-General in his function as a depositary of treaties, whereby when receiving
a modication of a reservation he communicates to other States parties to a treaty the
following message:
in keeping with the () practice followed in similar cases, the Secretary-General
proposed to receive the modication in question for deposit in the absence of any objections on the part of any of the Contracting Parties, either to the deposit itself or to the
procedure envisaged, within a period of 90 days from the date of notication.
Although I agree with these general premises, the following should be noted. Firstly,
it is not always clear whether and how far a proposed modication reduces the scope
of the initial reservation. It is therefore desirable to make any modication the effects
of which are not obvious enough subject to the above-described procedure used by the
Secretary-General. Secondly, what is more important is the issue of reactions of other
States to the modication. In my opinion, even in the case of an obvious partial
withdrawal of reservations it is desirable to give other States parties a possibility to
300
301
302
303
94
CHAPTER II
formulate a new objection. However, these objections should be subject to the same
rules as initial objections, namely that of the Vienna Convention, whereby a single
State party is unable to prevent the entry into force of the limited reservation. This
possibility to express an opinion on the proposed partial withdrawal is particularly
important in the context of incompatible reservations. Thus, for example in a situation
where a partial withdrawal changes the nature of a reservation with a consequence that
an incompatible reservation becomes a compatible one objecting States parties may
still have some justied objections, although of a different nature. In particular, States
which objected to an incompatible reservation and because of its incompatibility
objected to the entry of a treaty into force between itself and the objecting State might
reasonably be expected to reformulate their objections so as to allow the entry into
force of a treaty. Furthermore, I do not see any reasons to prevent other States, even
those which did not object to the initial reservation, from objecting to the modied
reservation. Taking into account the often mentioned fact that a non-objection by
States to a reservation does not always mean its acceptance, but can also be due to the
short period of time during which States can object and insufciency of States
resources, why should they not be able to use the new possibility to object to a
modied reservation?
Issues related to the procedure to be adopted in case of modications of reservations and their effects also arose in the context of reservations to the CEDAW based
on Islam. They will therefore be discussed in more detail in the context of practice
developed by States in relation to reservations to the CEDAW based on Islam.
C. Purposes, Functions and Mechanisms of the Reservations Regime
in International Law in General
On the basis of the above-made brief presentation of the general regime of reservations as codied in the Vienna Convention, some conclusions about its purposes,
functions, basic mechanisms and features can be made.
The basic function of any reservations regime is the establishment of the balance
between the universality of participation and the integrity of a treaty. As emphasized
by the Special Rapporteur of the ILC on Reservations to Treaties, Alain Pellet,
It is this conict between universality and integrity which gives rise to all reservations
regimes, be they general (applicable to all treaties which do not provide for a specic
regime) or particular (established by express clauses incorporated into the treaty).304
Depending on the emphasis this function can be described, for example, in terms of
the balance between the legitimate role of States to protect their sovereign interests
and the legitimate role of the treaty bodies to promote the effective guarantee of
human rights305 in the context of human rights treaties, or in terms of consent as a
balance between the freedom of consent of the reserving State and that of the other
States parties. Alain Pellet particularly stressed the importance of the latter aspect,
304
305
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
95
namely the balance between the conicting freedoms of consent of the reserving State
and of other States parties, quoting various scholars as well as decisions of courts and
tribunals.306 He also presented a sufcient amount of evidence in favor of the fact that
the drafters of the Vienna Convention always had in mind the necessity to strike this
double balance.307 The regime of reservations should therefore be adapted to the
successful fulllment of this function.
In order to understand a particular system it is important to know not only which
functions the system shall fulll, but also the means or mechanisms used in order to
fulll this function. As already shown above, the reservations regime of the Vienna
Convention contains, as one of its essential mechanisms, the play of acceptance and
objections based, to a signicant degree, on reciprocity. All the authors, who analyzed
the role of reciprocity in the reservations regime, agree that reciprocity is an indispensable element allowing the reservations regime to fulll its function, although they
admit that reciprocity is not present in all areas of this regime.308 Thus, it is true that
as Alain Pellet concluded reciprocity is not a function inherent in a reservations
regime and is not in any way the object of such a regime,309 it nevertheless plays a
central role in the fulllment of the function and can not, therefore, be disregarded in
the analysis and application of this regime.
306
307
308
309
310
Second Report of Alain Pellet, UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add. 1, paras. 9596, pp. 1719.
Balance between (a) the requirements of universality and integrity of the treaty and (b)
the freedom of consent of the reserving State and that of the other States parties: Second
Report of Alain Pellet, UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add. 1, para. 97, p. 19. See also paras. 99101,
pp. 1920.
See e.g. DECAUX, Emmanuel. La rciprocit en droit international. Paris: Librairie genrale
de droit et de jurisprudence, 1980, pp. 6378; HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 145183;
SIMMA, Bruno. Das Reziprozittselement im Zustandekommen vlkerrechtlicher Vertrge.
Berlin: Duncker & Humbolt, 1972, pp. 161219.
Second Report of Alain Pellet, UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add.1, para. 156, p. 43.
COHEN-JONATHAN, Grard. Les rserves dans les traits institutionnels relatifs aux droits
de lhomme, nouveaux aspects europens et internationaux. 100 R.G.D.I.P. 1996, p. 916;
GIEGERICH, loc. cit. above, fn. 261, pp. 742745; PROVOST, Ren. Reciprocity in Human
96
CHAPTER II
a more detailed and objective judgment, it is necessary to have a closer look at the
exact role of reciprocity in the context of human rights treaties. It is also necessary to
be more precise in dening how far the absence or decit of reciprocity affects the
application of the general reservations regime.
Alain Pellet, in his Second Report, rstly, emphasized that reciprocity is not totally
absent from human rights treaties311 and secondly, that human rights treaties are not
the only group of treaties where the role of reciprocity is diminished.312 A similar view
has been expressed in the doctrine313 and is shared by the author of this research.
Nevertheless it is important to point out, once again, that reciprocity is certainly less
omnipresent in human rights treaties than in other treaties and that () the obligations
resulting from such treaties are essentially of an objective character ()314 The
Inter-American Court of Human Rights put this idea in the following way:
In concluding these human rights treaties, the States can be deemed to submit themselves
to a legal order within which they, for the common good, assume various obligations not
in relation to other States, but towards all individuals within their jurisdiction315
311
312
313
314
315
Rights and Humanitarian Law. 65 BYbIL 1994, pp. 383454; SIMMA, Bruno. International
Human Rights and General International Law: A Comparative Analysis. Collected Courses
of the Academy of European Law, 1993, The Protection of Human Rights in Europe, Vol. IV
Book 2, The Hague, Boston, London: Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1995, p. 170.
UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add. 1, para. 85, p. 1415. It has been argued in the doctrine that
reciprocity, as far as the reservations regime is concerned, is present in human rights treaties
on two levels. Firstly, for the purposes of claiming a violation, a reserving State is prevented
from claiming a violation of the reserved provision by another State party, even if this other
State party entered no reservations. Secondly, it has been submitted that reciprocity is
present at the level of procedural provisions of a human rights treaty providing for the right
of States parties to bring a question to consideration (or a dispute for settlement) by a special
organ. Thus, a reserving State would lose its right to bring a question to the consideration
(or a dispute for settlement) in relation to the reserved provision. However, this second
aspect of reciprocity is of a very limited importance, rst of all, because in most cases other
States parties to a treaty would be able to bring a question to the consideration by the body.
Furthermore, the EuComHR rejected any arguments of responding Governments which
invoked reservations entered by applicant Governments as an obstacle to the examination of
the matter: see, in particular, Application N 9940/82 France v. Turkey, 26 YbEuCHR 1983,
pp. 2931, but also Austria v. Italy (Pfunder case) 4 YbEuCHR 1961, pp. 139140. See
more about both aspects in HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 156160; see also remarks
made by Hafner in the ILC during the discussion of the Second Report on Reservations to
Treaties: YbILC 1997, Vol. I, para. 64, p. 185.
UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add.1, paras. 7788, pp. 1215. It is important to note that reciprocity
may be absent not only due to the nature of a treaty or its provisions, but also due to the
nature of the reservation itself: Id., para. 155, p. 4243; HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227,
pp. 165167 or due to external circumstances: HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 227, pp. 167169.
See e.g. IMBERT, Pierre-Henri. Reservations and Human Rights Conventions. VI Human
Rights Review 1981, p. 36
Second Report by Alain Pellet, UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add. 1, para. 152, p. 42.
Int.-Am.CtHR, the Effect of Reservations on the Entry into Force of the American
Convention on Human Rights (Arts. 74 and 75), Advisory Opinion N OC-2/82 of 24
September 1982, Ser. A, N 2. Reprinted in 22 ILM 1983, para. 29 (emphasis added). Alain
Pellet also quoted this passage in his Second Report: UN Doc. A/CN.4/477/Add. 1, para.
152, p. 42. Other human rights bodies also adopted a similar view. See e.g. EuComHR
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
97
What effects does this peculiarity of human rights treaties have on the application
of the general reservations regime? Should, therefore, another different regime apply
to reservations to human rights treaties?
B. Reciprocity and Reservations to Human Rights Treaties
As rightly pointed out by Alain Pellet in his Second Report, a primary objective of any
reservations regime is to strike the dual balance between universality and integrity and
between divergent consents of States to be bound by the treaty.316 This is true for all
types of treaties including human rights treaties. From this point of view there is no
reason to treat human rights treaties differently. Alain Pellet, however, goes further and
argues that since reciprocity is not a function inherent in the reservations regime, there
is no need for a separate or different treatment of reservations to human rights treaties.317
The only consequence of this lack of reciprocity, according to Alain Pellet, is that one
simply cannot say here that the reservation is established with regard to another party.318
Alain Pellet concludes that when a State enters a reservation to a treaty provision that
must apply without reciprocity, the provisions of article 21, paragraph 3 of the Vienna
Convention do not apply. It does not mean that the reservations regime instituted by the
Vienna Convention does not apply in this case.319
This argumentation contained in the Second Report presented by Alain Pellet to
the ILC, although based on correct premises, does not give us the correct conclusion,
because it overlooks some very important elements. It is true that, as already pointed out
above, reciprocity is not a function or objective of the reservations regime. However, in
pursuing its goal, the reservations regime uses particular ways and mechanisms, one of
which is the reciprocity, in most cases inherent, in multilateral international treaties. As
has been shown above, reciprocity, as far as the operation of an accepted reservation is
concerned, has a central role to play. A reservation becoming operative through a single
316
317
318
319
98
CHAPTER II
acceptance shall not affect treaty relations of other States parties inter se. This reservation
shall be established only and exclusively with regard to another party,320 namely the
accepting one. This mechanism promotes universality of participation, because one
acceptance only is sufcient in order for the reserving State to become a party to the
treaty, while at the same time preserving the integrity of the treaty (only treaty relations
between the accepting and the reserving States are affected by the reservation) and permitting respect of the principle of mutuality of consent. If, however, a reservation is made
to a provision according to which States assume obligations for the common good, it
is impossible to say that the reservation is established only with regard to the accepting
State. Indeed, it affects the entire treaty relations, including those between other States
parties inter se. All States parties are affected by this non-respect of a treaty provision
to which the reservation relates. This situation is different from other cases of the absence
of reciprocity, as for example in the case of the non-reciprocal nature of reservations.
Since such a reservation does not concern any provisions protecting common good, it
does not affect treaty relations of other States parties inter se. The accepting State simply
can not benet from the reservation, as is normally the case. Thus, only the absence of
reciprocity due to the nature of treaty provisions to which the reservation relates, namely,
provisions according to which States assume obligations for the common good, will be
of such an extent that some basic mechanisms of the reservations regime will become
inoperative and therefore unable to achieve the required objective.
Which consequences shall this enlarged effectiveness of reservations to certain
treaty provisions have on the operation of the reservations regime? Do human rights
treaties or other treaties according to which States assume obligations for the common good require a separate, new reservations regime? In my opinion there is no
necessity for such a radical change. We can recall here briey all the arguments put
forward by Alain Pellet: the Vienna Convention regime is a exible and general regime
adapted to peculiarities of all types of treaties; human rights treaties are still treaties
and are based on the principle of consent, objectives of the reservations regime are the
same in the context of human rights treaties as in multilateral treaties in general.
On the other hand, there is an obvious specicity in the application of the reservations
regime to provisions according to which States assume obligations for the common
good. This type of provision forms the majority of provisions of human rights treaties.
This specicity should not be disregarded. On the contrary, some measures should be
taken in order to re-establish the broken balance and permit the reservations regime to
fulll its functions also in relation to human rights treaties. Through the decit of reciprocity the balance has been shifted towards universality not adequately protecting
integrity of a treaty and towards the consent of the reserving State at the expense of the
consent of other States. It is therefore necessary to introduce some additional measures
for the protection of integrity and of the consent of other States parties. These measures
do not necessarily mean the rejection of the Vienna Convention regime. They can be
developed in the framework of the limits imposed by this regime using its grey areas.
320
Article 21, paragraph 1 of the Vienna Convention. For the full text of this article see above
II.B.2.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
99
The central role in the protection of the integrity of a treaty is played by the object and
purpose test. It is, therefore, very important to reinforce this test by limiting, as far as
possible, cases in which incompatible reservations can have any effects. The consent of
other States can be protected by enlarging their possibility for reaction. These two objectives can be achieved by rstly, allowing the States to object to reservations in particular
on the ground of incompatibility beyond the 12 months time-limit. This deviation from
the general reservations regime shall not create any difculties since the time-limit rule
is not a compulsory one and can be disregarded under certain circumstances.321 The
second measure is the more active role of treaty-monitoring bodies in the determination
of the compatibility of reservations. Of course, if a treaty-monitoring body is not vested
with mandatory powers, it cannot make any determinations obligatory for States.
However, within the limits of the powers granted to them, they are able to inuence, to
a very great extent, the position of States as far as incompatible reservations are concerned. How these two measures can be implemented in practice, whether there are
some tendencies towards the increasing use of these two measures in the practice of
States and treaty-monitoring bodies will be shown on the example of the CEDAW.
At this stage of our analysis it is necessary to present some general developments with
regard to the reservations regime in the practice of States parties to human rights treaties,
human rights treaty-monitoring bodies and opinions of scholars in this regard.
C. Attitude of States and Treaty-Monitoring Bodies in Face of Reservations
to Human Rights Treaties in the Light of the Doctrine
1. General Trends in the Practice of Treaty-Monitoring Bodies
a) At the Regional Level
Regional human rights conventions have one particular characteristic which distinguishes them from general human rights treaties. All of them have, as one of its
supervisory organs, a court empowered to take binding decisions in the exercise of
its functions.322 This particular feature of regional human rights treaties, namely the
321
322
The reservation is only considered as accepted. See above II.B.2. Moreover, it is not at all
clear, as far as the terms of the Vienna Convention are concerned, whether this time-limit
rule is applicable to inadmissible reservations. As pointed out by James Crawford during
the discussion of the Second Report on Reservations to Treaties in the ILC article 19 of
the 1969 Vienna Convention drew no distinction between reservations that were
incompatible with the object and purpose of the treaty and reservations that were prohibited
by the treaty itself. It seemed to him inconceivable that a State which, for some reason or
other, remained silent in the face of a prohibited reservation was nonetheless deemed to
have accepted it. () If that was true of prohibited reservations, it must also be true of
reservations that were incompatible with the object and purpose of the treaty (article 19,
subparagraph (c) ). YbILC, 1997, para. 82, p. 188. See also similar view by CAMERON &
HORN, loc. cit. above, fn. 264, p. 89.
The three regional human rights instruments are the European Convention on Human
Rights, the Inter-American Convention on Human Rights and the African Charter of
Human and Peoples Rights. However, powers granted to Courts established according to
provisions of each of these instruments, as well as circumstances under which courts can
exercise their powers, are not identical.
100
CHAPTER II
323
324
325
326
327
328
329
330
331
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
101
object and purpose of the Convention are free to make use of the adjudicatory and
advisory machinery established by the Convention.332
In these cases judicial organs pronounced themselves on some controversial issues
concerning the reservations regime. The most important step is the rejection of the application of rules on the effects of reservations (articles 20-21 of the Vienna Convention) to
incompatible reservations. Referring, in the rst line, to the willingness of a State to
remain a party to the convention, the EuCtHR preferred to declare Switzerland a party
to the Convention without the benet of the reservation.333 The EuCtHR went even further in the Loizidou case leaving aside the statement made by the Turkish government
according to which the conditions built into Turkeys Article 25 declaration were so
essential that disregarding any of them would make the entire declaration void with the
consequence that Turkeys acceptance of the right of individual petition would lapse. The
same statement was made with regard to Turkeys Article 46 declaration.334 This is an
obvious stand in favor of ideas developed and defended by the permissibility school.
There are in the doctrine some strong voices attempting to reduce the importance
of these developments to the regional level.335 The concept of the European public
332
333
334
335
Id. para. 38 or in 22 ILM, p. 49. In another advisory case the Int.-Am.CtHR found itself
empowered to interpret a reservation and to determine its compatibility. However,
it avoided to pronounce itself on the consequences of incompatible reservations by giving
the reservation under consideration a narrow interpretation compatible with the terms of
the Int.-Am.CHR: Int.-Am.CtHR. Restrictions to the Death Penalty (Arts. 4(2) and 4(4) ),
Advisory Opinion OC-3/83 of 8 September 1983, Ser. A, N 3, para. 61 in particular.
One could question the effects and value of such a determination in the case when Switzerland,
Turkey or any other State in a similar situation would terminate its participation in the treaty.
Besides, this possibility was invoked and even very seriously discussed in the Swiss
parliament. Nevertheless, Switzerland remained the party to the EuCHR because of the failure
of the motion in the Swiss Federal Council by 16 votes against 15. For more detail see
WILDHABER, Luzius. Rund um Belilos. Die schweizerischen Vorbehalte und auslegenden
Erklrungen zur Europischen Menschenrechtskonvention im Verlaufe der Zeit und im
Lichte der Rechtsprechung. In: Riklin, A., Wildhaber, L., Wille, H., eds. Kleinstaat und
Menschenrechte: Festgabe fr Gerard Batliner zum 65. Geburtstag. Basel, Frankfurt am
Main: Helbing & Lichtenhahn, pp. 331332. The danger of Turkeys withdrawal from the
EuCHR was not so eminent due to the Turkeys peculiar political relationship to the European
Union. The EuCtHR was aware of this situation. This political situation allowed the EuCtHR
to take such a strong position in the Loizidou case vis--vis Turkey. Nevertheless, despite
some controversial points, one thing is clear: it would be even more unacceptable that an
inadmissible reservation would have the same effects as an admissible one. The EuCtHR
clearly expressed this view in its judgments in the Belilos and Loizidou cases.
Loizidou v. Turkey, Preliminary Objections, 23 March 1995, Publications of the EuCtHR,
Ser. A, N 310, para. 90, p. 30.
The discussion which took place in the ILC in relation to the Second Report on Reservations
to Treaties presented by Alain Pellet is a very good illustration of different views on the
issue: YbILC, 1997, Vol. I. Compare opinions expressed by Kateka, para. 18, p. 180;
Brownlie, paras. 7879, p. 187; Pellet, paras. 3839, pp. 193194; Rosenstock, para. 53,
p. 196 who restrict the above-mentioned new developments to the European level with
those of Dugard, para. 71, p. 186; Simma, paras. 3134, p. 201 ; Bennuna, para. 42, p. 202,
who see in European developments predecessors of developments which are already
visible at the universal level.
102
CHAPTER II
order is the principal argument of those who refuse to recognize the universal, and
not only regional, value of these developments. However, the careful reading of relevant decisions makes clear that references to the European public order, even if made
occasionally, are not the principal argument of judges and in no way do they form the
basis for the decisions.336 Let us just take the example of the judgment of the EuCtHR
in the Belilos case. In this case the Court determined the validity of a reservation by
reference to article 64 of the EuCHR dealing with reservations. This article of the
EuCHR prohibits general reservations and requires that any reservation shall contain
a brief statement of the law concerned.337 These provisions are one of the peculiarities
of the EuCHR. In this sense, one cannot say, for example, that according to rules of
general international law all general reservations, or all reservations containing no
description of relevant provisions of national law are inadmissible, taking the Belilos
judgment as a precedent. The determination of the validity of the reservation in the
Belilos case was made on the basis of one particular provision of the EuCHR.
Therefore, even when general international law contains some similar rules, other
arguments should be found to prove it. The precedent of the Belilos case is limited in
this sense to the EuCHR, and therefore also to the regional level. However, if we turn
to other aspects of the judgment, such as the power of the Court (or other treaty body)
to determine the nature of reservations, or the question of consequences of incompatible reservations, we can use the judgment as a precedent not only at the regional, but
also at the universal level. When deciding on these aspects, the EuCtHR refers to rules
of international law in general without limiting itself to the terms of the EuCHR.
Moreover, one cannot ignore that similar developments are visible not only in the
Americas but also at the universal level.
336
337
See, for example, decision of the EuComHR on Application N 9940/82 France v. Turkey,
where the public order of Europe is mentioned (para. 40). This notion is, however, of
secondary nature for the Commissions conclusions. Having dened the issue before it as
a question of reciprocal application of a reservation, the EuComHR, rstly, stated that
principle of reciprocity embodied in article 21, paragraph 1 of the Vienna Convention does
not apply to obligations under the EuCHR which are essentially of an objective character.
Provisions of the EuCHR are rather designed to protect the fundamental rights of individual
human beings from infringement by any of the Contracting Parties than to create subjective
and reciprocal rights for the Parties themselves (para. 39). A State Party when referring to
an alleged breach of the Convention is not regarded as exercising a right of action for the
purpose of enforcing its own rights, but rather as bringing before the Commission an
alleged violation of the public order of Europe (para. 40). Thus, the public order of Europe
is a more precise description of the objective character mentioned before; the objective
character which is inherent to all human rights treaties.
Article 64 of the EuCHR reads as follows:
1. Any State may, when signing this Convention or when depositing its instrument of
ratication, make a reservation in respect of any particular provision of the Convention
to the extent that any law then in force in its territory is not in conformity with the
provision. Reservations of a general character shall not be permitted under this Article.
2. Any reservation made under this Article shall contain a brief statement of the law
concerned.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
103
Thus, the HRC does not reject the application of the Vienna Conventions regime to
human rights treaties. The compatibility test as well as the rules on objections and
acceptance of reservations are applicable to human rights treaties. However, it presumes
that provisions on effects of acceptance and objections do not apply to incompatible
reservations; at least as far as human rights treaties are concerned.345 Faced with one of
338
339
340
341
342
343
344
345
UN Doc. CCPR/C/21/Rev.1/Add.6.
Id., para. 6.
Id., para. 18.
Id., para. 17.
Id.
This special character of human rights treaties is described by the HRC in the following
way: Such treaties () are not a web on inter-States exchanges of mutual obligations.
They concern the endowment of individuals with rights. The principle of inter-State
reciprocity has no place, save perhaps in the limited context of reservations to declarations
on the Committees competence under article 41. Id.
Id., para. 18.
It is not very clear from the Comment whether the HRC takes the view that the Vienna
Convention rules on objections and their effect do not apply to inadmissible reservations in
general, or only as far as human rights treaties are concerned. Compare also observations by
the United Kingdom on the General Comment N 24: The Committee correctly identies
Articles 20 and 21 of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties as containing the rules
104
CHAPTER II
the unresolved questions of the Vienna Convention regime of reservations, the HRC is
looking for the most appropriate solution. As far as the effects of incompatible reservations are concerned, it preferred the solution proposed by the permissibility school
and reafrmed by the EuCtHR in the Belilos case. It means that the qualication of a
reservation as incompatible can have one of two consequences: either a treaty will not
be in force at all for a reserving party or a treaty will be operative for the reserving
party without the benet of the reservation. The HRC explicitly favored the latter
solution. The weak point concerns the question of the body authorized to make a determination about the character of a reservation. Although it is true, as the HRC pointed
out, that it is particularly well placed to make such a determination, and in fact it cannot
even perform its function without making such determinations, one can agree with critics who stress that such a determination is not binding on States.346 In this connection
the HRC can nd itself involved in some awkward situations, in particular when States
are reluctant to comply with its ndings.347
However, the fact that only three States parties to the ICCPR raised objections to
the conclusions made by the HRC in this Comment348 can be seen as a proof of the
acceptance of the Committees conclusions, at least in general terms, by the majority
of States parties. Moreover, not all conclusions of the HRC were rejected by these
three States and not all objections are formulated as rejections of the statements
made in the Comment. Sometimes these objections are mere comments or demands
for clarication.349 It will also be shown later that there is evidence, in the practice
346
347
348
349
which, taken together, regulate the legal effect of reservations to multilateral treaties. The
United Kingdom wonders, however, whether the Committee is right to assume their
applicability to incompatible reservations. The rules cited clearly do apply to reservations
which are fully compatible with the object and purpose but remain open for acceptance or
objection (). It is questionable, however, whether they were intended also to cover
reservations which are inadmissible in limine. Para. 13.
See in particular observations on the General Comment made by the United Kingdom
(contained in the UN Doc A/50/40), the United States (contained in the UN Doc A/50/40)
and France (contained in the UN Doc A/51/40).
The situation which has arisen out of the denunciation by Trinidad and Tobago, Jamaica
and Guyana of the First Optional Protocol to the ICCPR is illustrative of this possibility
This Protocol providing for the individual complaint procedure was denounced by Jamaica
and Trinidad and Tobago in 1998 and by Guyana in 1999. The ground for the withdrawal
from the Protocol was the question of death penalty. Since this type of penalty is still
practiced in these countries, they desired to protect their domestic legal systems, in
particular to prevent the possibility of submission of communications by individuals. In
1999 both Trinidad and Tobago and Guyana again became parties to the Optional Protocol,
but with reservations preventing the HRC from considering communications from
individuals under the sentence of death penalty relating to proceedings against them. After
the HRC nevertheless considered a communication from a citizen of Trinidad and Tobago
who was under the sentence of death, the country again renounced its participation in the
Protocol in 2000. More about the case see few paragraphs below.
These three States are the United Kingdom, the United States and France.
Particularly remarkable in this connection are observations made by the United Kingdom.
For example, as far as the question of the competence to determine the nature of reservations
is concerned, the United Kingdom shares the analysis that the Committee must necessarily
be able to take a view of the status and effects of a reservation where this is required in
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
105
developed in the context of other human rights treaties (with special reference to the
CEDAW), in support of the basic ideas expressed in the Comment.
Among human rights treaty-monitoring bodies a very strong general trend towards
a more direct and critical attitude with regard to the determination of compatibility
and admissibility of reservations is visible. If in the early eighties treaty-monitoring
bodies either expressly refrained from taking position on the matter,350 or adopted
a waiting attitude,351 by the end of the eighties, and particularly in the nineties, the
situation changed radically. Not only did individual human rights treaty-monitoring
bodies afrm and make use of their right to make determinations about the validity of
reservations,352 but also the Chairpersons of human rights treaty bodies discussed the
issue of reservations at their meetings and recommended inter alia that the treaty
350
351
352
order to permit the Committee to carry out its substantive functions under the Covenant.
() Paragraph 20 of the General Comment, however, users the verb determine in
connection with the Committees functions towards the status of reservations (). This
would appear to have implications which call for comment. (para. 11 of observations)
After this statement the United Kingdom without wishing to take a nal view on the
matter just makes some points which show the difference between judicial decisions and
determinations made without the benet of a judicial process, emphasizing that the
Committee was not yet given any new competence allowing it to make binding
determinations (para. 12 of observations). In relation to a very controversial question of
legal effects of incompatible reservations the United Kingdom also expresses rather human
rights friendly view. After having claried that in its opinion articles 20 and 21 of the
Vienna Convention on effects of reservations do not apply to incompatible reservations
(this was not stated unambiguously by the HRC in the General Comment: see above,
fn 345) it does not in principle reject the severability doctrine preferred by the HRC: The
United Kingdom agrees that severability of a kind may well offer a solution in appropriate
cases, although its contours are only beginning to be explored in State practice. (para. 14
of observations) However, it prefers another solution which the HRC also envisaged in its
General Comment. The United Kingdom believes that the only sound approach is
accordingly that adopted by the International Court of Justice: a State which purports to
ratify a human rights treaty subject to a reservation which is fundamentally incompatible
with participation in the treaty regime cannot be regarded as having become a party at all
unless it withdraws the reservation. (para. 15 of observations).
See, for example, decisions taken by the CERD and the CEDAW to refrain from determining
the nature or scope of States reservations: Report by the CERD to the General Assembly
of the UN adopted in 1978 UN Doc A/33/18, para. 374; Report by the CEDAW to the
General Assembly of the UN adopted in 1984 UN Doc A/39/45, Vol. II, Annex III.
See, for example, the attitude of the HRC adopted in its decisions of 8 November 1989 in
M.K. v. France (CCPR/C/37/D/220/1987) and T.K. v. France (CCPR/C/37/D/222/1987)
and the analysis of the practice of the HRC by SCHMIDT, Markus G. Reservations to
United Nations Human Rights Treaties the Case of the Two Covenants. In: Gardner,
J.P., ed. Human Rights as General Norms and a States Rights to Opt Out: Reservations
and Objections to Human Rights Conventions. London: British Institute of International
and Comparative Law, 1997, pp. 2034.
E.g. the HRC, the CRC, and the CEDAW address reservations in guidelines for the
preparation of reports; nearly all bodies question States parties about reservations and
recommend considering the withdrawal; several bodies expressed doubts as to the
compatibility. More in the light of the practice developed by the CEDAW in relation to
reservations based on Islam in the next Chapter.
106
CHAPTER II
bodies should require States parties to explain their reservations and treaty bodies
should clearly state that certain reservations were incompatible with treaty law.353
A case decided by the HRC under the Optional Protocol to the ICCPR354 shall serve
as an illustration of the above-described recent developments, but at the same time
also of difculties faced by treaty-monitoring bodies in their work related to reservations. In this case the HRC had before it a communication from a citizen of Trinidad
and Tobago, who claimed to be a victim of violations by Trinidad and Tobago of several articles of the ICCPR in relation to his death sentence. At the time of the submission
of the communication the author was awaiting execution.355 Before coming to the
consideration of merits the HRC had to decide whether it had competence to deal with
the communication. The question of competence arose because Trinidad and Tobago,
upon its re-accession to the Optional Protocol on 26 August 1998, entered a reservation excluding from the competence of the HRC all cases concerning a prisoner who
is under sentence of death in respect of any matters relating to his prosecution, his
detention, his trial, his conviction, his sentence or the carrying out of the death sentence on him and any matter connected therewith. The State party submitted in this
connection that the HRC had already exceeded its jurisdiction in registering the communication and purporting to impose interim measures. According to the State party
the very fact of the existence of the reservation and that the author of the communication
was a prisoner under sentence of death were sufcient to preclude the competence of
the HRC in the present case.356 The author of the communication argued, however,
that rstly, the body to whose jurisdiction a purported reservation is addressed decides
on the validity and effects of that reservation.357 Moreover, secondly, the reservation
under consideration signicantly impairing the competence of the HRC is incompatible
with the object and purpose of the Protocol and is, therefore, without effect and thus
presents no bar to the HRCs consideration of this communication.358
The HRC rejected the submission of the State party and afrmed its opinion
expressed in the General Comment N 24 that it belongs to the competence of the
Committee, as the treaty body of the ICCPR and its Optional Protocols, to interpret
and determine the validity of reservations made to the treaties.359 The HRC qualied
the reservation of Trinidad and Tobago as incompatible with the object and purpose of
the ICCPR and its Protocols. The consequence is that the Committee is not precluded
from considering the present communication under the Optional Protocol.360
353
354
355
356
357
358
359
360
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
107
361
362
363
364
365
366
108
CHAPTER II
the nal decision belongs, as before, to the State. For example, in the case described
above, Trinidad and Tobago can always terminate its participation in the Optional
Protocol if it prefers the view expressed in the individual dissenting opinion. This
solution was actually chosen by the government of Trinidad and Tobago which terminated its participation in the Optional Protocol on 27 March 2000. Moreover,
a disagreeing State unwilling to cooperate can simply choose a passive attitude.
No treaty monitoring body will have any coercive power to compel the State, for
example, to submit a report.
2. Developments in the Practice of States
State practice in relation to reservations to human rights treaties has been marked by
some very interesting progressive developments during last decade or two. The analysis
of reservations and objections to human rights treaties shows a general tendency among
some groups of States to pursue a consequential policy of objections. It means that not
only do such States object consequently to certain types of reservations, in particular
those judged by them as incompatible, but also that objections made by these States
represent a reection of their opinion on some controversial issues of the reservations
regime discussed above and an attempt to persuade other States to follow this opinion.
The most active States in this sense are Austria, Denmark, Finland, Germany, the
Netherlands, Norway and Sweden.367 To analyze this practice developed in the context
of human rights treaties in detail would go beyond the framework of the present
research. At this stage, only the most interesting trends in relation to human rights treaties in general will be presented. A detailed analysis of some of these trends in the
context of the CEDAW and reservations based on Islam is made in Chapter Three.
The most important statement from the point of view of doctrinal debate made by
all of the above mentioned States on at least one occasion is the statement related to the
effects of incompatible reservations. According to them an incompatible reservation is
devoid of legal effects and a treaty thus becomes operative between the objecting and
the reserving States in its entirety without the reserving State beneting from its reservation.368 Such statements not only deny the application of article 21, paragraph 3 of
the Vienna Convention to incompatible reservations, therefore, suggesting that some
367
368
Such States as Belgium, Canada, France, Ireland, Italy, Mexico, Portugal, and Spain as
well as several other States show a similar attitude from time to time, but they have not yet
brought it to the level of a continuous policy.
See, for example, objections made by Denmark to reservations entered by Djibouti, Iran,
Pakistan, Syria, Brunei Darussalam and Saudi Arabia to the Convention on the Rights of
the Child; objections made by Finland to reservations of Iran, Malaysia, Qatar, Brunei
Darussalam and Oman entered to the same convention and to the reservation of Bangladesh
to the ICESCR; objections of Portugal to reservations entered by Brunei Darussalam and
Saudi Arabia to the Convention on the Rights of the Child; objections of Sweden to
reservations entered by Iran, Saudi Arabia, Oman and Brunei Darussalam to the Convention
on the Rights of the Child and to reservations entered by Kuwait and Bangladesh to the
ICESCR; objection of Italy to the reservation of Kuwait to the ICESCR and of the United
States to the ICCPR; objection made by the Netherlands to the reservation entered by the
United States to the ICCPR.
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
109
different rules shall be applicable to this type of reservations, but they go even further
and express a very clear opinion as to the effects of incompatible reservations, namely,
that such reservations cannot have any legal effects and the State which proposed the
reservation remains bound by the treaty.
A further very important statement also relates to incompatible reservations. According
to the opinion of the States listed above no time limit applies to reservations which are
inadmissible under international law.369 This type of statement also places inadmissible
(including incompatible) reservations in a special position, separating them and rules
applicable to them from compatible reservations and rules codied in the Vienna
Convention. Moreover, these statements claim a wider scope of possibility of reaction
for States faced with incompatible reservations, in particular when they concern
provisions according to which States assume obligations for the common good.370
Finally, the third type of statement which deserves to be mentioned here is interesting
more in terms of policy considerations than in terms of doctrinal debate, although
it can have some signicant implications for the legal regime of reservations. This
third type of statement has been made in relation to one particular type of reservations,
namely, in relation to general, unspecied reservations. Being faced with such reservations, States after mentioning that general reservations raise doubts as to the commitment of the reserving State to the object and purpose of the treaty and contribute to
undermining the basis of international treaty law, conclude that a nal assessment as
to the admissibility of these reservations under international law cannot be made
without further clarication. However, in order to preserve its legal interests the
objecting State goes further and states that it does not consider the reservation as
admissible unless the reserving State, by providing additional information or through
subsequent practice, ensures that the reservation is compatible with the object and
purpose of the treaty.371 Sometimes the objecting State expressly invites the reserving
State to reconsider its reservation.372 Such an approach of an objecting State can be
very fruitful in achieving both universality and integrity of a treaty. Universality is
promoted by not excluding treaty relations with a reserving State and even encouraging more active participation in a treaty. The integrity is nevertheless preserved by the
very fact of objection and can even lead to an improvement in the degree of the
participation of the reserving State in a treaty, since the way for a dialogue is opened.
369
370
371
372
See, for example, the objections of Denmark, mentioned above in fn. 368; the objection of
Belgium to the reservation entered by Qatar to the Convention on the Rights of the Child;
objections made by Sweden to reservations of Brunei Darussalam and Singapore to the
same Convention.
It should be emphasized that on various occasions objecting States stress common interest
of all States in the respect of the object and purpose of the treaty to which they choose to
become parties.
See, for example, objections made by Austria to reservations entered by Iran, Malaysia,
Brunei Darussalam, Saudi Arabia, Oman, United Arab Emirates to the Convention on the
Rights of the Child; above mentioned (fn. 368) objections of Finland made in relation to
several reservations entered to the same convention; the objection of Sweden to the
reservation entered by Saudi Arabia to the same convention.
See, for example, the above-mentioned objections of Finland (fn. 368).
110
CHAPTER II
The communication submitted by Syria just gives more detail on the content of
relevant national legislation and the countrys interpretation of the relationship
between these provisions of the national legislation and the reserved articles of the
Convention.374 The communication is included only in the text of notes of the collection
373
374
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
111
of treaties deposited with the Secretary-General, but not in the text of reservations.
Moreover, being expressly formulated as an answer to one particular objection,
namely, the objection by Germany, it could have only limited signicance in the
context of bilateral relations between the two States. On the other hand, such limitation appears illogical, because, as a matter of fact, the same clarication could be
given to any other objecting State.
Finally, it should be mentioned that the practice of withdrawal and modication of
reservations is much more common in the context of human rights treaties than one
could expect. Moreover, the withdrawal and modication of reservations is often
made by States whose reservations attracted the greatest number of objections, in
particular, on the ground of incompatibility.375
375
See, for example, withdrawal of their originally entered reservations to the Convention on
the Rights of the Child by Malaysia, Myanmar, Pakistan, and Thailand.
112
CHAPTER II
active use of powers granted to them for the purposes of protection of the object and
purpose of a treaty. Moreover, this analysis shows also that not only do States attempt
to nd ways of adapting the Vienna Convention regime to some peculiarities of human
rights treaties, but they go even further. They express their views on some unresolved
questions of the reservations regime codied in the Vienna Convention and put a lot
of effort into making their views accepted by other States and bodies.
Human rights treaties have some characteristics which distinguish them from classical multilateral international treaties. Some of these peculiarities have already been
mentioned above. At this stage of analysis, some dynamic elements or characteristics
of human rights treaties should be emphasized.
Human rights treaties differ from classical international treaties in that States are
pushed to be more active through various procedures established by a treaty, such as
reporting procedure, inquiry procedure, but also through intervention of other actors
in treaty relations. These other actors, such as individuals or treaty monitoring bodies,
although having limited powers complaints procedure for individuals; consultative
or advisory powers of treaty monitoring bodies inuence the life of a treaty, and,
therefore, its States parties to a very great extent.
Surprisingly enough, States also become more active. Not being directly affected
by provisions of a human rights treaty, which purport primarily to protect individuals,
they are ready to discuss more sensitive issues.
How do these characteristics of human rights treaties affect the reservations
regime? Firstly, in the context of human rights treaties States being ready to discuss
more sensitive issues provide answers on some controversial questions of the
regime of reservations. The best examples of such an attitude are statements made
by several objecting States determining effects of incompatible reservations.
Secondly, treaty-monitoring bodies in the framework of powers granted to them by
a treaty develop attitudes and policies allowing them to inuence, to a very great
extent, the position of reserving States. The best example from this area is the
practice of withdrawal and modication of reservations very common in the context
of human rights treaties.
My conclusion is, therefore, the following: practice developed in relation to the
reservations regime in the context of human rights treaties is, under the best scenario,
an indicator or predecessor of future developments at the universal level, and an
answer to gaps and ambiguities of the reservations regime codied in the Vienna
Convention. In any case, all these developments, although containing some peculiarities, do not constitute a separate reservations regime, but take place inside the general
reservations regime.
The dynamism of human rights treaties has been particularly stressed in the context
of interpretation of human rights treaties. In this context dynamism or the principle of
dynamic interpretation means that the understanding and interpretation of terms of a
treaty is not limited by the sense attributed to them by States during the preparatory
work, but can evolve over time with the changing conditions and circumstances. The
above analysis shows that it also inuences other aspects of the treaty regime, namely,
the reservations regime of human rights treaties. In the context of the reservations regime
it can lead to situations when through the changing interpretation and understanding of
RESERVATIONS TO TREATIES
113
376
Practically, the latter possibility is less probable than the former, but is not impossible.
III
PRACTICE DEVELOPED IN THE CONTEXT OF
RESERVATIONS TO THE CEDAW BASED ON ISLAM
Each case is other, each decision is different and requires an absolutely unique
interpretation, which no existing, coded rule can or ought to guarantee absolutely.
Derrida, Force of Law, p. 961
377
378
379
It is difcult to give the exact number because all depends on the criteria adopted for the
selection. Should for example such States as Tunisia or Turkey be included in the analysis,
which although having a Muslim majority population and a rich Islamic tradition in the
past, have nowadays only very few traces of Islamic law in their legislation? Or should
also India be taken into account which, although having a Muslim minority population,
maintains a separate Court system and Personal Status Laws for the Muslim minority?
It should be noted that Turkey is not included into analysis, although initially it acceded to
the Convention with reservations quite similar to those of other Muslim States: articles 15,
paragraphs 2 and 4, article 16 (c), (d), (f) and (g) and article 9 1. But after the changes in
the legislation of this country and the following withdrawal of its reservations the last
traces of Islamic Sharia are eroded. Turkey does not therefore fulll the second condition
for countries to be considered for the analysis.
These States are therefore referred to as Muslim States. There is a number of countries with a
Muslim minority which entered substantive reservations aiming to preserve among others
116
CHAPTER III
Table 1 shows States whose practice will be analyzed below indicating articles which
are reserved by each of them. The following analysis will rst determine a general pattern among Muslim States identifying concrete provisions of the CEDAW which appear
to be problematic for these States on the basis of possible contradictions with Islam.
As a next step, a more detailed analysis of the position of each country will be undertaken. This analysis will consider not only the reservations themselves and information
provided to the treaty-monitoring body, namely the Committee on the Elimination of
Discrimination Against Women, but also relevant national legislation of the States concerned. The next stage of analysis will concentrate on reactions of other States parties
and the treaty-monitoring body to the reservations based on Islam. This will provide us
with guidance as to the practical responses of international law to the opposition by
Muslim States and its ways to deal with emerging tensions and contradictions.
Table 1
Country
Articles affected
Algeria
Art. 2
Art. 9 2
Art. 15 4
Art. 16
Art. 2
Art. 9 2
Art. 15 4
Art. 16
Upon accession:
Art. 2
Art. 13 (a)
Bahrain
Bangladesh
Brunei
Egypt
Iraq
Modied on
23 July 1997:
Art. 2
Art. 161 (c)
Upon ratication:
Art. 2
also Islamic laws and practices. So for example the reservation of Israel: () The State
of Israel hereby expresses its reservation with regard to article 16 of the Convention, to the
extent that the laws on personal status which are binding on the various religious
communities in Israel do not conform with the provisions of that article. To include this
type of reservation into analysis would introduce a number of new elements going beyond
the purposes of this research.
117
Table 1. Continued
Country
Articles affected
Jordan
Art. 9 2
Art. 15 4
Art. 16 1 (c) (d) (g)
Art. 7 (a)
Art. 9 2
Art. 16 (f )
Kuwait
Libya
Malaysia
Upon accession:
Art. 2 (f)
Art. 5 (a)
Art. 7 (b)
Art. 9
Art. 11
Art. 16
Upon accession: general (except those
[provisions] which the Government may
consider contradictory to the principles
of the Islamic Sharia)
General (approves the Convention in each
and every one of its parts which are not
contrary to Islamic Sharia and are in
accordance with /the/ Convention)
Maldives
Mauritania
Morocco
Niger
Oman
380
Modication on
9 December 2005:
Art. 9 2
Art. 16 (f )
Modication on
5 July 1995:
Art. 2
Art. 16 (c) (d)
Modication on
6 February 1998380:
Art. 5 (a)
Art. 7 (b)
Art. 9 2
Art. 11
Art. 16 1 (a) 2
Modication on
29 January 1999:
Art. 7 (a)
Art. 16
Art. 2
Art. 9 2
Art. 15 4
Art. 16
Art. 2 (d) (f)
Art. 5 (a)
Art. 15 4
Art. 16 1 (c) (e) (g)
General (All provisions of the Convention
not in accordance with the provisions of the
Islamic sharia and legislation in force);
Art. 9 2
Art. 15 4
Art. 16 (a) (c) (f ) in particular
This modication was not accepted and did not therefore formally enter into force. More
about the practice of modication of reservations see below in this Chapter. Reactions of
other States parties to modications are treated below in II.C.2.
118
CHAPTER III
Table 1. Continued
Country
Articles affected
Pakistan
Saudi Arabia
Syria
Tunisia
UAE
And reservations to
Art. 9 2
Art. 15 4
Art. 16 1 (c) (d) (f)
(g) (h)
381
382
Some further aspects of this issue are addressed in more detail below: II.C.2.
The sixth State which expressed very precise and concrete intention to modify its initial
reservation is Morocco. This intention was done on the occasion of submission of the
combined third and fourth periodic report at the 40th session of the CEDAW Committee
which took place from 14 January to 1 February 2008. However, this intention was not yet
ofcially submitted to the Secretary General as Depositary of the treaty.
119
The modication of Malaysia was not formally regarded as accepted383 because France
objected thereto. This non-acceptance is, however, very illogical and inconsequent.
First of all, the above-quoted text of notication by the Secretary-General makes the
acceptance of this modication dependent on the absence of objections related either
to the deposit itself or to the procedure envisaged, but not to the substance of the
modication. The objection of France states the following:
France considers that the reservation made by Malaysia, as expressed in the partial withdrawal and modications made by Malaysia on 6 February 1998, is incompatible with the
object and purpose of the Convention. France therefore objects to the (reservation.).
It is obvious that this objection relates to the substance of the modied reservation
and does not call into question either the deposit of the modication or the procedure
383
The situation is a very ambiguous in so far as the text of the original reservation of Malaysia
appears in the main text in the Collection of treaties together with an enumeration of
articles proposed for withdrawal. The practice, however, is to maintain in the main text
only the text of the modied reservation. Furthermore, the government of Malaysia when
withdrawing reservations to certain articles added some clarications with regard to the
remaining reserved articles. These clarications are contained only in the text of footnotes,
although being communicated at the same time as the withdrawal, they should formally be
regarded as a new formulation of a reservation and, if accepted, be placed in the main text
in place of the original reservation. Furthermore, in the CEDAW ofcial document
Declarations, reservations, objections and notications of withdrawal of reservations
relating to the CEDAW its Annex I contains a comprehensive table of States parties that
maintain their reservations. This table has among others two separate columns: one for
reservations made and another for reservations withdrawn. This document in its 2000
edition (CEDAW/SP/2000/2) contains no information on reservations withdrawn by
Malaysia. The corresponding space in the column withdrawn is empty (see p. 93). In the
2002 edition (CEDAW/SP/2002/2) the situation is different. All the reservations intended
by Malaysia for withdrawal are indicated as withdrawn (see p. 77). In 2004 (CEDAW/
SP/2004/2), surprisingly, only one reservation appears as withdrawn, namely that to article
2(f) (see p. 28). In document prepared in 2006 (CEDAW/SP/2006/2) all the reservations
intended by Malaysia for withdrawal are again indicated as withdrawn (see p. 51). In
practice, nally after more than ten years following the actual act of withdrawal, the
consensus seems to have been reached to consider that Malaysias reservations are those
remaining after the partial withdrawal. This became particularly clear during the
consideration of the nally submitted combined initial and second periodic report of
Malaysia in 2006. Not only had the government of Malaysia stated in the report that:
Following the Beijing Conference, steps were taken to review Malaysias reservations to
the Convention. As a result, reservations for Articles 2(f), 9(1), 16(b), (d), (e) and (h) were
withdrawn and declarations were made for Articles 5(a), 7(b), 9(2) 16(1)(a) and 16(2). The
remaining reservations on the Articles are because they are in conict with the provisions
of the Islamic Sharia law and the Federal Constitution of Malaysia. See Combined initial
and second periodic report of Malaysia submitted on 12 April 2004. UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
MYS/1-2, para. 69, p. 17. But even the members of the CEDAW Committee never
questioned Malaysia on her original reservations. See Concluding Comments of the
Committee, Consideration of combined initial and second periodic report of Malaysia,
2006, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MYS/CO/2, para. 4 at p. 1 and para. 9 at p. 2 in particular. The
situation is very illustrative of all the ambiguities and inadequacies of the formalistic
application of the reservations regime.
120
CHAPTER III
384
Alain Pellet in his Fifth Report discussed this issue although in a slightly different context.
The relevant part of his report deals with late reservations: The question arises, however,
whether a distinction should not be made between, on the one hand, objections in principle
to the formulation of late reservations and, on the other hand, traditional objections, such
as those that can be made to reservations pursuant to article 20, paragraph 4 (b) of the
Vienna Convention (). This distinction appears to be necessary, for it is hard to see why
co-contracting parties should not have a choice between all or nothing, () whereas they
may have reasons which are acceptable to their partners. Furthermore, in the absence of
such a distinction, States () which are not parties when the late reservation is formulated
but which become parties subsequently () would be confronted with a fait accompli. The
unanimous consent of other contracting parties should therefore be regarded as necessary
for the late formulation of reservations. On the other hand, the normal rules regarding
acceptance of and objections to reservations, as codied in articles 20 to 23 of the Vienna
Convention, should be applicable as usual with regard to the actual content of late
reservations, to which the other parties should be able to object as usual. UN Doc. A/
CN.4/508/Add.4, paras 307308, p. 2. This reasoning is also applicable, to a very great
extent, to modications of reservations because they are very similar to late reservations.
121
It would be illogical, and even dangerous, for the successful implementation of the
Convention to reject proposals of States which intend to restrict limitations initially
imposed by these States in their reservations. If a State expresses its will to be engaged
more widely in the implementation of the Convention, it shall be encouraged and supported, even if the new version of reservation still appears very far-reaching as far as
the States participation in the Convention is concerned.385
Table 1 shows that the only article which has been reserved by all States included in
the analysis is article 16 relating to marriage and family relations. The majority of
Muslim States also reserved article 2 on general measures on the elimination of discrimination against women and article 9 with respect to the nationality. A signicant
number of them also entered reservations to article 15, paragraph 4, which deals with
the freedom to choose ones own residence and domicile, while only the UAE reserved
the second paragraph of this article.
Three reservations have been made to article 7. In only one case was this reservation
justied by the application of Islamic laws, namely, in the case of Malaysia. In the text
of its proposed modication of the reservation it states that
the application of said article 7 (b) shall not affect appointment to certain public ofces
like the Mufti Syariah Court Judges, and the Imam which is in accordance with the provisions of the Islamic Shariah law.386
The Maldives explained in its initial report, submitted on 28 January 2001,387 that
according to the Constitution of the Maldives the Head of State of the Maldives should be
male388 without making any reference to the Islamic law. Finally, Kuwait gave no explanations in the text of its reservation, but neither in its combined initial and second report
no in its answers to CEDAW Committee members questions during the consideration of
this reports did representatives of Kuwait mention Islam as a ground for reserving this
provision.389 Furthermore, Kuwait withdrew its reservation to this provision in 2005.
385
386
387
388
389
In this sense I agree with the conclusions made by Alain Pellet in his Seventh Report on
Reservations to Treaties concerning the modication of reservations which amounts to
a partial withdrawal of reservations, namely that it is counterproductive to delay the entry
into force of the limitation of a reservation envisaged in such a modication and to run
a danger of preventing its entry into force by the vote of a single State party. (see above
Chapter Two, II.B.3.) However, as already mentioned above, on the basis of States practice
and arising issues I arrived at different conclusions as far as the possibility of objections to
modied reservations, including those amounting to partial withdrawals, is concerned. I
will address this issue later in this Chapter, when the practice of objections will be discussed
(see below II.C.).
Although the modication was not accepted, this clarication is equally applicable to the
initial reservation of Malaysia.
Initial report of the Maldives submitted on 28 January 2000, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
MDV/1.
Id., para. 58.
Combined Initial and Second Report of Kuwait submitted on 1 May 2003, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/KWT/1-2, p. 28; Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic
report submitted by Kuwait, 30th session, Summary records of the 642nd meeting,
22 January 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.642, para. 3, p. 2.
122
CHAPTER III
Malaysia is the only State which entered reservations to article 11. Article 5(a) of
the CEDAW was reserved only by Malaysia and Niger. These reservations will be
analyzed further only when discussing the national legislation of Malaysia. The reason
for this is the fact that Malaysias reservations to these two articles appear peculiar to
this country even if the government explains them by application of Islamic law. The
reservation entered by Niger to article 5 (a) is simply motivated by difculties inherent
in an attempt to change a customary or religious practice. The text of the proposed
modication of Malaysias reservation declares that the provision of article 5(a) is
subject to the Sharia law on the division of inherited property.
Finally, the reservation by Bangladesh to article 13 (a) withdrawn on 23 July 1997
is also difcult to explain, in particular taking into account the statement made in the
combined third and fourth periodic reports of Bangladesh:
Although the Government of Bangladesh has entered a reservation on this article, women
in the government service are receiving the same family benets as men.390
Thus, only in the case of reservations to articles 2, 9, 15 and 16 has the contradiction
between Islamic law and the provisions of the Convention been invoked as ground for
making reservations. Further analysis will therefore concentrate on these articles.
2. Article 2
States Parties condemn discrimination against women in all its forms, agree to pursue by
all appropriate means and without delay a policy of eliminating discrimination against
women and, to this end, undertake:
(a) to embody the principle of the equality of men and women in their national constitutions or other appropriate legislation if not yet incorporated therein and to ensure,
through law and other appropriate means, the practical realization of this principle;
(b) to adopt appropriate legislative and other measures, including sanctions where
appropriate, prohibiting all discrimination against women;
(c) to establish legal protection of the rights of women on an equal basis with men and
to ensure through competent national tribunals and other public institutions the
effective protection of women against any act of discrimination;
(d) to refrain from engaging in any act or practice of discrimination against women
and to ensure that public authorities and institutions shall act in conformity with
this obligation;
(e) to take all appropriate measures to eliminate discrimination against women by any
person, organization or enterprise;
(f) to take all appropriate measures, including legislation, to modify or abolish existing
laws, regulations, customs and practices which constitute discrimination against
women;
(g) to repeal all national penal provisions which constitute discrimination against women.
390
Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Bangladesh submitted on 1 April 1997, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/BGD/3-4, para. 2.12.1 The following paragraph 2.12.2 entitled Reservation
on article 13(a) does not bring more clarity: Bangladesh is not a welfare state and does not
provide any welfare benets to its citizens, either men or women. However, certain service
benets are provided to government employees. These are provided equally to men and
women. In fact women enjoy certain additional benets as mentioned above.
123
a) Nature of Obligation
By virtue of article 2 States parties undertake to insure by all appropriate means and
without delay a policy of eliminating discrimination against women. Article 2 also
prescribes appropriate measures in the legislative as well as the non-legislative sphere
to be adopted by States in order to comply with this general obligation to insure ()
a policy. Certain legal obligations are therefore laid down in this article. However,
these obligations are of a general nature. As all articles of the General Part (articles
2-6)391 of the CEDAW article 2 prescribes in general terms ways in which States parties shall behave, whereas provisions of the Special Part (articles 7-16) indicate specic areas and specic groups of rights which shall be guaranteed and respected using
the means indicated in the General Part. The obligation embodied in article 2 can
therefore be described both as an obligation of means and of result.
Article 2 is a core provision of the Convention. If a State refuses to comply with
one or another obligation laid down in this article, it will inevitably nd itself sooner
or later violating other provisions of the Convention, in particular those contained in
the Special Part of the Convention.
b) Content of Reservations
Reservations entered to article 2 by ten Muslim States can be divided into three groups
with one State the UAE remaining apart.392 The rst group encompasses reservations
entered by Bangladesh and Malaysia. The reservation of Bangladesh reads as follows:
The Government of the Peoples Republic of Bangladesh does not consider as binding
upon itself the provisions of articles 2, [.] and 16 (1) (c) [..] as they conict with
Sharia law based on Holy Quaran and Sunna.393
This type of reservation listing article 2 side by side with other articles of the
Convention places article 2 in the same position as any other article of the CEDAW
without paying due regard to its particular role in the context of the Convention.
The reservation of Iraq simply states that
Approval of and accession to this Convention shall not mean that the Republic of Iraq is
bound by the provisions of article 2, paragraphs (f) and (g), of article 9, paragraphs 1
and 2, nor of article 16 of the Convention.
391
392
393
Except article 6. This article deals with a particular area, namely trafc in women and
exploitation of prostitution and its place in the General Part is, in my opinion, illogical.
Although article 2 (f) is a general provision, the UAE reserved it in order to preserve one
particular area, namely inheritance rights established in accordance with Sharia: The
United Arab Emirates, being of the opinion that this paragraph violates the rules of
inheritance established in accordance with the precepts of the Sharia, makes a reservation
thereto and does not consider itself bound by the provisions thereof.
The initial reservation entered by Malaysia is of a similar nature and reads as follows:
The Government of Malaysia declares that Malaysias accession is subject to the
understanding that the provisions of the Convention do not conict with the provisions of
the Islamic Sharia law and the Federal Constitution of Malaysia. With regards thereto,
further, the Government of Malaysia does not consider itself bound by the provisions of
articles 2 (f), 5 (a), 7 (b), 9 and 16 of the aforesaid Convention.
124
CHAPTER III
The reservation of Syria also lists article 2 side by side with other articles without
explaining the reason for reserving each particular article.394 Such a statement, which
does not give the reasons or motives for making the reservation, is even more far
reaching than the above-mentioned type of reservation, because it sets no limits to the
reservation. The rst type of reservation sets at least some limits by giving a criterion
which shall be used when deciding whether a particular action or measure falls within
the scope of the reservation. Of course, one may doubt whether these two types of
reservations are very different in practical terms since, rstly, there are few people
able to determine what the scope of Sharia law really is. Secondly, even among these
people there exist a number of differences about the exact rules of Sharia law in a
number of areas, particularly those related to the status of women. Nevertheless, the
difference exists. If one would like to have a discussion with a State about, for example, the necessity of maintaining the reservation, in the case of the rst type of reservation there is at least a point of departure for discussion, a basis on which to argue and
to develop a constructive dialogue with a State.
The six remaining States constitute a third group. Reservations entered by this
group of States contain the grounds for making reservations and sometimes even
explanations about the consequences of their reservations. Thus, with regard to article 2
Algeria made the following reservation:
The Government of the Peoples Republic of Algeria declares that it is prepared to apply
the provisions of this article on condition that they do not conict with the provisions of
the Algerian Family Code
Bahrain, Egypt, Libya, Niger and Morocco formulated similar reservations, just
replacing Family Code by Sharia law in the case of rst three States, by the Code of
Personal Status in the case of Morocco and by customs and practices in the case of
Niger. The reservation entered by Niger species paragraphs of this article to which it
relates, namely (f) and (d) and mentions one particular issue involved, namely succession.395 The particular feature of the reservations entered by these six States lies, however, not in the text of the reservation to article 2 itself, but in the cumulative effect of
394
395
It is only in relation to its reservation to article 16, paragraph 2 that Syrian government
explains that this provision is reserved inasmuch as (it) is incompatible with the provisions
of the Islamic Sharia.
This fact does not change the nature of the reservation, as a general or cover reservation
because the text is clear in making reference to changing customs and practices in general:
The Government of the Republic of the Niger expresses reservations with regard to article
2, paragraphs (d) and (f), concerning the taking of all appropriate measures to abolish all
customs and practices which constitute discrimination against women, particularly in
respect of succession. In this regard, the reservation entered by the UAE, although it also
mentions issue of inheritance, stays apart, at least as far as it is possible to interpret the text
of the reservation. It is in fact a reservation concerning one specic right: The United
Arab Emirates, being of the opinion that this paragraph violates the rules of inheritance
established in accordance with the precepts of the Sharia, makes a reservation thereto and
does not consider itself bound by the provisions thereof.
125
all the reservations, including those relating to other articles of the Convention. If one
analyses the text of reservations to other articles, it becomes clear that they play the
role of clarication of the reservation entered to article 2. For example, Algerias
reservations to articles 9, paragraph 2, article 15, paragraph 4 and article 16 also mention the Algerian Family Code, but contrary to the reservation to article 2, indicate
specic rights or provisions of the Family Code, which shall not be affected by
Algerias participation in the Convention. These reservations, when interpreted as
being interconnected, lead to the following conclusion: should the reservations to
articles 9, paragraph 2, article 15, paragraph 4 and article 16 be removed, the reservation to article 2 will no more be necessary. The same is true also for Bahrain, Egypt,
Libya, Morocco and Niger.
This interpretation is in conformity with the place of article 2 in the General Part of the
Convention and its role as a provision forming the basis for the successful implementation of all specic rights guaranteed to women by the Convention. Keeping in mind
requirements of article 2, it is logical to conclude that a State strictly complying with
article 2 will nd itself acting in conformity with all other provisions of the Convention.
Did the six above-mentioned States really take into consideration all these ideas? In
my view the answer is in the afrmative because the text of their reservations shows a
high degree of precision. They do not just simply mention articles of the Convention but
explain which provisions of national law could in their opinion contradict the reserved
articles of the Convention and often even how the rights embodied in these articles are
affected by reservations. One has the impression that these States really reected upon
the importance of formulation, terms of reservations and their consequences.
3. Article 9
1. States Parties shall grant women equal right with men to acquire, change or
retain their nationality. They shall ensure in particular that neither marriage to
an alien nor change of nationality by the husband during marriage shall automatically change the nationality of the wife, render her stateless or force upon
her the nationality of the husband.
2. States Parties shall grant women equal rights with men with respect to the
nationality of their children.
a) Nature of Obligation
Article 9 concerns the equality, with respect to nationality, of women. The rst
paragraph of article 9 requires States to grant women equal rights with men in the
acquisition, change or retention of their nationality. Paragraph 2 of this article contains the obligation of States to grant women equal rights with men with respect to
the nationality of their children.
The Committee in its comment particularly emphasized the importance of the rst
aspect of the right to nationality. It stressed that the status as nationals or citizens is
essential for the exercise of such rights as the right to vote, to run for public ofce,
for access to public benets and choice of residence. Thus, nationality should be
capable of change by an adult woman and should not be arbitrarily removed
126
CHAPTER III
a) Nature of Obligation
Article 15 deals with the equality before the law (paragraph 1), equality in civil matters
and the legal capacity of women and the opportunity to exercise it (paragraphs 23)
and nally with the law relating to the movement of persons (paragraph 4).
396
397
398
399
127
A woman shall be able to provide for herself and her dependants. Such rights as
ownership, administration of property and full legal capacity to conclude legal contracts are essential in this connection. Thus, the Committee stressed in its comment
when a woman cannot enter into a contract at all, or have access to nancial credit, or
can do so only with her husbands or male relatives concurrence or guarantee, she is
denied legal autonomy.400 The Committee qualies as an obstacle to womens ability
to provide for herself and her dependents, such practices existing in certain States, as
the limitation of womens right to bring litigation and of her status as a witness. Such
practices also diminish womens standing as independent, responsible and valued
members of their community.401
As far as the right to choose ones own domicile is concerned, its importance is
evident in the context of the need for a woman, as any other citizen, to have free
access to the courts in the country in which she lives, as well as the possibility to enter
and leave a country freely.402
b) Content of Reservations
Nine Muslim States entered reservations to article 15.403 All these reservations with
one exception404 relate exclusively to paragraph 4 of article 15 and affect primarily the
right of women to choose their residence and domicile.
In the case of Tunisia and Morocco periodic reports clarify that
a married woman must accompany her husband when he changes residence. She has no
right to elect a domicile other than the conjugal domicile.405
400
401
402
403
404
405
406
128
CHAPTER III
a) Nature of Obligation
Article 16 deals with the issue of equality in marriage and family relations. Provisions
of this article deal with matters belonging to the so-called private sphere. Traditionally,
human rights treaties excluded this sphere from the scope of their regulation. Law in
general views public and private life differently and generally does not regard it as
407
408
The text of the reservation simply states that a wifes residence is with her husband.
These two rights are closely related one to another. They are, however, not identical.
129
409
410
411
412
130
CHAPTER III
413
131
The reservation to Article 9 is also not addressed further. However, since provisions of relevant legislation are quoted both in the text of the reservation and in the
initial report, it is clear that the reservation relates to the right of women to transmit
their nationality to their children.414
The reservation of Algeria to article 15, paragraph 4 states that provisions of this
article concerning the right of women to choose their residence and domicile should
not be interpreted in such a manner as to contradict the provisions of chapter 4 (art. 37)
of the Algerian Family Code. The initial report, however, simply refers to the provision of the Algerian Constitution which guarantees the freedom of movement and the
right to choose ones place of residence and domicile without giving any clarication
as to the content of article 37 of the Algerian Family Code:
Article 44 (of the Algerian Constitution) provides that all citizens in possession of their
civil and political rights have the right to choose freely their place of residence, and to
move freely about the national territory. It also guarantees the right to enter and to leave
the country. This article is general in its scope, and applies equally to men and to women,
without distinction.415
The words general in scope can imply that some exceptions exist. The exact
scope and consequences of the reservation are, however, difcult to determine if we
refer exclusively to the information provided in the reports. In order to understand the
real impact of the reservation, we have to turn to relevant provisions of national legislation of Algeria, in particular to Algerian Family Code. According to article 39 of
this Code, a wife must obey her husband, regard him as the head of the family, and
respect his parents and relations. From this wifes duty of obedience the wifes duty
to seek permission from the husband before leaving the home is derived.
A similar attitude as to the question of the extent and practical consequences of the
reservation is adopted by Algeria in its initial as well as in the second periodic reports
with regard to article 16. The relevant part of both reports does not expressly address
the issue of the reservation. Moreover, none of the provisions of Algerian law mentioned in the report gives an impression that the reservation is necessary. The only
exception could be a part of the initial report dealing with the issue of dissolution of
marriage. Although the reservation is not addressed explicitly either, it becomes clear
after reading this part of the initial report that the scope of the right to the dissolution
of marriage is not exactly the same for men and women.416
An analysis of the Family Code reveals that womens status in relation to family
matters is also affected in many other respects. Inequality is introduced already at the
414
415
416
132
CHAPTER III
stage of conclusion of a marriage contract. Not only is the minimum age of marriage
lower for women (18 years) than for men (21 years), but the conclusion of the marriage contract is impossible for a woman without the intermediary of a guardian.
Article 11 of the Family Code expressly requires that marriage of a woman shall be
conducted by a guardian who is her father, failing which a close agnate relative of
hers. It should however be noted that articles 12 and 13 attempt to establish a certain
degree of protection against possible misuse by the guardian of his position. It is
stated that no guardian can stop his ward from marrying if she so wishes or compel
her to marry against her consent. Unfortunately, this protective function of articles 12
and 13 is weakened by an additional clause permitting the father to prevent a marriage
of his virgin daughter if this is in her best interest. If the guardian opposes the marriage
without valid cause, the judge may authorize it.
Although marriage is dened as a contract lawfully concluded between a man and
a woman, the ends of which are, inter alia, the formation of a family based on love,
compassion, co-operation, chastity of the two spouses and the preservation of legitimate lineage417, legally established obligations of spouses during the marriage do not
really reect these ends of a marriage. Thus, the wife is required, according to article 39
of the Family Code, to obey her husband, to accord him respect as a head of a household. The only real obligation of a husband is to provide maintenance which includes,
according to article 78, food, clothing, housing and the amenities thereof, treatment
fees according to custom and servants for women whose equals have servants. Thus,
whereas the obligation of a husband is material or nancial in nature, the obligation of
a wife for obedience is interpreted so widely as to include any form of independent
behavior. Thus, the husband can prevent his wife inter alia from working, going outside
the home, traveling etc.418 This makes any other rights de jure available to women
according to Algerian legislation, such as the right to dispose of their own property and
to administer it, almost senseless. A husband can even vote on behalf of his wife.419
The situation is further complicated by limited rights of women as far as the dissolution of a marriage is concerned. The husband can unilaterally dissolve the marriage without giving any valid reason or justication. Such unilateral dissolution of a
marriage by a husband shall take effect from the time it is recorded with the court of
jurisdiction of the locality if not effected before a judge. In a case of abuse of his right
to unilateral dissolution of a marriage by a husband a judge shall award damages to a
wife. This form of dissolution of a marriage is not available to a wife. To a certain
extent two other procedures for dissolution of a marriage available to women compensate for the impossibility to use the same unilateral right as a husband. Firstly, the
417
418
419
133
In addition a woman can obtain separation from her husband in return for some
compensation. Usually, she needs to obtain consent from her husband for such dissolution of her marriage. However, if the husband persists in refusing to agree on any
terms of such a divorce, a judge may declare the divorce and determine the amount of
compensation to be paid not exceeding the amount of a proper dower.
At the rst glance it can appear that the unilateral right of a husband to dissolution
of a marriage is compensated by the two forms of dissolution of marriage given to
a wife, the dissolution of a marriage for compensation corresponding to cases when
a wife is awarded damages by a judge for a misuse of this right to unilateral dissolution of a marriage by a husband and the divorce before a judge on prescribed grounds
to cases when no compensation is awarded. However, as already mentioned above,
apart from practical difculties faced by women seeking a divorce,421 the very fact of
express regulation of reasonable grounds for seeking divorce only by a wife places
women in a disadvantageous position. Since the determination of reasonableness or
arbitrariness of the unilateral dissolution of a marriage pronounced by a husband is
left to the discretion of judges, it is very probable that judges being male and in the
majority of cases equipped with the same prejudices against women as their husbands
will interpret a wider palette of cases in favor of husbands.
Finally, the issue of polygamy which is still permitted in Algeria should also be
mentioned. If originally the Algerian Family Code did not signicantly restrict this right
of men to marry up to four women, the reform of 1998 introduced some restrictions,
420
421
134
CHAPTER III
such as the requirement of a justied reason for a polygamous marriage, the need to
obtain the consent of a spouse,422 and notication of both spouses. Although these
restrictions may appear insignicant, in particular because the legislator does not dene
the justied reason for a polygamous marriage, they still offer a possibility for women
to get protection in the most obvious cases of abuse.
However unfortunate the special part of Algerias reports and provisions of its
Family Code, the general part of this report contains some statements which not
only explain the reasons behind and the extent of the reservations423 but also shed a
new light on Algerias attitude towards the implementation of the CEDAW in
general:
The Governments stance has been to accede to the Convention with certain reservations
(), with implicit understanding that accession to this and other similar instruments
must be used as an argument in favor of gradual changes in the countrys social standards, and those reservations will be removed as those changes progress. Accession to the
Convention prompted the government to envisage amendments to the Family Code.424
Taking all these factors into account, the two following conclusions can be drawn:
Firstly, Algerias reservation to article 2 has no independent signicance. It has sense
only if read in conjunction with reservations to other articles, because as has been
shown above, Algeria is willing to comply with all provisions of the Convention and
in particular with the requirements of article 2. Both reports show that a number of
measures, including legislative, have been adopted in order to comply with the
Convention. Secondly, reservations do not serve to preserve existing discriminatory
laws, traditions and practices. Reservations entered by Algeria are a mere reection of
the actual situation and an indication of areas of concern.
2. Bahrain
Bahrain became a State party to the Convention quite recently, on 18 June 2002. The
only information available about the position of this country in the context of the
Convention is therefore the text of the reservation itself. This text provides very few
explanations about the reasons behind and the implications of the reservation for the
compliance with the Convention. Thus, it states that article 2 is reserved in order to
insure implementation within the bounds of the provisions of the Islamic Sharia.
Reservations to article 9, paragraph 2 and article 15, paragraph 4 contain no further
comments. However, in relation to the reservation entered to article 16 it is stated that
422
423
424
If her consent was not obtained, a woman may petition for a divorce.
According to conclusions of the Committee made on the basis of Algerias report and the
discussion of this report, the areas of concern are discriminatory provisions of the Family
Code which deny Algerian women their basic rights, such as free consent to marriage,
equal rights to divorce, sharing of family and child-rearing responsibilities, shared child
custody rights with fathers, the right to dignity and self-respect and, above all, the
elimination of polygamy. Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the
initial report of Algeria, 1999, UN Doc. A/54/38/Rev.1, para. 91.
Initial report of Algeria submitted on 1 September 1998, CEDAW/C/DZA/1, at p. 11.
135
this article is reserved in so far as it is incompatible with the provisions of the Islamic
Sharia. The implication of this statement could be that not in all cases will the compliance with the provisions of the Islamic Sharia relating to family matters lead to
incompatibility with the requirements of article 16. The absence of any statement in
relation to reservations entered to article 9, paragraph 2 and article 15, paragraph 4
does not mean that they are not motivated by preference to the application of Islamic
Sharia. Rather, this indicates the function of a reservation to article 2 as a general
precaution with reservations to other articles being a clarication and specication of
the reservation to article 2.
It is very difcult to ascertain objectively and obtain an independent evaluation of
ways in which application of Sharia will affect compliance with the CEDAW in
Bahrain, because personal status law in this country is not codied. A separate court
system established for the cases related to personal status applies classical Sharia
law of the Jafari Shii school (majority) or Shai or Maliki Sunni schools (minorities).
There is no ofcial publication of Sharia courts decisions.
Should Bahrain comply with its reporting obligations,425 the primary challenge for
the Committee would be the determination of the content of personal status laws
applicable in Bahrain. This indeterminate nature and lack of clarity, which cannot be
completely removed even with the recourse to the national legislation of the country,
is in my view the most problematic and challenging aspect of Bahrains reservation.
3. Bangladesh
Initially Bangladesh entered reservations to article 2, article 13 (a) and article 16,
paragraph 1 (c) and (f). On 23 July 1997 the government of Bangladesh decided to
withdraw its reservations to articles 13 (a) and 16 (f). The Committee had till now ve
reports from Bangladesh. Four of them were submitted before the partial withdrawal
of reservations. They take, therefore, into account all initially made reservations.
The text of the reservation itself simply mentions affected provisions of the
Convention without any further explanation except the fact that the reserved provisions conict with Sharia law based on the Holy Quran and Sunna. Bangladeshs
reports address the effects of reservations on the implementation of relevant provisions in more detail, especially the combined third and fourth periodic reports, which
contain separate chapters on reservations to each reserved article.426
With regard to the reservation to article 2, the report contains the following
statement:
425
426
According to article 18 of the CEDAW the initial report is due within one year after the
entry into force of the Convention for the State concerned; thereafter, at least every four
years and further whenever the Committee so requests. However, as far as the submission
of the initial report is concerned, a delay of one to three years is common among States
parties to the CEDAW. The initial report of Bahrain can, therefore, still reasonably be
expected.
Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Bangladesh submitted on 1 April 1997,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/BGD/3-4.
136
CHAPTER III
The Government of Bangladesh placed reservations to Articles 13 (a) and 16 (1) (c) which
were thought to be in contradiction with Shariah Law derived from the Holy Quran and
Sunnah. By deduction the reservation on Article 2 was placed.427
This statement proves that the reservation to article 2 has no independent signicance.
This reservation is again only a reection of reservations to other articles of the Special
Part of the Convention.
It follows from the reports of Bangladesh, that the reservation to article 13 was not
necessary at all.428 More important and far-reaching is, however, the reservation to
article 16 (c) and (f). Reports submitted by Bangladesh give a clear picture of the legal
situation which led to the reservation. Since personal affairs like marriage, divorce,
custody of children, inheritance etc. are governed in Bangladesh by religious laws for
each religious community separately,429 the legislation which led to the reservation
concerns the Muslim community of Bangladesh only.430 Reports show that areas of
particular concern are dissolution of marriage, guardianship and maintenance of children, polygamy and inheritance.431
The initial report of Bangladesh presents, in detail, provisions of Islamic Sharia with
regard to inheritance as they are applicable in Bangladesh explaining the difference in
shares inherited by men and women of the same degree of kinship432 as follows:
woman inherits shares from her husband as well as from her father and also receives
dower from her husband. Moreover, she has no responsibility to maintain anybody, and in
the second instances, she gets her own maintenance from her child. Another reason was
that, under Islam, a widow can marry again. So, if she remarries and takes with her large
share of the property of her deceased husband, there will be social problems.433
According to Islamic law as it is applicable in Bangladesh, the dissolution of marriage is possible for a man without showing any reason and without his wifes consent
while the wife can unilaterally dissolve the marriage only if she is delegated the authority
to do so by her husband at the time of marriage (generally in the marriage contract document). The wife can also seek dissolution of marriage through a court on certain reasons
427
428
429
430
431
432
433
137
434
435
436
437
438
Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Bangladesh submitted on 1 April 1997,
CEDAW/C/BGD/3-4, para. 2.15.3. One of the reasons for seeking divorce is cruelty
towards the wife.
Hasina Ahmed v. Sayed Abul Fazal. 32 Dhaka Law Reports 1980, 294.
Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Bangladesh submitted on 1 April 1997,
CEDAW/C/BGD/3-4, para. 2.15.5. Unfortunately, as stated in the same report the wife is
not provided with any maintenance except the agreed upon dower, which is often
difcult to obtain. Thus, the fear of losing guardianship over children as well as losing
security and property often makes women continue to live in oppressive situation as they
have no other alternatives.
See e.g. Muhammad Abu Baker Siddique v. S.M.A. Bakar & others. 38 Dhaka Law Reports/
AD/ 1986. See also AN-NAIM, Abdullahi, Ahmed, ed. Islamic Family Law in a Changing
World: A Global Resource Book. London, New York: Zed Books, 2002, p. 218 for further
references.
In another part of the report relevant provisions of the Constitution are reproduced showing
that equality between men and women is guaranteed in Bangladesh without any restriction.
See Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Bangladesh submitted on 1 April 1997,
CEDAW/C/BGD/3-4, at pp. 2324.
138
CHAPTER III
This statement can be claried as follows: The law of personal status is based on
Islam for the Muslim population and is not codied, although, certain legislative acts
contain some basic provisions. Nevertheless, the law based on Islam is not regarded
as an immutable body of clear rules but as a set of guiding principles subject to reinterpretation. This allows courts to develop jurisprudence which takes womens interests
into account more extensively.440 Another important point relates to the fact that the
Constitution recognizing full equality between sexes (at least in the public sphere)
enjoys priority over other laws. Any law in contradiction with the provisions of the
Constitution is automatically void.441 On the basis of these principles courts developed
jurisprudence enforcing equality and offering a new reading of Islamic texts dealing
with the issues of personal status. Thus, in the case of Nelly Zaman v. Giasuddin
Khan442 a husband sued for forcible restitution of conjugal rights against his wife who
was unwilling to live with her husband. The court rejected this plea as a violation of
the accepted State and Public Principle and Policy.443 The court ruled that such restitution would violate the principle of equality guaranteed by articles 27, 28, paragraph 2
and 31 of the Constitution of Bangladesh because women and men do not have exactly
the same right to request this restitution. The right of women is restricted to claims of
maintenance and alimony only.
Furthermore in another decision the Court declared polygamous marriages to be
against the principles of Islamic law and recommended the Ministry of Law to reconsider section 6 of the Muslim Family Law Ordinance permitting polygamy. As a justication the Court referred to opinions of Muslim scholars that since one of the
conditions for polygamy is the requirement to treat co-wives justly and equally and
that it is virtually impossible to do so, the permission of polygamy under certain conditions contained in the Quran means in fact prohibition. The case of Tunisia where
polygamy was prohibited on the basis of this scholarly opinion was given as an
example.444
Thus, despite the rst impression which the reading of the text of the reservation
leaves, the government of Bangladesh shows its readiness to make all necessary
efforts in order to comply with the Convention. In this connection the previous
assumption, that the reservation entered by Bangladesh places article 2 at the same
439
440
441
442
443
444
139
445
446
140
CHAPTER III
the provisions of Islam. Practical reasons are given to explain this reservation, in
particular the necessity of preventing a childs acquisition of two nationalities.447
Reports submitted by Egypt do not shed more light on the consequences of Egypts
reservation to article 2. Moreover, when answering questions of the members of the
Committee, the representative of Egypt said that
the reservations entered by his country would not affect the application of article 2 as the
Constitution guaranteed equality for all persons irrespective of sex or religion.448
With regard to the reservation to article 9, it was stated by Egypt on various occasions that the government is seeking the means to reconsider the reservation and
reported on some measures taken in this direction.449
As far as the reservation to article 16 is concerned, the main problem remains the
issue of dissolution of marriage already invoked by Egypt in the text of its reservation.450
447
448
449
450
141
The polygamy still existing under Egyptian law can also be regarded as a discriminatory
practice falling within the scope of this reservation.451 The text of the reservation, the
reports and their consideration by the Committee do not indicate any other problematic areas. The analysis of the relevant Egyptian legislation and jurisprudence in the
matters of personal status shows that other issues are also involved in the question of
compliance with the provisions of the CEDAW.
It is interesting to note that according to personal status law applicable in Egypt
a woman can conclude her marriage contract herself, without the intermediary of
a guardian, as is usual in many other Muslim countries.452 The guardian, however, has
the right to apply for the annulment of a marriage on the ground of unsuitability of
a husband, if no children are born out of this marriage.453
During marriage, rights and obligations of husband and wife are dened in a traditional manner, the wife being obliged to obey her husband in return for maintenance,
which is an obligation of a husband. It should be mentioned that according to Egypts
legislation the fact that a wife goes out of the home to work without her husbands
permission is not regarded itself as disobedience. If the wife leaves the marital home
for lawful work, she is not regarded as disobedient provided that it does not appear
that her use of this right which is stipulated (in the marriage contract) involves misuse
of the right, or is contrary to the interests of the family, in those instances in which her
husband has asked her to refrain from this.454
The most controversial area of Egypts personal status law is the issue of
dissolution of marriage. The doctrine predominant in Egypt is particularly reluctant
to recognize any rights of women to initiate a divorce and any limitations on the
exclusivity of the unilateral right of a husband to grant a divorce. As in many other
Muslim States the husband has an unlimited unilateral right to divorce.455 The wife
451
452
453
454
455
Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the third and combined fourth
and fth periodic reports of Egypt, Advance unedited version, 2001, UN Doc. CEDAW/
C/2001/I/Add.2, paras. 4344.
The minimum age of marriage is 18 for men and 16 for women.
The suitability is traditionally dened according to the Hana doctrine and includes six
considerations lineage, Islam, freedom, property, trade or craft, and piety which may
vary according to the times, as stated in Egyptian jurisprudence. See e. g. Ruling of the
Court of Appeal, discussed in EL ALAMI, Dawoud Sudqi. The marriage contract in Islamic
law in the Sharia and personal status laws of Egypt and Morocco. London: Graham &
Trotman Ltd., 1992, pp. 7274. It is interesting that in this case decided in 1990 the Court
also stated that the right of the guardian to request the annulment of the marriage lapses if
his ward had given birth to a child or became pregnant. In this case interests of children
prevail and marriage cannot be annulled.
Article 2 of the Law N 100 of 1985 amending article 1 of Law N 25 of 1920. Unfortunately
this provision does not improve signicantly the right of women to exercise freely a
profession of their choice. Even if this right is stipulated in the marriage contract, the right
of a husband to forbid his wife to work is unrestricted. It is also to be noted that the
obligation of a wife to obey her husband implies signicant restrictions which the husband
can place on her right to leave the marital home are in obvious contradiction with the
provision of article 15, paragraph 4 of the CEDAW. Nevertheless, no reservation was
placed by Egypt on this article.
It should be again recalled that this right of a husband to dissolve the marriage gives him
a unilateral, unconditional right to dissolve the marriage without requiring him to present
142
CHAPTER III
in contrast can either request a separation by the court on certain grounds recognized
by law 456 or initiate a procedure known as khul which sometimes is described as a
nancial settlement whereby a wife buys from her husband the dissolution of a marriage in return for some material compensation. In 2000 a new law regulating certain
procedural aspects of personal status law aiming at facilitating this latter procedure
of dissolution of marriage for women was adopted. According to this law the divorce
shall be granted to women by a court in return for an amount of money not exceeding the amount of dower as specied in the marriage contract. The woman who
divorces according to this procedure loses all her possible nancial rights, such as
for example maintenance from her husband. The law, however, attempted to grant to
women who divorce according to this procedure a certain degree of nancial security if they get the custody of their children upon divorce.457 In this case they are
entitled to an immediate alimony for their children which is payable by the ex-husband. Should he be unable or unwilling to do this, the State will provide divorced
women with the alimony for their children through the Bank Nasser immediately
and collect the money from the husband later. Finally, the divorce after an attempt
of reconciliation shall be granted within three months. These procedural regulations
if applied correctly would allow even women who cannot afford to support their
456
457
a case before a judge or a court. Modern legislation in many countries recognizing this
right requires nevertheless ofcial registration of such dissolution of a marriage and
providing the wife with the information about the fact of dissolution. Often the legislator
also stipulates for award of damages to an arbitrarily divorced wife. All these clauses can
also be found in Egyptian legislation.
The range of grounds recognized by the legislature can be very limited, in particular in
countries following the Hana schools of law, as is the case of Egypt. However, as a result of
several legislative reforms Egyptian legislation recognized the possibility for women to sue
for a divorce on following grounds: injury (article 6 of Law N 25 of 1929), whereby injury
is understood as a deliberate bad behavior of the husband with humiliation, cruelty or other
violent behavior constituting the core of this concept of injury (for a detailed analysis of this
concept see NAVEH, Immanuel. The Tort of Injury and Dissolution of Marriage at the Wifes
Initiative in Egyptian Mahkamat Al-Naqd Rulings. 9 Islamic Law and Society 2001, p. 29
in particular); failure to pay maintenance (recognized already by article 4 of Law N 25 of
1920); imprisonment for more than 3 years (article 14 of Law N 25 of 1929); husbands
absence for one year or more without sufcient reason (article 13 of Law N 25 of 1929);
defect on a part of a husband (such as dangerous or contagious disease). Law N 44 of 1979
attempted to introduce polygamous marriage as an automatic ground for divorce because of
it being harmful to women, but this law was declared unconstitutional on procedural grounds.
Law N 100 of 1985 which replaced the legislation of 1979 recognizes simply the right of
women to apply for divorce in case of polygamous marriages; in order to actually get the
divorce a woman has to prove that the polygamy of her husband really results in moral or
physical harm to her. The decision about the harmful character of such a polygamous marriage
is left to a judge; the burden of proof lies on a wife.
The custody of young children is usually awarded to women. Article 20 of Law N 25 of
1929 as modied by article 3 of Law N 100 of 1985 states: A womans right of custody
terminates when a minor boy reaches the age of ten and when a minor girl reaches the age
of twelve. After these ages have been reached, the judge may allow a boy, until the age of
fteen, and for girl, until she marries, to remain in the custody of the woman without
payment for custody, if it is apparent that their interests require this.
143
children on their own to make recourse to an efcient and relatively short divorce
procedure. Unfortunately, the practical application of this law faces many obstacles.
Apart from difculties related to the stigmatization and blame faced by women
requesting a divorce they also have to deal with the reluctance on the part of judges
to apply this law, as well as failure to implement the most important aspect of this
law, the provision of child alimony via Bank Nasser.458
Difculties arising during the application of this procedural law show the degree of
importance of parallel societal changes. Any real improvement of the situation of
women cannot be achieved exclusively through constant legislative reforms. Parallel
changes in societal attitudes are as important as legal reforms.
The principal conclusion is that Egypts reservation to article 2 is also a mere
reection of other reservations to some provisions of the Special Part of the
CEDAW. The country is in principle willing to comply with the Convention, makes
all necessary efforts in this direction and does not use reservations as a pretext and
justication of non-compliance with the Convention, but as an indication of areas
of concern.
6. Iraq
In contrast to the all above analyzed reservations to article 2, the reservation entered
by Iraq to this article is presented in its initial report in a different manner. In particular, it explains reasons behind this reservation, and does not just simply avoid any
substantive consideration of the reservation. The initial report of Iraq stresses that the
problem of discrimination cannot be resolved independently from the general evolution of the Iraqi society, and that any changes in the legislation shall be coordinated
with this evolution of the society. Since introduction of any new legislation relating to
the situation of women would have as a consequence annulment or modication of
existing regimes and rules accepted by the society, the government of Iraq judged it
necessary to enter a reservation to article 2 (f) and (g).459
Such a statement clearly restricts obligations which the State party undertakes in
virtue of its adherence to the treaty. On the other hand, the last part of this statement
supports the idea that whenever a State reserves an article of the Special Part of the
CEDAW due to divergences between its national legislation and the requirements of
the Convention, a reservation to article 2 of the CEDAW is inevitable since it contains
a general obligation to bring national legislation in conformity with the CEDAW.
The reservation to article 9 is explained in terms of the necessity to preserve the
unity of each family also in the area of nationality.460 The analysis of relevant national
legislation quoted in Iraqs reports makes clear that not only some discriminatory
458
459
460
For an analysis of cases of divorce initiated according to this law during its rst year of
operation see TADROS, Mariz. What price freedom? In: Al-Ahram Weekly Online, 713
March 2002, N 576.
Initial report of Iraq submitted on 16 August 1990, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/5/Add.66/Rev.1,
at p. 10.
Id., at p. 16.
144
CHAPTER III
461
462
463
464
465
466
See id., at pp. 1618 and Combined second and third periodic reports of Iraq submitted on
19 October 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/IRQ/2-3, at pp. 1213.
According to rst two paragraphs of article 18 Iraqi citizenship is a right for every Iraqi
and is the basis of his nationality. Anyone who is born to an Iraqi father or to an Iraqi
mother shall be considered an Iraqi. This shall be regulated by law.
See e.g. Initial report of Iraq submitted on 16 August 1990, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/5/
Add.66/Rev.1, at pp. 3453. Substantial provisions of Iraqs law dene three types of
dissolution of marriage: divorce initiated, as a rule, by the husband (a wife has the right to
initiate a divorce only if this right was given to her in the marriage contract); judicial
separation which can be requested by both men and women on the same grounds prescribed
by law (additional grounds for the invocation of judicial separation are given to a wife);
al-khul described as a voluntary separation by mutual consent of spouses, but which means
a nancial settlement whereas a wife acquires the husbands consent to dissolve the
marriage for some material consideration.
Id., at p. 51 and Combined second and third periodic reports of Iraq submitted on 19
October 1999, CEDAW/C/IRQ/2-3 at p. 35.
Initial report of Iraq submitted on 16 August 1990, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/5/Add.66/Rev.1,
at p. 38.
Id., at p. 34.
145
The analysis of Iraqs legislation on matters of personal status shows a picture very
similar to that of other Muslim States. However, some peculiarities are also present.
Thus, in contrast to the majority of other Muslim States the age of marriage is the
same for men and women and is situated at 18 years. The legislator also expressly and
unconditionally prohibits any compulsion in marriage and any attempt to prevent a
person capable to marry from a marriage.467 The obligations of spouses during the
marriage are, however, dened in traditional terms of a wife owing obedience to her
husband in return for maintenance.468
The issue of divorce is again the most complicated issue as far as the rights related
to marriage are concerned since the right to unilateral dissolution of marriage granted to
men has no corresponding right on the part of women. Although under the legislation of
Iraq a unilateral dissolution of a marriage by a husband has to be conrmed by a court
or at least registered by a judge and damages are awarded to an arbitrarily divorced
wife469 and a wife can have recourse to a procedure known as khul whereby she may
obtain a separation from her husband in return for a material consideration470, constraints placed on womens right to seek divorce cannot be compared to the freedom
enjoyed by men. A judicial separation by a court, a divorce proper, is possible for both
men and women on certain specied grounds.471 As already mentioned above, some
additional grounds for requesting a divorce are formulated for women.472 Unfortunately,
467
468
469
470
471
472
146
CHAPTER III
as many additional grounds as may be added to allow women to apply for divorce the
problem will always remain the same: in face of the unconditional right of men to
declare the marriage dissolved whereas the role of the court is limited to the mere
registration of the already accomplished act, rights granted to women, in particular
their protection in this regard, appear largely insufcient. Moreover, the determination of arbitrariness of the unilateral dissolution of a marriage by a husband in which
case a wife can be awarded compensation is left to the discretion of judges which
allows for a very wide possibility of manipulation.
Article 57 of the Iraqi Law of Personal Status grants the custody of children till the
age of ten to the mother. During this time the father may supervise the conditions of
living and education of his children. If the interests of children so require, the custody
of the mother may be extended until the child completes the fteenth year. A child of
fteen years of age shall choose him- or herself to live with either of the parents, or
with another relative.
Such regulation of the custody of children is in many aspects favorable to women.
However, one should not underestimate the power of the actual guardianship granted
automatically to the father and related possibility of misuse.
After having discussed these legal provisions, it is necessary to recall, that after the
fall of the regime of Saddam Hussein, and especially after the adoption of the new Iraqi
Constitution, even the correct application of these laws is in danger. The Iraqi Law of
Personal Status although containing some discriminatory provisions, is relatively progressive as compared to the legislation of many other Muslim countries of the region.
Quite quickly after the fall of the Saddams regime religious elites attempted to contest
this progressive law. Their rst attempt resulted in adoption of Resolution No 137 by
the Governing Council on 29 December 2003. If applied this resolution would mean
abolition of the 1959 Personal Status Law and application of uncodied religious laws
of each religious community by religious clerics in all matters relating to personal
status. Due to intense lobbying both from inside and outside of Iraq, the resolution was
not passed into law. However, the new challenge came from the 2005 Iraqi Constitution.
Not only does article 2 of the Constitution declare Islam to be the ofcial religion
and source of legislation, but also article 41 of the Constitution states: Iraqis are free
in their commitment to their personal status according to their religions, sects, beliefs,
or choices, and this shall be regulated by law. This formulation is open to various
interpretations and can have the same effects as the Resolution No 137.
Thus, if we base our conclusions on reports all of which were submitted prior to the
fall of Saddam Hussein, there are two principal differences between the reservations
able to provide for his wife and children during this time; if the husband abandons his wife
without a justied cause for two years or more; if after a conclusion of a marriage contract
and before the consummation of a marriage the husband does not come to celebrate the
marriage two years after the conclusion of the marriage contract; if the wife discovers that
her husband is unable to fulll his marital duties (sexual incapacity); sterility of the husband;
if the husband does not pay maintenance as required by a decision of a court; if the husband
does not maintain his wife without a valid reason. See also Combined second and third
periodic reports of Iraq submitted on 19 October 1999, CEDAW/C/IRQ/2-3, pp. 3334.
147
entered by Iraq and the reservations entered by other Muslim States. Firstly, Iraq
reserved article 9, paragraph 1. This was not made by any other State included in the
analysis. Iraq makes, however, no link between this reservation and the application of
Islamic law. The reservation can therefore be disregarded for the purposes of the further
analysis. The second difference is more important and concerns the reservation to article 2. This reservation, restricting the obligation to adopt the necessary legislation has
as a primary aim the preservation of certain discriminatory provisions of internal law.
Reports submitted by Iraq contain, however, some phrases and formulations indicating
the countrys willingness to work progressively towards full compliance with the
Convention making this progress dependent on changes in societal attitudes and traditions.473 The new regime established in Iraq with the assistance of the USA, does not,
however, seem to commit itself to this relatively progressive attitude, but marginalizes
women even further.474
7. Jordan
The reservation entered by Jordan to article 9, paragraph 2 has the same scope and
goal as reservations entered to the same provision by other Muslim countries mentioned above.475 Jordans reservation to article 15, paragraph 4 can at rst glance
appear more far-reaching than reservations entered to this provision by other Muslim
States mentioned above. Jordans initial report contains an express statement that
women cannot travel alone. This is not the case in many other Muslim States, at least
according to their own interpretation reected in reports.476 One interesting point in
this connection is the statement made by Jordan, in its second periodic report
concerning womens rights to freedom of movement and to choose ones residence:
Women can in fact include in the contract clauses specifying the place of residence. ()
Some experts in qh (jurisconsults), notably the theologian Abdelaziz Al-Khayat, consider
that according women the right to freedom of movement and to choose their place of residence is not contrary to the shariah, particularly since, as was stated above, women may
set conditions on that subject in the marriage contract. Non-governmental organizations
are demanding withdrawal of the reservation on the basis of this theological and legal
interpretation, according to which it is lawful for women to live alone before marriage
and thus also after marriage.477
473
474
475
476
See, for example, the above-quoted passage in connection with the reservation to article 2,
which speaks about the necessity to co-ordinate developments in the legislation with the
general evolution of the society.
For an overall comparison between de jure and de facto situation of women in contemporary
Iraq, see: The Status of Women in Iraq: An Assessment of Iraqs De Jure and De Facto
Compliance with International Legal Standards, Iraq Legal Development Project, American
Bar Association, July 2005 and Update 2006 available at http://www.abanet.org/rol/publications/
iraq_status_of_women_2005_english.pdf and http://www.abanet.org/rol/publications/iraq_
status_of_women_update_2006.pdf
It means that a woman married to a foreigner cannot transmit her nationality to her children:
Initial report of Jordan submitted on 10 November 1997, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/JOR/1, at
pp. 2324.
See above I.A.4.b). and Initial report of Jordan submitted on 10 November 1997, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/JOR/1, at pp. 2324.
148
CHAPTER III
Current situation as claried in the last report submitted by Jordan is the following. As far
as the freedom to choose ones domicile and residence is concerned, although as a matter
of principle women are legally bound to follow their husband, as a matter of fact, they are
free to stipulate the contrary, namely to reserve their freedom not to follow their husband,
in the marriage contract. With regard to the freedom of movement the report states that
under Jordanian law a husband has not had the power to prevent his wife from traveling
since 1976. It is thus clear that women do enjoy freedom of movement and freedom to
travel on a basis of equality with men. Moreover, while it is true that there are some
social barriers to women traveling unaccompanied by their husbands, as a practical
matter many women do travel alone.478
It also makes reference to resent amendments of Passport Act which allow women
to obtain their passport without having to obtain consent of a father or a guardian
concluding that this legislative change will allow women to more effectively exercise
their freedom of movement.479
The reservation to article 16 species paragraphs of this article to which the reservation relates, namely, paragraph 1 (c) concerning the rights arising upon the dissolution of marriage with regard to maintenance and compensation480 and (d) and (f ).
Reports submitted by Jordan provide sufcient information as to the relevant national
legislation. They also explain which provisions of national law shall be preserved by
reservations.
With regard to article 16, paragraph 1 (c) the initial report states that men are
guardian of women. A wife does not therefore have the right to behave exactly as she
wishes.481 The second periodic report of Jordan addresses the issue in more detail,
dening the exact scope of the husbands duty of maintenance482 and the wifes duty
of obedience.483 In return for the maintenance the wife also has the obligation to take
care of the family, the children, and the home without remuneration.484
The second report of Jordan also provides additional information on the dissolution of
marriage, a matter which falls within the scope of the reservation to article 16, paragraph
477
478
479
480
481
482
483
484
149
1 (c). Jordans law, based on Islam, gives women the right to request separation from
their husbands on specic grounds expressly provided in the Personal Status Law.485 The
right to terminate the marriage herself, which is normally reserved to men, can only be
exercised by a wife if the marriage contract expressly provides for it.486 The separation on
the initiative of a wife which takes the form of a nancial settlement is not addressed in
Jordans reports, but is regulated by articles 102112 of the Personal Status Law.
The reservation to paragraph 1 (d) of article 16 was necessary, according to Jordan,
in order to preserve the provisions of Islamic Sharia which although giving women
custody of young children till the age of puberty, stipulates that the guardianship of
children is granted to men.487 Finally, the fact that according to Jordan, Islam permits
women to pursue any respectable profession provided her husband agrees, necessitated the reservation to paragraph 1 (g) of article 16.488
Other possible areas of concern, although not always expressly mentioned in connection with the reservations, are polygamy and inheritance.489 The issue of the consent
to marriage could also be raised in this connection because, although all forms of
compulsion to marry are excluded, the guardian still has the right to object to the
marriage of his ward.
Reservations made by Jordan and relevant provisions of Jordans law incorporating Islamic Sharia as presented in its periodic reports can appear more restrictive
with regard to womens rights than that of other above-mentioned States. The careful reading of reports and their consideration by the Committee combined with
485
486
487
488
489
Egyptian law which allows women to work without an express permission of a husband
except if this work is not in conict with her familys interests or she was expressly
prohibited by her husband from doing so. See above III.A.2.d).
These grounds include a defect preventing the husband from the fulllment of his conjugal
duties, insanity of a husband, his absence, disappearance or abandonment of his wife,
inability to pay the rst dower either in total or in part, and conict or discord between
spouses. In the latter case judges have to determine on whom the fault rests. Material rights
and obligations of spouses upon the dissolution of marriage are dependent on this
determination. Second periodic report of Jordan submitted on 26 October 1999, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/JOR/2, paras 185187. The report also mentions a proposal to give a right to a
wife to sue for a divorce if her husband takes another wife without her consent. (Id., p. 65,
para. 181)
Id., p. 67, paras. 185. The legislation in Jordan requires merely a registration of a unilateral
separation by a husband. However, the report indicates that amendments were proposed to
make this type of separation valid only if effectuated before a court. In case of arbitrary
separation by a husband damages are awarded to a wife but they cannot exceed the amount
of one years maintenance. Id., para. 187.
Id., pp. 6869, paras. 190191. Initial report of Jordan submitted on 10 November 1997,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/JOR/1, p. 27.
Initial report of Jordan submitted on 10 November 1997, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/JOR/1,
p. 27. It is interesting to note that the second report of Jordan adds that, in fact, women can
include in their marriage contracts provisions guaranteeing them the right to choose and
exercise their profession without their husbands consent: Second periodic report of
Jordan submitted on 26 October 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/JOR/2, para. 196.
Second periodic report of Jordan submitted on 26 October 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
JOR/2, paras. 176177.
150
CHAPTER III
a more detailed analysis of national legislation shows, however, that the situation
is not very different. Moreover, Jordans presentation of Islamic law and its effects
on the possibility of compliance with the provisions of the CEDAW is more detailed
than those of other Muslim States. Jordans reports also contain a presentation of
the discussion existing among Muslim scholars on certain issues. This enables the
Committee not only to get a more complete and multifaceted picture of the actual
situation of women in the country, but also to intervene and argue on these issues.
8. Kuwait
Kuwait acceded to the CEDAW on 2 September 1994. However, it did not submit any
reports for almost ten years. The combined initial and second periodic report of Kuwait
was submitted on 1 May 2003.490
One distinguished feature of Kuwaits attitude towards the Convention was its
reservation to article 7 (a) withdrawn in 2005 which states that
The Government of Kuwait enters a reservation regarding article 7 (a), inasmuch as the
provision contained in that paragraph conicts with the Kuwaiti Electoral Act, under
which the right to be eligible for election and to vote is restricted to males.
This reservation contains no reference to Islamic law. The majority of Muslim States
recognize the right of women to vote and be eligible for elections and see no impediments whether based on Islamic law or any other ground to the granting of this right to
women. The long way which led to the withdrawal of this reservation by Kuwait is linked
to working methods of the CEDAW Committee and will be discussed in this relation.491
The reservation to article 9, paragraph 2 also makes no reference to Islamic law,
but states that this provision runs counter to the Kuwaiti Nationality Act, which
stipulates that a childs nationality shall be determined by that of his father.
Islamic law is invoked as a justication only in relation to article 16 (f). It should be
recalled that this provision deals with equality between men and women with regard
490
491
Combined initial and second periodic reports of Kuwait submitted on 1 May 2003, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/KUW/1-2.
It is signicant that many Muslim States are also parties to the Convention on Political
Rights of Women without any reservations. It should also be noted that in the doctrine of
Islamic law a minority opinion is present which would prevent women from election to
certain ofces requiring fulllment of management and government functions, in particular
in relation to men. If taken to its extreme this doctrine would also prevent women from
voting because it would imply that women through election of a candidate would govern
affairs of men. This would run counter the above-mentioned doctrine. Although this
doctrine is defended only by a small minority of Muslims, very strong patriarchal attitudes
and traditions make it difcult to introduce any changes even in this area. This was clearly
demonstrated in Kuwait when the proposal by the Head of State of Kuwait to grant women
voting rights was rejected by the legislative Assembly. This amendment was, however,
refused by a majority of only few voices. The situation with the voting rights of women as
present in Kuwait is not the only exception. There are several other Gulf States adopting a
similar attitude. As far as the States parties to the CEDAW are concerned, Saudi Arabia is
one of such States.
151
492
493
494
495
496
497
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic reports submitted by Kuwait,
13th session, Summary records of the 642nd meeting, 22 January 2004, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/SR.642, para. 4 at p. 2.
Article 25a of Law N 51/1894 promulgated 7 July 1984.
Article 26 of Law N 51/1894.
See article 29 of Law N 51/1894. According to article 30 of the same law a woman who
was previously married or is over the age of 25 has her own choice in marriage but has to
delegate the act of entering into the contract to her guardian.
According to article 89 of Law N 51/1894 the wife is not considered disobedient if she goes
out for a lawful reason or lawful employment unless it is not in the familys interests.
The only exception is the provision of article 116 of Law 51/1894 explicitly prohibiting
any coercion in reaching the nancial settlement required in the marriage dissolution
procedure initiated by a wife and invalidity of a condition in such a settlement that the
father shall keep a child for a period of custody as stipulated in article 118 of the same law.
The custody of children is attributed to their mother until the age of puberty for boys and
age of majority or marriage for girls (article 194 of the law).
152
CHAPTER III
if not the reason for Kuwaits non-fulllment of its reporting obligations under the
Convention for such a long period of time. The report nally submitted is, however,
very evasive and remains very general in all problematic matters. The paternalistic and
protectionist attitude toward women is putted forward as a major achievement. For
example, in the part of the report dealing with article 16 the government mentions that
Kuwait has devoted particular attention to women, as is evident from the care and
consideration accorded to women in many of the relevant legislative enactments and
laws, which endeavor to guarantee their security and stability.498 An important conclusion which can be drawn from this type of statement is that the government simply
does not regard its laws as being in any way discriminatory or detrimental to women.
The major challenge in this situation is to persuade the government of the contrary.499
9. Libya
In the text of the reservation to article 2 Libya explains that this reservation is necessary in order to preserve
the peremptory norms of the Islamic Shariah relating to determination of the inheritance
portion of the estate of a deceased person, whether female or male
Libyas reports do not elaborate further on this reservation; in particular they do not
explain why article 2 and not any other provision of the Convention should be contrary to the Islamic law on inheritance.500
The reservation to article 16, paragraphs (c) and (d) is formulated in very careful
terms.
The implementation of paragraph 16 (c) and (d) of the Convention shall be without prejudice to any of the rights guaranteed to women by the Islamic Shariah.
Such a formulation gives an impression that these provisions of the Convention are
more restrictive than the corresponding provisions of Libyas internal laws. It becomes
clear from periodic reports submitted by Libya, that the three areas relating to the
reservation to article 16 are dissolution of marriage, the custody and guardianship of
children upon the dissolution of marriage and polygamy.501
The Marriage and Divorce Regulations Act No. 10 was promulgated in Libya in
1984. Its provisions differ in certain aspects from those traditionally adopted in
498
499
500
501
Combined initial and second periodic reports of Kuwait submitted on 1 May 2003, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/KUW/1-2 at p. 79.
That the task is not an easy one becomes even more obvious when reading the following
phrase from the introduction to the report: They (Kuwaiti women) are the foundation of
the family, which is the nucleus of society, and have proved their competence and worth
throughout history. Id., at p. 2.
Libyas initial report just mentions that the male child inherits twice the share of a female
child: Initial report of Libya submitted on 18 February 1991, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/LIB/1
at p. 27.
Reports submitted by Libya simply state that women have the right to divorce and give
some details concerning this right without comparing it with the right of men to divorce.
The issue was, however, raised during the discussion in the Committee and it became clear
153
502
503
504
that the provisions of Libyas law concerning divorce are discriminatory at least as far
as the fact is concerned that a woman who wishes to end her marriage and is unable to
prove that she has suffered damage from her husband will lose her legitimate rights, such
as for example the right to maintenance. Concluding comments of the Committee,
Consideration of the initial report of Libya, 1995, UN Doc. A/49/38, para. 169. With
regard to the custody and guardianship of children the situation in Libya is the same as in
many other Muslim States: it is a woman who has custody of young children upon divorce,
but the guardianship goes to a man. See on both issues: Initial report of Libya submitted
on 18 February 1991, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/LIB/1 para. 17.1; Second periodic report of
Libya submitted on 15 March 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/LBY/2 at pp. 4648.
It is possible that as a consequence of this mixed duty of maintenance the wife has more
freedom in marriage, in particular, the second report of Libya states that the place of
residence of a married couple is determined by a joint agreement between them. (Second
periodic report of Libya submitted on 15 March 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/LBY/2, p. 46).
These provisions of Libyas national legislation can explain the absence of a reservation to
paragraph 4 of article 15 of the CEDAW in contrast to many other Muslim States.
Article 21 of the Libyan Green Charter for Human Rights as quoted in the second periodic
report: Second periodic report of Libya submitted on 15 March 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
LBY/2, p. 47.
See above fn. 501.
154
CHAPTER III
Thus, after a closer look on the relevant national legislation of Libya, it can be
concluded that despite some improvements the situation is not quite satisfactory, in
particular in relation to the three above-mentioned areas, namely dissolution of marriage, polygamy and custody of children.
Furthermore, in the case of Libya the reservation to article 2 has a particular signicance. It is not linked to other reservations and plays an independent role. This reservation relates, however, to a specic right, which other States reserved in connection
with one or another article of the Special Part of the Convention.
10. Malaysia
The situation which arose out of Malaysias attempt to partially withdraw its reservations is the most complicated one in legal terms. The fact that both the original
reservation and the text of the attempted partial withdrawal are reproduced in the
main text of the collection of multilateral treaties deposited with the SecretaryGeneral would suggest that the reservation which determines the extent of obligations of Malaysia under the CEDAW is the original, more comprehensive reservation.
In other cases of partial withdrawals of reservations only the modied reservation is
reproduced in the main text, the fact of withdrawal and eventually the text of the
original reservation is recorded in the text of the footnotes. As already suggested
above, this situation may explain the reluctance of Malaysia to submit its periodic
reports. However, since the submission and consideration of Malaysias combined
initial and second periodic reports, in practical terms, it is assumed that Malaysia
partially withdrew its reservation.505
Without going into too much detail, it would be useful to consider national legislation of Malaysia, in particular on issues of personal status, in order to compare it to
similar provisions of other Muslim States analyzed here and to evaluate the real impact
of reservations.
Thus, Malaysia in its original reservation mentioned among others also article 2 (f )
which requires States to take all appropriate measures to modify or abolish existing
laws, regulations, customs and practices which constitute discrimination against
women. In its attempted modication this reservation should be withdrawn. One can
therefore suppose that the government acknowledges the necessity to modify discriminatory customs and practices and is ready to work towards this modication.
On the other hand, the reservation to article 5 (a) which also requires elimination of
traditions and practices discriminatory against women is maintained. The government
specied, however, that this reservation relates only to the provisions of the Syariah
(Malay version of the term Sharia) law on the division of inherited property. Although
it is true that traditional interpretation of Islamic law of inheritance is discriminatory
against women in that female heirs receive half of the share given to male heirs of the
same degree, many Muslim States did not preserve this provision through reservations. The situation in Malaysia is in so far peculiar in this respect, as inheritance laws,
505
155
although presumably based on Sharia law, are signicantly inuenced and modied
by local custom. If this custom could not be modied by Sharia which is believed to
be a divine law, it is even more difcult to deal with such customary practices through
secular legislation. This could be a reason for maintaining the reservation. The idea
that local customs are stronger in this area than laws based on Islam is supported by
the fact that in many African countries, despite the application of one or another interpretation of Islamic law to such issues as marriage, divorce, marital rights and duties,
the issue of inheritance remains subject to pre-Islamic customs and practices.
Reservations are also entered by such States.
The reservation to article 7 (b) is explained in the proposed modied text as a
protection of the rules concerning appointment to such public ofces as judges of
Islamic religious courts and imams, according to which only males can be eligible for
such ofces. It is interesting to note that although other Muslim States have the same
practice of appointing only males to religious ofces including judges in religious
courts, no other State reserved expressly its right to do so.
The reservation to article 9, paragraph 2, as in case of other Muslim States is not
justied by application of Islamic law. The proposed modication simply states that
the reservation will be reviewed if the Government amends the relevant law.506
The most extensive reservation was entered by Malaysia to article 16 of the
CEDAW. The initial reservation was related to the entire article 16. The proposed
modication reiterates the reservation only to certain paragraphs of article 16,
namely paragraph 1 (a), (c), (f) and (g). Only the reservation to subparagraph (a) of
article 16 is explained in the proposed modication as being necessary because,
according to the national legislation of Malaysia, the minimum marriage age is different for men and women: eighteen for men and sixteen for women.507 Other reservations to article 16 are not explained. The issues involved are, however, very similar
to those of other Muslim States and include rights and responsibilities of spouses
during the marriage, dissolution of marriage, custody and guardianship of children
and polygamy.
A closer look at the national legislation of Malaysia reveals the following picture.
Rights and obligations of spouses during marriage are regulated in a traditional manner similar to that of other Muslim States. The wife owes obedience to her husband in
506
507
The proposed modication declared the withdrawal of the initial reservation to article 9,
paragraph 1. This reservation does not need, therefore, to be considered further. It is clear
from the very detailed report of Malaysia that problematic provisions with regard to the
question of nationality include two issues: transmission of nationality by a Malay woman
married to a foreigner to her child born outside of Malaysia and transmission of nationality
to a foreign husband. Combined initial and second periodic reports of Malaysia submitted
on 12 April 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MYS/1-2, paras. 147148 at p. 46.
A careful reading of relevant legal provisions reveals that even this quite low age of marriage
can be disregarded if a judge grants his permission. Section 8 of the Islamic Family Law Act
states as follows: no marriage may be solemnized or registered under this Act where either
the man is under the age of 18 or the woman is under the age of 16 except where the Syariah
Judge has granted his permission in writing in certain circumstances.
156
CHAPTER III
return for maintenance, payment of which is a duty of the husband. As in other Muslim
countries this division of rights and duties between spouses limits signicantly such
rights of women as freedom of movement, free choice of profession or occupation etc.
This explains the reservation to subparagraph (f) of article 16 and could lead to conicts with other articles of the CEDAW, in particular with paragraph 4 of article 15.
Malaysia did not, however, enter any further reservations in this connection.
More detailed regulations are formulated by the legislator concerning dissolution
of marriage. Issues of personal status are regulated in Malaysia by the Islamic Family
Law Act of 1984 as amended in 1994 and in 2005.508 This Act limits the unilateral
right of a husband to dissolve the marriage requiring rstly, to apply for a divorce,
state reasons for the divorce and say whether reconciliation has been attempted and
secondly, to pronounce the divorce upon a permission from a court and before a court.
However, according to the new section 55A introduced in 1994, unilateral dissolution
of marriage by a husband outside the court and without permission of the court can be
approved by the court ex post facto.509 A woman divorced arbitrarily, without a just
cause may, however, apply for compensation which is determined by a court.
Women have the possibility to request divorce before a court on certain grounds
prescribed by law510 or to attempt a nancial settlement as in other Muslim States.
In addition, however, Malay law regulates quite extensively the right of women to
apply for divorce on grounds stipulated in the marriage contract. In this latter case
there is a signicant difference between Islamic law as practiced in Malaysia and in
other Muslim States. In other Muslim States the right of women to stipulate additional
rights in relation to divorce in the marriage contract is recognized, but women almost
never use this possibility because of the negative stigma attached to women using this
right. In contrast, in Malaysia the legislator requires the Registrar of marriages to
make available a form which is completed for these purposes at the time of registration of the marriage and becomes an integral part of the marriage contract. This is
therefore a very efcient way to enlarge the wifes right to divorce.
An interesting regulation was originally contained in the 1984 Islamic Family Law
Act concerning polygamy. According to its section 23 no polygamous marriage may
be contracted unless at least the ve following conditions are fullled: the proposed
marriage is just and necessary; the applicant has nancial means to support his
508
509
510
This Act is applicable to Federal Territories only. Each of the Malay federal states adopts
its own legislation in matters of personal status. The Islamic Family Law Act is, however,
used as a basis for analysis; signicant divergences in states legislation are mentioned.
Initially, such unilateral dissolution of a marriage by a husband outside the court was
unconditionally regarded as invalid.
These grounds are the following: the husbands disappearance for over one year; failure to
maintain for at least three months; failure to perform marital obligations for at least one
year; continued impotence; mental illness lasting at least two years; leprosy or transmittable
venereal disease; cruel treatment; the husbands refusal to consummate the marriage for
four months; invalidity of the consent of the wife. The wife can also dissolve a marriage
concluded by her guardian before she attained the age of 16, if she is below 18 years of age
and the marriage was not consummated.
157
existing and future dependents; the consent of the existing wife; the applicants ability
to accord equal treatment to his wives; the proposed marriage would not cause harm
to the existing wife or wives. In addition the law required that the proposed marriage
would not directly or indirectly lower the living standards of the existing wife and
dependents.511 The law also indicates factors which should be taken into account in the
determination of the just and necessary character of the proposed polygamous marriage. Section 23, paragraph 4 (a) indicates the following circumstances: sterility or
physical inrmity of the existing wife, physical untness for conjugal relations, willful avoidance of an order for restitution of conjugal rights, or insanity. Unfortunately,
as a result of the amendments introduced in 1994, the evaluation of the intended
polygamous marriage was left to the discretion of judges,512 the law allowed for registration of polygamous marriages concluded outside the court and without the courts
permission if the court considered such a marriage to be in accordance with the
requirements of law.
These legislative changes illustrate a tension existing in Malay society between
modernist and traditionalist Muslim forces. Moreover, the subsequent revocation of
modernist legislation indicates once again that legislative reforms not supported by
parallel changes in societal attitudes and practices are condemned to failure.
11. The Maldives
The Maldives reservation to article 7 (a) is determined by the provision of the
Maldives Constitution which stipulates that only men are eligible for the post of the
President of the Republic.513 The Maldives make no connection between the reservation and any provision of Islamic Sharia.514
The reservation to article 16 states that the application of this article in all matters
relating to marriage and family relations shall be without prejudice to the provisions
of the Islamic Sharia, which govern all marital and family relations of the 100 percent
Muslim population of the Maldives. The initial report of the Maldives indicates such
511
512
513
514
The legislator expressly requested that all conditions shall be met; determination of the
existence of all these factors occurs before a court and in the presence and with participation
of the existing wife: section 23, paragraph 5.
As a result, judges emphasize, more than anything else, a mans capacity to support a
second wife, at the expense of almost all other conditions. See more about practical
difculties and tensions surrounding this law: KAMALI, Mohammad Hashim. Islamic Law
in Malaysia: Issues and Developments. 4 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law
19971998, pp. 153179; pp.159169 in particular.
See above I.A.1.
Initial report of the Maldives submitted on 28 January 2000, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MDV/1,
para. 58. During the introduction of the combined second and third periodic reports, the
Maldives representative stressed that Presidents proposal to remove the gender bar from
this Constitutional provision is being considered by the Assembly, thus indicating
countrys willingness to withdraw its reservation to this article of the CEDAW. Introductory
statement by Hon. Ms. Aishath Mohamed Didi, Minister of Gender and Family, Republic
of Maldives, at p. 3.
158
CHAPTER III
515
516
517
518
519
520
521
522
See Initial report of the Maldives submitted on 28 January 2000, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
MDV/1, para. 155, 166. According to the information provided in the combined second
and third periodic report, Court control over polygamy is introduced in that a judge will
review the husbands ability to provide for all wives and children nancially and
emotionally and inform the former wife or wives about her husbands plans. Combined
second and third periodic reports of Maldives submitted on 8 June 2005, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/MDV/2-3, para. 41 at p. 23.
According to the report women are free to choose a profession and an occupation, although
there is no express provision to this end: Id., para. 163.
Upon the dissolution of a marriage it is the woman who has the priority of guardianship of
children till the age of 7. Afterwards, if a dispute arises, a competent tribunal gives the
guardianship either to the father or to the mother taking into account the preference
expressed by the child. Id., para. 173.
Combined second and third periodic reports of Maldives submitted on 8 June 2005, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/MDV/2-3, para. 6.3.1. at p. 14.
Id., para. 6.2.2. In the absence of such a provision a husband can dissolve the marriage
without either his wife or the public authorities having any knowledge of such dissolution.
Id., para. 148. The report does no give any detail about the content of this law.
The report simply states that in some matters the value of the testimony of women is
limited without explaining further the meaning of this limitation. Id., para. 152.
Id., para. 58. (emphasized in original)
159
and actions which the government intends to undertake in the future. The government
also expressed its hope that adoption of these measures would permit to reduce signicantly the effects of these reservations.523 In its introduction to the combined
second and third periodic reports the government emphasized again its willingness
to withdraw reservations, but also the difculty in dealing with issues related to
religion and culture:
With regard to the reservation made to Article 16 of CEDAW, I give you assurances that
the Government of Maldives is committed to withdrawing the reservation, and that the
process to initiate the necessary amendments to the Family Law will commence shortly.
While it is our intention to capture the spirit of the Article in amending the law,
I must note that in the present socio-cultural and political setting in the Maldives, and the
prevailing interpretation of Shariah on matters relating to polygamy may impede efforts
in this regard.524
12. Mauritania
Mauritania became a party to the CEDAW on 09 June 2001 with a general reservation
indicating approval of the Convention in each and every one of its parts which are
not contrary to Islamic Sharia and are in accordance with our Constitution. On
2 August 2005 Mauritania submitted its initial report.525
The available information about relevant national legislation of Mauritania is more
important since the adoption of Mauritanian Personal Status Code in 2001.526 Before,
as in many African countries the law in Mauritania represented a combination of customary, colonial and Islamic law with a family law remaining mostly uncodied.
The report is quite detailed and Mauritanias answers to questions formulated by
the Committee help to clarify certain points.527 However, in order to understand all
implications of the Personal Status Code for the situation of women, it is necessary to
read the text of the Code itself. The most problematic areas include conclusion of
a marriage, which for a women is not possible without a male guardian (art. 9 and 10),
polygamy which is still permitted, although subject to certain restrictions (art. 45) and
divorce, where the unilateral right of a husband to repudiate his wife is maintained (art.
83). With regard to wifes right to divorce in exchange for a consideration (art. 92), it
is interesting to note that the code states that if the object of the consideration is illegal,
the divorce is effective without the husband beneting from the consideration (art. 92).
Moreover, according to article 93, if it is proven that the wife consented to the divorce
for consideration just because she wanted to escape prejudices resulting from inadequate behavior of the husband, the divorce is effective and the compensation shall be
523
524
525
526
527
160
CHAPTER III
528
529
530
531
Id., p. 17.
Initial report of Mauritania submitted on 2 August 2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MRT/1,
para. 102 at p. 20, paras. 123124 at p. 23, para. 335 at p. 58.
Responses to the list of issues and question for consideration of the initial report of
Mauritania, 27 April 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MRT/Q/1/Add.1., p. 3.
Similar reservations protecting the rules of succession to the throne were also entered by
some other States maintaining this institution. See e.g. reservations entered by Luxemburg,
Spain and the United Kingdom.
161
relevant provision of Moroccan Nationality Code which will remove this inequality.532
For this reason the government also announces the withdrawal of its reservation to
this article.533 However, this withdrawal is not yet ofcial, because no instrument of
withdrawal has been deposited with the Secretary-General.
Two remaining reservations to article 15, paragraph 4 and article 16 are typical
for States applying their version of Islamic law. The reservation to article 15, paragraph 4 concerns the right of women to choose their domicile and residence. The
reports give the impression that Moroccan law restricted only the rights of a married
woman to choose her domicile since it is a husband who decides about the place of the
conjugal domicile.534 There is no information which would indicate that an unmarried
woman is limited in her choice of domicile, neither that the freedom of movement for
women in general is affected in any way since Moroccan law does not require consent
of a husband for a woman to obtain her travel passport.535 Furthermore, in its last
report Moroccan government expressly announced the withdrawal of this reservation
as a consequence of legislative reforms.536
The text of the reservation to article 16 directly addresses the issue of the dissolution of marriage, which is possible for women only by a decision of a judge.
The provisions of the Islamic Shariah oblige the husband to provide a nuptial gift upon
marriage and to support his family, while the wife is not required by law to support the
family.
Further, at dissolution of marriage, the husband is obliged to pay maintenance.
In contrast, the wife enjoys complete freedom of disposition of her property during the
marriage and upon its dissolution without supervision by the husband, the husband having
no jurisdiction over his wifes property.
532
533
534
535
536
Combined third and fourth periodic report of Morocco submitted on 18 September 2006,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MOR/4, paras. 169170 at p. 29.
Id.
Initial report of Morocco submitted on 3 November 1994, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MOR/1,
para. 94; Second periodic report of Morocco submitted on 29 February 2000, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/MOR/2, at p. 55.
Initial report of Morocco submitted on 3 November 1994, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MOR/1,
para. 59. Moroccan legislation also does not contain any express impediments to womens
freedom of movement. According to the previous Moroccan Personal Status Law, although
obedience is dened as a duty of a wife towards her husband, it is understood to be an
obedience according to the established custom (article 36, paragraph 2 of the Moroccan
Personal Status Law), which does not necessarily limit the wifes ability to travel on her
own. Moreover, as stated in article 123 of the same law, abandonment by a wife of the
matrimonial home does not in itself constitute disobedience with a consequence of
a husband not being obliged to pay maintenance to his wife. Rather, a husband desiring
to suspend a payment of maintenance has to apply for a judicial order obliging his wife
to return to the matrimonial home. Only after non-compliance by a wife with such an order
can the payment of maintenance be suspended. The situation is improved further by new
Moroccan Family Code adopted in 2004, which does not contain any provision stating that
the husband is the head of the family; rather article 51 of the Code denes reciprocal rights
and obligations of spouses.
Combined third and fourth periodic report of Morocco submitted on 18 September 2006,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/Mor4, para. 350 at p. 57. The withdrawal was also announced with
regard to article 15, paragraph 4, article 16, paragraph 1 (f) and paragraph 2.
162
CHAPTER III
For these reasons, the Islamic Shariah confers the right of divorce on a woman only by
decision of a Shariah judge.
The reports submitted by Morocco do not provide much more information on the
issue of the dissolution of marriage. The explanation provided by Morocco in its reservation gives however a quite clear picture of difculties faced by a woman whose
husband does not wish to let her go and which gave rise to the reservation. As in other
Muslim States the unlimited unilateral right of a husband to dissolve the marriage is
in discrepancy with the right of women to request a judge to grant a divorce only on
certain grounds prescribed by law or in return for material consideration. Surely, the
new Family Code mitigates certain negative effects; in particular, all forms of divorce
shall take place before a judge and in presence of both spouses.537 However, this does
not eliminate the fundamental difference in the rights accorded to each of the spouses.
If the husband can apply for divorce without specifying a reason, the wife shall always
indicate, and thus prove that one of the reasons for divorce stipulated by the Code is
present.538 Furthermore, as a matter of principle, divorce pronounced by a court to
put it differently requested by a wife is irrevocable, in contrast to the divorce pronounced by the husband, which is revocable.539 The very possibility for the husband
to revoke the divorce introduces a degree of uncertainty into the situation of the wife.
This uncertainty is only mitigated but not removed completely by article 124 of the
Family Code which stipulates that the husband wishing to revoke his divorce shall
inform two Islamic witnesses, who in turn inform a judge. The judge informs the wife
and if she is unwilling to resume the marriage, she can apply for divorce on the ground
of irreconcilable differences.
Other problematic areas of the application of article 16 are also discussed in
Moroccos reports. These include the permission of polygamy, inheritance rights of
women, and eventually the custody and guardianship of children.540
537
538
539
540
163
It is signicant that with the adoption of the Family Code in 2004, Morocco
removed a number of inequalities in the area of marriage. Thus, the marriage age is
established at eighteen for both men and women according to article 18 of the Code.541
Moreover, a woman can conclude her marriage contract without the intermediary of
her guardian.542 Husband is no more declared the head of the family by the Moroccan
legislator543 but mutual rights and obligations of spouses are formulated.544
It is particularly interesting to follow this evolution of the legislation in Morocco,
because it happens, among others, under the inuence of its participation in the
CEDAW. It demonstrates an example of possible improvements for Muslim countries,
while maintaining their traditional adherence to Islamic values. Despite remaining
problematic areas, Moroccos attitude demonstrates its willingness toward continual
improvement and again proves the fact that reservations are nor more than indicators
of areas of concern.
14. Niger
Niger became party to the CEDAW on 7 November 1999 with reservations to a
number of articles. These reservations are quite detailed, and on 21 November 2005
the government submitted its combined initial and second periodic reports.545
The reservation to article 2 concerns two paragraphs of this article, namely paragraph (d) requiring States to refrain from engaging in any act or practice of discrimination against women and to ensure that public authorities and institutions shall act in
conformity with this obligation and paragraph (f ) addressing the duty of States to take
all appropriate measures to modify or abolish existing laws, regulations, customs and
practices which constitute discrimination against women. The text of the reservation
itself species that the government of Niger is concerned with the measures concerning the abolition of customs and practices which constitute discrimination against
women, particularly in respect of succession.
The further reserved provision is article 5, paragraph (a) also dealing with the
modication of social and cultural patterns of conduct of men and women.
As for the Special Part of the CEDAW, the government of Niger reserved articles
15, paragraph 4 and 16, paragraph 1 (c), (e) and (d). The reservations contain certain
clarications about the affected rights and the extent of limitations. Thus, in relation to
541
542
543
544
545
Previously, article 8 of Moroccan Law of Personal Status established the age of marriage
at 18 for boys and 15 for girls.
According to article 34 of the Family Code conclusion of marriage by intermediary of a
guardian is a right of a women, but not an obligation to proceed in certain way as it was
previously under article 12 of Moroccan Law of Personal Status.
Article 1 of the previously applicable Law of Personal Status declared that husband is the
head of the family.
Article 51 of the Family Code. In contrast, article 36, paragraph 2 of the Law of Personal
Status required the wife to obey her husband in accordance with the established
custom.
Combined initial and second periodic report of Niger submitted on 21 November 2005,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/NER/1-2.
164
CHAPTER III
article 15, paragraph 4 the reservation claries that the right of women to choose their
residence and domicile is affected only to the extent that these provisions concern married women. In other words, only unmarried women can make use of this right to
choose their residence and domicile. Married women do not enjoy this right because
they have to follow their husbands who also have an exclusive right to make a choice
about the place of the marital home.546
The reservation to certain provisions of article 16 enumerates the following
affected areas: rights and responsibilities during the marriage and at its dissolution,
rights to decide freely and responsibly on the number and spacing of children, and
the right to choose the family name. However, the reservation does not contain any
indication as to the extent to which these rights are affected. In order to understand
the exact effect of this reservation, an analysis of national legislation is therefore
required. It is however, difcult to get precise information on issues relating to the
marriage and family relations, because these are governed in Niger mainly by custom and uncodied Islamic law.547 The report helps to clarify certain issues, so the
available information permits us to have an idea about existing inequalities in this
area. As in many Muslim States, obligations of spouses during marriage are dened
in terms of maintenance provided by a husband in return for the wifes obedience.
This obligation of a wife to obey her husband is interpreted very widely and includes
the requirement to obtain permission from a husband to leave the home whether for
a visit, for work or any other reason. The unilateral extra-judicial dissolution of marriage by a husband is not restricted in any way except for the requirement of registration which at least allows divorced women to have denite knowledge about their
status. Women can apply for a divorce only on certain restricted grounds or in return
for compensation.
The situation in Niger is in so far peculiar, as the precedence given to customary
law by Act N 62-11 of 16 March 1962 over Civil Code contributes to further fragmentation of law and creates supplementary difculties in establishing the content of
applicable regulations. This is due to the fact that customary law is different from one
region to another, from one ethnic group to another. Thus despite the fact that the
Constitution establishes the principle of equality and that any law contrary to the
CEDAW is regarded as invalid, the reality of womens life is very far from satisfactory. The government openly acknowledges all these contradictions and difculties.548
Signicant in this regard is the situation with regard to the project of Family Code.
The most recent version of the draft is dated 1993. However, till now the Code could
not be adopted because of a lack of consensus among religious leaders.549
The reservations entered by Niger contain a very important general statement
declaring that the reserved provisions
546
547
548
549
This follows from traditional rules of Islamic Sharia as interpreted and applied in Niger.
Combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Niger on 21 November 2005,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/NER/1-2, para. 1.2.1 at p. 13.
It is, for example, remarkable that the report contains a part entitled de jure discrimination:
Id., para. 1.2.1 at p. 21. See also paras. 14.1.1 and 14.1.2 at pp. 6364.
Id., para. 14.1.3 at p. 64.
165
cannot be applied immediately, as they are contrary to existing customs and practices
which, by their nature, can be modied only with the passage of time and the evolution of
society and cannot, therefore, be abolished by an act of authority.
550
Combined initial, second, and third periodic report of Pakistan submitted on 3 August
2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/PAK/1-3.
166
CHAPTER III
religion of Pakistan, but contains many other provisions intended to bring the entire
legal system in accordance with the principles of Islam. In particular, it requires that
all laws should be brought in accordance with the Islamic Sharia.551
In this connection it is interesting to mention that the issue of adherence of Pakistan
to the CEDAW was rst discussed in 1984 and since this time remained subject to
constant lobbying. During this process one of the texts of the eventual reservation
which was proposed reads as follows:
The Government of the Islamic Republic of Pakistan agrees to ratify the convention to the
extent that articles and sub-clauses are not repugnant to the teachings of the Holy Quran
and the Government of Pakistan shall be the sole judge of the question whether such
repugnancy exists.552
This text was however rejected because many objections had to be expected. Since
the Constitution of Pakistan clearly declares Islam the State religion and requires that
all laws shall be in accordance with Islamic Sharia, the actual reservation of Pakistan
expresses the same idea and serves the same purpose, although in a hidden form.
It should also be mentioned that during the discussion of the issue of the adherence of
Pakistan to the CEDAW the image of Pakistan in the international arena came constantly to the forefront. The decision to ratify the Convention was nally taken two
weeks before the Beijing Conference.553
The report starts with an amazing remark: A compliance report was due within a
years time, but somehow it could not be produced alongwith subsequent two periodic
report.554 Then it is added that the preparation of the report took more than a year.
Thus, once the willingness to prepare the report appeared, it did not take much time.
The use of the word somehow can be explained in this context by the reluctance of
the government to explain real reasons for non-submission of reports.
The reading of the report allows identifying the following areas of concern. With
regard to rights embodied in article 9 of the CEDAW, the remaining inequality relates
to the right of Pakistani women to transmit their nationality to their foreign husbands.
The inequality with regard to the transmission of nationality to children by women
married to a foreigner was abolished in 2000.555 With regard to article 15, in the area
of contracts, the relevant legislation requires one male witness, so that womens evidence is not admitted.556 In matters of marriage and family life, areas of concern are
similar to those of other Muslim States. Firstly, age of marriage is 18 for boys and 16
551
552
553
554
555
556
See in particular article 2 (a), chapter 3 (a) and part IX Islamic Provisions of the
Constitution of the Islamic Republic of Pakistan.
Text from ALI, Shaheen Sardar. Gender and Human Rights in Islam and International
Law: Equal Before Allah, Unequal Before Man? The Hague, Boston, London: Kluwer
Law International, 2000, p. 269. The author also describes the entire internal process
which nally led to the ratication of the CEDAW.
For more detail see Id., pp. 265272.
Combined initial, second, and third periodic report of Pakistan submitted on 3 August
2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/PAK/1-3, p. 7.
Id., para. 191 at p. 54.
Id., para. 474 at p. 116.
167
557
558
559
560
168
CHAPTER III
simple participation in the life of the society. On the other hand, it is difcult to give
an exhaustive and detailed picture of all discriminatory rules and regulations because
family law and law relating to personal status remain uncodied. Judicial decisions
cannot always be taken as a source for determining applicable laws because they do
not have the value of precedents as is the case in common law systems. The best
source would probably be widely published collections of opinions of leading jurists.
These opinions often constitute a basis for judicial decisions.561
The recently submitted and considered by the CEDAW Committee combined initial and second periodic report of Saudi Arabia does not contain any signicant
information on the content of relevant legislation.562 The reading of the report as well
as of replies to questions of the Committee leaves a very unsatisfactory impression.
The government and its representatives adopt a very evasive attitude and sometimes
just do not respond to questions giving some very general information when it comes
to sensitive areas. Thus, for example, the government indicated in its report that
women are entitled to participate in municipal elections, because the relevant law
uses the word citizen without specifying the sex. However, for some unexplained
reasons women did not participate in rst elections. The Committee requested additional information both about whether women are ensured the same rights as men
to vote and to be eligible for election at all levels and about concrete steps taken to
ensure womens participation in the following municipal elections.563 The reply
given by Saudi Arabia was the following:
Women have the same political rights as men and are ensured the same right as men to
participate in the decision-making process. The law does not prohibit women from participating in elections, although, in practice, that participation is not completely possible.
Women also have the right to participate in elections of the council of chambers of commerce and have won seats in a number of those councils.564
This answer does not give any additional information about rights of women to vote
and be elected, even less about steps undertaken to ensure womens participation in
forthcoming elections. It should rather be interpreted as an indication of the fact that
women will not participate in the forthcoming elections. Similarly embarrassing is the
governments response to question 22. The government was asked to provide statistics
on womens and girls participation in different elds and areas of study, as compared
to mens and boys, in colleges and universities. In response, without any comment or
explanation, are provided statistics on enrollment by educational level.565
561
562
563
564
565
For more detail to this aspect see VOGEL, Frank, E. The Complementarity of Ifta and
Qada: Three Saudi Fatwas on Divorce. In: Masud, Muhammad Khalid, Messick, Brinkley,
Powers, David S., eds. Islamic Legal Interpretation: Muftis and their Fatwas. Cambridge,
London: Harvard University Press, 1996, pp. 262269.
Combined initial and second periodic report of Saudi Arabia submitted on 29 March 2007,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SAU/2.
Responses by Saudi Arabia to the list of issues and questions contained in document
number CEDAW/C/SAU/Q/2, 18 December 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SAU/Q/2/Add.1,
question 16 at p. 14 and 15.
Id., at p. 15.
Id., at p. 20.
169
Such an attitude of a State does not necessarily imply negative consequences for
the status of women. It simply expresses clearly what other States would not formulate in such unequivocal terms. At the nal account, everything depends on the interpretation of Islamic law adopted in one or another State. However, such an unambiguous
expression of primacy of Islamic law becomes dangerous connotations when one
takes into account governments evasive attitude with regard to other matters, situation with womens rights in Saudi Arabia and the following vision described in the
report:
Islams view of woman derives from her shared humanity with man: However, proceeding from a basis of realism, Islam holds that full likeness between men and women is
contrary to the reality of their being Scientic studies attest to the physiological difference between them The Islamic Shariah respects these natural differences and
accords woman a privileged position in order to achieve justice for her.567
This vision of women being equal but different served as a justication for many
discriminatory practices and did not provide to be very useful in improving the situation of women.
18. Syria
Syria accessed to the CEDAW quite recently, namely on 28 March 2003. This accession
was accompanied by a quite extensive reservation which lists not only all articles traditionally reserved by Muslim States, namely article 2, article 9, paragraph 2, article 15,
paragraph 4 and article 16, paragraph 1 (c), (d), (f), and (g), but also the second paragraph
of article 16. Only the reservation to this latter provision is explained in terms of possible
contradictions with Islamic Sharia. However, a closer look at Syrias national legislation
makes it clear that reservations to other provisions of the CEDAW are also motivated by
a desire to protect Islamic law as applicable in Syria from immediate changes.
In its initial report Syria gave a detailed account of its reservations and legislative
provisions which need to be reconsidered.568 With regard to article 2, it was stated that the
566
567
568
Combined initial and second periodic report of Saudi Arabia submitted on 29 March 2007,
UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SAU/2, at p. 1011.
Id., at p. 11.
Initial report of Syria submitted on 29 August 2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SYR/1.
170
CHAPTER III
reservation is not incompatible with the articles of the Syrian Constitution. Efforts are
therefore being made to redress the situation by carrying out a review of Syrias reservations with the aim of removing them by and large.569 The reservation to article 15,
paragraph 4 is also considered for withdrawal.
since jurisprudents of the Hanate, Malakite and Hanbalite schools believe that women
are entitled to lay down as a contractual condition the right to choose their residence and
to travel, in which case they possess that right. The failure to claim it in the contract,
however, is regarded as an implicit forfeiture of that right. As for the freedom to choose a
domicile, the rule is that it is the husbands choice, since he is the person who is legally
obliged to provide maintenance. A woman may, however, reject the abode chosen by her
husband, in which case maintenance is forfeited.570
569
570
571
572
573
574
Id., at p. 30.
Id., at p. 80.
Id., at p. 47.
Id., at p. 105.
Responses to the list of issues and questions with regard to the consideration of the initial
periodic report of the Syria, 2 March 2007, UN Doc.CEDAW/C/SYR/Q/1/Add.1, question
30 and reply at p. 17.
See Chapter 1, II.B.2.
171
on certain dened grounds by court on the request of the wife are dened in Syrian
legislation in a traditional way.575 However, the report when describing the unilateral
divorce by the husband states: Unilateral divorce by the husband is where a woman
is under constant threat of divorce without knowing when or why it may occur.576
This critical attitude is already an indication of possible future positive changes. The
question of custody and guardianship of children is also regulated in a traditionally
conservative manner.577
It is interesting to mention that polygamy, which is still permitted in Syria under
some conditions, is described in the report as a practice which shall be eliminated
because not in full accordance with Islamic values.578
The overall attitude of Syria can be dened as constructive and dialogue-oriented.
The government submitted report in a timely manner, without any delay, discussed all
questions openly and in detail. It can also serve as an example of certain good practices to be adopted by other Muslim States in order to negotiate possible positive
solutions within the boundaries of Islamic tradition.
19. Tunisia
Tunisia entered no reservation to article 2. However, the general declaration according to which the Tunisian government
shall not take any organizational or legislative decision in conformity with the requirements of this Convention where such a decision would conict with the provisions of
chapter I of the Tunisian Constitution579
can have negative effects not only on the application of article 2, of the Convention,
but of any other article as well.
The reservation to article 9, paragraph 2 which reects the inequality in respect of
the transmission of nationality of parents to their children, is not dictated by any provision of the Islamic Sharia. However, as suggested in the report of Tunisia, the
Tunisian patriarchal concept of the family may account for such inequality ()580
575
576
577
578
579
580
172
CHAPTER III
This concept is incorporated in article 23 of the Tunisian Personal Status Code, which
considers the husband the head of the family.581 The same concept was used by the
Tunisian legislator as justication of the restriction of the right of married women to
choose their residence. According to Tunisian law a married woman must accompany her husband when he changes residence. She has no right to elect a domicile
other than the conjugal domicile.582 This provision led to the reservation to article 15,
paragraph 4. However, with the introduction of various amendments to the Tunisian
Personal Status Code in 1993 this unconditional obligation of a wife to follow her
husband was abolished. According to the present legislation the obligation is imposed
on both spouses to have a common conjugal domicile, which does not prevent either
of the spouses to a have a distinct temporary domicile if necessary.583
The Tunisian government also declared itself not bound by article 16, paragraph 1
(c), (d) and (f) without giving any further explanations in the text of the reservation
itself. Paragraph (g) and (h) of the same article were reserved because they can conict with the provisions of the Personal Status Code concerning the granting of family
names to children and the acquisition of property through inheritance.584
As far as paragraphs (c), (d) and (f) of article 16 are concerned, possible reasons for
reservations can be found in the fact that the husband is considered the head of the family.
The wife does not, therefore, have exactly the same rights regarding family matters.585
Another problematic area can be the custody and guardianship of children, because upon
the dissolution of marriage the wife has custody of young children and the husband is the
guardian of the children.586 Other matters often invoked in connection with the reservations entered by Muslim States, such as polygamy and dissolution of marriage, play no
role in the case of Tunisia. Polygamy is prohibited since the entry into force of the
Tunisian Personal Status Code on 1 January 1957.587 By the same Code equality between
men and women is established with regard to the dissolution of marriage.588
581
582
583
584
585
586
587
588
Combined initial and second periodic reports of Tunisia submitted on 12 April 1994, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/TUN/1-2, para. 913.
Id., para. 912.
Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Tunisia submitted on 2 August 2000, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/TUN/3-4, paras. 10351041, pp. 206207; as derived from article 23 of
the Tunisian Personal Status Code. Restrictions on this right are placed by article 61 which
stipulates that when the custody of children is granted to the mother, she is prevented from
moving far enough away to preclude the guardian from fulllment of his duty towards his
ward, otherwise she will lose her custody. In a similar vein article 67 stipulates that
guardianship may be withdrawn from the father in favor of the mother if he abandons his
home and has no known address or for any other reason likely to prejudice the interests of
the child.
See the text of the reservation. As explained in the report, the legitimate children must take
the name of their father: Combined initial and second periodic reports of Tunisia submitted
on 12 April 1994, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/TUN/1-2, para. 971; inheritance law is based on
Islamic Sharia and does not always give men and women of the same degree of kinship
the same share of heritage: Id., paras. 10031010.
Id., paras. 961964.
Id., paras. 984987, 955966.
Id., para. 920.
Id., paras. 976979.
173
As explained in the combined third and fourth periodic report of Tunisia the hierarchy or relationship of power inherent in the former concept of family and understanding of the relationship between the spouses is no longer valid. The position of
head of household still attributed to the husband is justied by the countrys economic
realities590 and is explained as follows:
The position of head of household is no longer a right granted to a husband to the
detriment of his wife but an economic function and a responsibility linked to the duty
incumbent on him to provide for the needs of his wife and children.591
The report expressly recognizes that this role of head of household can be played
by women giving the example of single mothers. It does not go further and does not
589
590
591
The former version of article 23 dened the relationship between spouses in the following
terms: The husband shall be considerate of his wife and maintain good relations with her.
He shall avoid causing her harm. He shall meet the expenses of the marriage and provide for
the needs of his wife and their children to the extent of his abilities and in accordance with
the status of the wife. The wife shall contribute to the expenses of the marriage if she has
property. The wife shall respect the prerogatives of the husband as the head of the household
and, to that extent, shall owe him obedience. The wife shall fulll her conjugal duties in
conformity with usage and custom.
A husband is the main economic provider. The economically active female population
constitutes only 24 per cent of the total economically active population (data of the national
census of 1994). Combined third and fourth periodic reports of Tunisia submitted on
2 August 2000, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/TUN/3-4, p. 212, para. 1063.
Id., p. 212, para.168.
174
CHAPTER III
discuss the situation in families where the main provider is a woman. Another suspicious aspect of this new article is the mentioning of usage and custom in relation to
the conjugal duties of both spouses. It is clear that usage and custom will more often
be detrimental to the promotion of equality than supportive of it. However, the more
general spirit of mutual cooperation and equality of this article combined with other
positive changes introduced into the Personal Status Code permits to qualify the attitude of Tunisia towards its obligations under the CEDAW as very promising and serious. Changes introduced in relation to the custody and guardianship of children should
be addressed in this connection.
The most important novelty in connection with the custody and guardianship of children is the possibility for a woman to get not only the custody, but under certain circumstances also the guardianship of children. The Tunisian legislator connects this possibility
to the changing economic position of women and the recognition of their contribution to
the material welfare of the family. Thus, article 67 of the Tunisian Personal Status Code
states that a mother who has the custody of her children also has prerogatives of guardianship with respect to the travel and education of the child and the management of his
or her nancial accounts. Although the full guardianship is still automatically attributed to the father or another male relative, the very possibility for a woman to have the
guardianship and not only the custody of children is a signicant step forward. In its
third and fourth combined periodic report Tunisia recognizes that the rights of parents
with respect to the guardianship remain unequal, but it stresses that the father no longer
enjoys an absolute right in the matter. Taking the interests of the child into account
a magistrate may grant the attributes of the guardianship to the mother.592
Finally, it is important to stress the following statement made by Tunisia in its combined initial and second periodic report: () reservations must be regarded as temporary until the various provisions of the Convention can be fully integrated into
existing Tunisian legislation.593 The combined third and fourth periodic report
submitted by Tunisia only supports this statement.
20. United Arab Emirates
This country became a party to the CEDAW on 6 October 2004 with a reservation which
has a distinguished feature: it expressly relates also to the second paragraph of article 15,
which is not the case in any other Muslim country. This reservation is explained in terms
of difference between men and women in such areas as legal capacity, testimony and the
right to conclude contracts motivated by application of Islamic law. Other areas preserved by the reservation and motivated by the necessity to safeguard Islamic law are
inheritance, which is invoked in relation to article 2 and rights and obligations of spouses
during the marriage, its dissolution and subsequently in relation to article 16. The reservation to article 9, paragraph 2, in contrast, does not mention Islamic law, but simply
preserves the matter of acquisition of nationality as an internal affair.
592
593
175
In the matters of personal status the United Arab Emirates apply classical Islamic
law which is not codied. Therefore, although it is possible to identify areas of
concern, it is difcult to be very precise about solutions chosen in this country. The
forthcoming initial report should provide important indication about countrys attitude
and concrete issues of concern.
C. Conclusions
The most visible general trend among States analyzed above is to declare reservations
to be of a temporary nature. They are interpreted as being mere indications of areas of
concern, which will disappear as soon as necessary legislative changes supported by
changing societal attitudes and customs are introduced. That such changes can take
several years and sometimes in cases where States make these changes dependent
on social conditions, public opinion and other social and political factors even decades is evident. This vision of reservations by a State a reservation being a temporary indication of areas of concern contains a danger of freezing the reservations.
However, if a State is taking its undertakings under the Convention seriously, such
interpretation of its reservations gives the Committee, as a treaty-monitoring body,
a unique opportunity to inuence legislative changes envisaged by a State in a manner
most favorable to the effective implementation of the Convention.
Taking into account the position adopted by the overwhelming majority of Muslim
States, in particular as far as reservations to article 2 and 16 are concerned, I came to the
following conclusion: obligations embodied in articles 2 and 16 are of such a nature that
they do not necessarily require an immediate result. As already mentioned above with
regard to article 2, it contains hard obligations requiring an immediate result as well
as soft obligations of effort. Furthermore, rights guaranteed by article 16 are of a particular nature. They can also be called obligations of effort; they require States to take
all appropriate measures without specifying further what this appropriateness means.
This implies rst of all that much is left to the discretion of States. Therefore, implementation of such obligations is very much dependent on the internal situation of each particular State. For the implementation of this type of obligations, States have, as the
practice of other treaty-monitoring bodies, in particular in relation to the ICESCR shows,
a certain margin of appreciation and a certain period of time. No immediate results are
required in this case. It does not mean that no action on the part of States is required. On
the contrary, States compliance with this type of provisions can be measured by steps
undertaken by each particular State in order to bring the situation in the country in line
with requirements of relevant articles of the Convention. In certain cases, this measurement can be done on hand of quite exact criteria, as for example the practice developed
by the Committee on Economic, Social and Cultural rights shows.594 However, it is not
594
See e.g. Committee on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights, State obligations, indicators,
benchmarks and the right to education, Background paper submitted by Paul Hunt, 16 July
1998, UN Doc. E/C.12/1998/11. and GREEN, Maria. What We Talk About When We Talk
About Indicators: Current Approaches to Human Rights Measurement. 23 HRQ 2001,
pp. 10621097.
176
CHAPTER III
suitable for all types of rights. Nevertheless, if in each periodic report a State indicates
some further positive changes towards implementation of a particular provision, it can
already be a sign of a seriousness of the States undertakings. In general, it could be suggested that States themselves should at least indicate in their periodic reports what kind
of measures and why they regard as appropriate in fullling one or another obligation
and propose a plan of advancement in implementing this obligation over several years,
and even decades, if necessary. In this connection, a comparison between the report of
Saudi Arabia and, for example, Malaysia is very illustrative. If the former State adopts
in its report a very evasive attitude without giving the members of the Committee the
possibility to fully understand the relevant legislative framework, the latter adopts a very
open and precise approach in fullling its reporting obligation with the members of the
delegation having a high degree of competence in their respective areas.595 In between
can be positioned the stance adopted by Kuwait. Its report and discussion of issues
raised by members of the Committee without attaining Malaysias level of quality, is
still satisfactory and allows understanding issues involved. However, one is simply
incredulous when reading that one of the members of Kuwaits delegation when asked
to respond to certain questions
said that she was taken aback by the thrust and details of the Committees questions.
Everyone was aware of the Convention, although practices might vary, with some countries being way below or way ahead of the stipulations of the Convention. However, she
had not read the report nor was she conversant with its subject matter, as her duties as
Kuwaits Ambassador to Vienna had concerned other matters. She was as surprised as
members of the Committee at the contradictions.596
Thus, these divergent attitudes indicate different level of seriousness of States with
regard to their obligations and can serve as an indication of the fact whether States
really and effectively used the time for the improvement of their compliance with the
CEDAW.
States parties to the CEDAW having no indication of the possibility to dispose of
this period of time and margin of appreciation as it is the case with regard to the
ICESCR, enter reservations in order to indicate their understanding of obligations
embodied in articles 2 and 16 as obligations of means not requiring immediate results.
595
596
They always respond to questions and enquires with high degree of precision, even if the
issue is sensitive and does not place the State in the best light. The reply given to the
question of punishment of marital rape raised by some members of the Committee in
relation to the issue of domestic violence is particularly illustrative. A member of Malaysian
delegation stated: after thorough consideration, the Parliamentary Select Committee had
concluded that marital rape could not be made an offence, as that would be inconsistent
with Sharia law. As a compromise, the Select Committee had proposed that hurting or
threatening to hurt a wife in order to compel her to have relations would constitute an
offence. Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by
Malaysia, 35th session, Summary records of the 732nd meeting, 24 May 2006, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/SR.732, para. 54 at p. 8.
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Kuwait,
30th session, Summary records of the 634th meeting, 15 January 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
SR.634, para. 49 at p. 8., (emphasis added).
177
Reservations which are based on this reasoning are, therefore, in fact interpretative
declarations and contain no danger for the effective implementation of the object and
purpose of the Convention.
In this connection the following point should also be concretized. As already mentioned above, article 2 contains some obligations requiring an immediate result, and
not a mere effort from States. Some Muslim States reserved the entire article 2 and
thus also these hard obligations. At rst glance the position of this group of Muslim
States cannot be explained or justied by the reasoning proposed above. However, one
should be aware of the following contradiction between the hard obligations of
article 2 and requirement to take all appropriate measures in the context of many
articles of the Special Part of the CEDAW. If a State takes advantage of the possibility
to adapt gradually its internal situation to the provisions of the CEDAW, which is
implicitly permitted in the all appropriate measures obligations, it will automatically
be in breach of one or another hard obligation of the General Part, and in particular
of article 2. Therefore, reservations entered to hard obligations of the General Part
do not contradict the general idea behind the above-proposed explanation. Namely,
that as long as States make all appropriate efforts to bring the situation in their country
into conformity with substantive requirements of the Special Part of the CEDAW, their
reservations should be interpreted as mere indications of areas of concern of temporary nature and not as impediments to the achievement of full equality. Should all
these contradictions and ambiguities be claried either in the text of the Convention
itself, or by the Committee in its general recommendations, States would enter less
reservations and would be less reluctant to withdraw already existing reservations.
Finally, some States did not enter reservations to all of the provisions of the CEDAW
which conict with their national legislation based on Islam. For example, Iraq and the
Maldives did not reserve article 15 as other Muslim States did, although their legislation contains similar discriminatory provisions as that of reserving States. This can be
explained either by the lack of attention and precision on the part of the States concerned or by the fact that they feel the necessity to eliminate relevant discriminatory
provisions from their legislation as soon as possible and do not regard them as an
essential part of Islamic laws and customs which form a part of countries traditions
and culture. The latter explanation corresponds better to the general attitude of those
States which comply with their reporting obligations, an attitude which is marked by
a high degree of attention and caution as far as Islamic laws are concerned. However,
where a State fails to comply with its reporting obligations, it is very probable that it
just failed to enter reservations which would protect sufciently its national legislation
from possible changes.
178
CHAPTER III
to which treaty relations can be modied by reservations. However, from a more general perspective reactions of other States offer us an insight into possibilities and ways
for opening a dialogue on relevant issues; they offer a unique opportunity to engage
in a real interaction and provide information about opinions of States on relevant
issues of international law, as will be shown below.
Any State party, when faced with reservations entered by another State party,
has, according to general international law two possibilities of reaction: either to
accept the reservation or to object to it. Whereas, it shall be kept in mind that
according to the rules of general international law only objections shall be explicit.
Silence on the part of a State is considered as an acceptance.597 Furthermore, an
objecting State can oppose the entry into force of a treaty as between itself and the
reserving State.598
The practice of the CEDAW shows, however, that there exists a wider range of
possible reactions to reservations. All reactions made to reservations based on Islam
as on 31 January 2008 are summarized in the Table 2 below. In this table O is used for
objection, N for notication and C for communication. The nature and content of
these reactions will be discussed later in corresponding parts of this chapter.
The table shows that very few States raised objections or expressly reacted in any
other way to the reservations based on Islam.599 Moreover, not all States who objected,
for example, to one reservation based on Islam also raised objections to other reservations of a similar nature.
Statistics of reactions are the following:
8 notications (2 of them are in fact objections to modications of reservations)
14 communications (1 of them is in fact an objection to a modication of
a reservation)
113 objections (1 of them relates to a modied reservation)
Total: 135 reactions
B. Objections
A written statement saying that a State making it objects to a particular reservation
entered by another State is sufcient as an objection. The practice developed by States
parties to the CEDAW shows, however, that States use objections as an opportunity to
express their opinions on many other aspects of the regime of reservations. The analysis
of objections made by States parties to the CEDAW to reservations based on Islam places
597
598
599
C604
Syria
O
O
O
UAE
O608
Tunisia
Saudi ArO
Pakistan O
Niger
O607
Oman
Morocco
Maurit O
O
O
Mald606 O
O605
O602
Libya601
Malay603
C
O
O
O
Kuwait N
Jordan
Iraq
Egypt
Brunei
Bangl600
Bahrain O
Austria Belgium Canada Denmark Estonia Finland France Germany Greece Ireland Italy Latvia Mexico Netherl Norway Poland Portugal Romania Spain Sweden UK
Algeria
Table 2
608
607
606
605
604
603
602
601
600
All objections were made with regard to the initial reservation of Bangladesh before the partial withdrawal made on 23 July 1997. See Table 1.
If not otherwise specied, objections relate to the initial, general reservation of Libya. See Table 1.
Finland objected on 8 July 1990 to the initial reservation of Libya and on 16 October 1996 to the modied reservation of Libya.
Objections and communications concern, if not otherwise specied, the initial reservation of Malaysia. See Table 1.
This communication was made by France with regard to the modication made by Malaysia on 6 February 1998. See Table 1.
On 21 July 1998 the Netherlands made also a communication with regard to the modication proposed by Malaysia on 6 February 1998.
See Table 1.
Objections and communications concern, if not otherwise specied, the initial reservation of the Maldives. See Table 1.
On 17 August 1999 Finland also made a notication with regard to the modication made by the Maldives on 29 January 1999. See Table 1.
On 16 August 1999 Germany also made a notication with regard to the modication made by the Maldives on 29 January 1999. See Table 1.
181
these observations of objecting States in the centre of the analysis. Each part of this
chapter will therefore concentrate on one type of statement made by objecting States.
1. Determination of the Nature of Reservations
The text of almost all objections states that the reservation to which the objection
relates is incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention.609 Even
where this is not stated expressly, it can be concluded through interpretation that the
reservation is considered as being incompatible with the object and purpose of the
Convention. There are three States which objected to reservations based on Islam
without invoking expressly the incompatibility of the reservation with the object
and purpose of the convention as a ground for objection. Firstly, Denmark, when
objecting to the initial reservation of Libya stated the following:
The Government of Denmark has taken note of the reservation made by the Libyan Arab
Jamahiriya when acceding (to the said Convention). In the view of the Government of
Denmark this reservation is subject to the general principle of treaty interpretation according to which a party may not invoke the provisions of its internal law as justication for
failure to perform a treaty.
Furthermore, France in its objection to the reservation of Saudi Arabia after having
mentioned the very general nature of the reservation, expresses its belief that the
reservation could make the provisions of the Convention completely ineffective and
objects therefore to it. Finally, the United Kingdom in its objections to reservations
entered by Saudi Arabia and Mauritania refers to the general nature of reservations
without qualifying them as incompatible.
In the case of the objections made by Denmark and the United Kingdom, it is not
so evident whether the objecting State had in mind the object and purpose of the
Convention at all. It is possible to argue that among characteristics of incompatible
reservations are such factors as invocation of internal law as justication for failure to
perform a treaty and the very general character of reservations. The fact that both
States mention these factors in their objections implies the qualication of related
reservations as incompatible.
It should also be mentioned here that some objections, while containing a statement about the possibility to identify the character of reservations to which they relate
as incompatible, do not state it unambiguously. Thus, the Government of Norway
formulated three identical objections to the initial reservation of the Maldives and
reservations of Kuwait and Pakistan. These objections state:
In the view of the Government of Norway, a reservation by which a State party limits its
responsibilities under the Convention by invoking general principles of internal law may
create doubts about the commitments of the reserving State to the object and purpose of
the Convention and, moreover, contribute to undermine the basis of international treaty
609
Out of one hundred and thirteen objections, only four do not contain an express statement
qualifying the corresponding reservation as incompatible with the object and purpose of
the Convention.
182
CHAPTER III
law. It is in the common interest of States that treaties to which they have chosen to
become parties also are respected, as to their object and purpose, by all parties.610
The objection of Norway can be interpreted in two ways. The rst possibility would
be to make the determination of the incompatibility of the reservation depending on
the degree of general character of the reference of the reservation to internal law. Such
interpretation can lead to the conclusion that reservations of the Maldives and Pakistan
constituting exclusively a general reference to internal law without mentioning neither provisions of the Convention nor the content or at least provisions of internal
laws to which they relate are incompatible with the object and purpose of the
Convention. The reservation of Kuwait, however, could be compatible with the object
and purpose of the Convention because it makes reference to the articles of the
Convention which are affected by the reservation. The second solution could be to see
in this objection the same type of objection as that of Austria made to the reservation
of Pakistan. Austrias objection is very similar in wording to the objection of Norway.
It states among others that
a reservation by which a State limits its responsibilities under the Convention in a general
and unspecied manner by invoking internal law creates doubts as to the commitment of
the Islamic Republic of Pakistan with its obligations under the Convention, essential for
the fulllment of its object and purpose.
610
Emphasis added.
183
Only one State, namely Sweden, expressed such an intention when objecting to reservations of the Maldives made upon accession.613 The applicability of this rule to
reservations and objections to CEDAW would have as a consequence the entry into
force of the Convention also as between reserving States and those objecting States,
which although objecting on the ground of incompatibility of the reservation with the
object and purpose of the Convention, do not expressly state that the objection does
not preclude the entry into force of the Convention.614 Thus, the following question
arises: Why did a great number of States nd it necessary - despite the existence of the
above-quoted provision of the Vienna Convention - to state expressly that their objections shall not preclude the entry into force of the Convention?
Are these types of statement superuous? If not, which role do they play in the
regime of reservations to the CEDAW? One possible solution which would explain
the necessity of this type of statement is to see the primary reason for all these statements made by objecting States in the fact that they relate to reservations qualied
as incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention. First of all, it should
be recalled that rules of general international law codied by the Vienna Convention
do not cover all possible situations and problems of the regime of reservations. Some
areas were deliberately left out of the codication; others, even if codied, are regulated in very general terms. The Vienna Convention provides just a general framework, contains basic rules and principles giving guidance in situations not regulated
by more specic rules. Such was in fact the intention of the drafters of the Vienna
Convention.615 Unfortunately, there are very few treaties and very few provisions in
611
612
613
614
615
One hundred and one of one hundred and thirteen objections to reservations based on
Islam contain such an express statement or a similar statement expressly specifying that
the Convention remains in force.
Article 20, paragraph 4 (b) of the Vienna Convention.
This intention was expressed as follows: The Government of Sweden therefore objects to
these reservations and considers that they constitute an obstacle to the entry into force of the
Convention between Sweden and the Republic of Maldives.
There are eleven objections of this type.
See for example the following statement made by the ILC in 1951 during its work on the
Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties:
184
CHAPTER III
616
617
618
619
620
621
The Commission believes that multilateral conventions are so diversied in character and
object that () no single rule uniformly applied can be wholly satisfactory. () [The]
problem is not to recommend a rule which will be perfectly satisfactory, but that which
seems to it [the Commission] to be the least unsatisfactory and to be suitable for application
in the majority of cases. Whereby states and international organizations are invited to
consider the insertion in multilateral conventions of provisions relating to reservations:
YbILC, 1951, A/1858, para.28.
See more about these aspects of the Vienna Conventions regime of reservations and their
consequences above in a part dealing with the reservations regime in general and in First
Report on the Law and Practice Relating to Reservations to Treaties. Preliminary Report
by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/470, 47th session of the ILC, 30 May 1995,
paras. 91149 at pp. 4768.
Emphasis added.
With regard to reservations of Bahrain, Kuwait, Malaysia, Mauritania, Niger, Pakistan,
Saudi Arabia, and Syria.
With regard to reservations of Niger, Mauritania and Saudi Arabia.
With regard to the reservation of the Maldives.
With regard to reservations of Bahrain, Mauritania, Saudi Arabia, and Syria.
185
622
623
624
625
626
186
CHAPTER III
undermining the basis of international treaty law.627 It becomes evident from the objections containing such statements that for a reservation to be sufciently specied,
a reference shall be given to the provisions of the Convention which are affected by
the reservation as well as to the extent of the derogation from relevant provisions of
the Convention. Therefore, any reservation which just makes a reference to internal
laws without specifying its content and the way in which a States commitments under
a treaty will be affected is general in nature. Moreover, as explained by Norway
A reservation by which a State Party limits its responsibilities under the Convention by
invoking religious laws (Shariah), which is subject to interpretation, modication and
selective application in different states adhering to Islamic principles, may create doubts
about the commitments of the reserving state to the object and purpose of the Convention.
It may also undermine the basis of international treaty law.
627
628
629
with regard to all reservations making reference to religious laws and expressly to
reservations by the Maldives, Kuwait, Malaysia and Pakistan; by Sweden with regard to
all reservations incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention, except
reservations of Syria, Saudi Arabia, Mauritania, and Bahrain.
Several other States stressed in their objections the inadmissibility and questionable nature
of general reservations without adding a statement about such reservations undermining the
basis of treaty law. See objections made by Austria to reservations of Bahrain and Syria; by
Denmark to reservations of Bahrain and Syria; by Germany to reservations of Syria and
Bahrain; by Finland to reservations of Bahrain, Mauritania, Saudi Arabia, and Syria; by
France to reservations of Bahrain, Saudi Arabia, and Syria; by Greece to the reservation of
Bahrain; by Italy to the reservation of Syria; by Portugal to reservations of Saudi Arabia
and Mauritania; by Spain to the reservation of Saudi Arabia and Syria; by Sweden to
reservations of Syria, Saudi Arabia, Mauritania, and Bahrain; by the United Kingdom to
reservations of Syria, Saudi Arabia, Mauritania, and Bahrain.
See observations made by Sweden in connection with its objections. It is important to note
that all objections made by Sweden qualify corresponding reservations as incompatible
with the object and purpose of the Convention.
Emphasis added. Both Norway and Sweden also mention the common interest of States.
According to Norway all states have a common interest in securing that all parties respect
treaties to which they have chosen to become parties. Sweden formulated this idea in the
following way: it is in the common interest of states that treaties to which they have
chosen to become parties also are respected, as to object and purpose, by other parties.
187
all reservations incompatible with the object and purpose of a treaty can be qualied
as a violation of rules of international law. One argument in favor of an afrmative
answer could be the attitude of Sweden, which made the type of statements analyzed
in this chapter in relation to all incompatible reservations objected by it.
Furthermore, the idea has been expressed above that reservations to provisions
according to which States assume obligations for the common good cannot be subject to the same rules as ordinary reservations because they affect all States parties
to a treaty and, therefore, are not established only with regard to the accepting
State.630 Here statements made by some objecting States emphasize the common
interest of all States parties to respect the object and purpose of the treaty. It could
be concluded that all incompatible reservations, since they affect common interests
of all States parties are not subject to the same regime as ordinary (compatible)
reservations.
(2) Reservations and International Human Rights Law
The government of Mexico, in its objections to reservations of Bangladesh, Egypt,
Iraq and Libya, particularly emphasized the inconsistency of reservations with other
contractual obligations previously assumed by these States. Mexico pointed out that
the principles of equal rights of men and women and non-discrimination on the basis
of sex are already embodied in the second preamble paragraph and article 1, paragraph 3 of the Charter of the United Nations; in articles 2 and 16 of the Universal
Declaration of Human Rights of 1948; in article 2, paragraph 1 and article 3 of the
ICCPR and in article 2, paragraph 2 and article 3 of the ICESCR. The majority of
States which entered reservations based on Islam are parties to all above-mentioned
treaties. Should it not be the case, Mexico stated that
the principles of the equal rights of men and women and of non-discrimination on the
basis of sex, which are set forth in the Charter of the United Nations as one of its purposes, in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights of 1948 and in various multilateral
instruments, have already become general principles of international law which apply to
the international community.631
Reservations to which this type of observation relate are, according to the opinion
of Mexico, of such a nature that their implementation would inevitably result in discrimination against women on the basis of sex. This would be contrary not only to
the CEDAW but to all previous undertakings of the reserving States.
Similar statements were made by Sweden with regard to reservations of Bahrain,
Bangladesh, Tunisia, Egypt, Iraq, Libya, Jordan, the Maldives, Kuwait, and Syria;
by Denmark with regard to the reservation of Syria.
This type of observation can be interpreted as an indication of an opinion of States
according to which reservations contradictory to human rights obligations, be it treaty
obligations or obligations under general international law, previously assumed by the
reserving State are inadmissible. A logical consequence of this rule would be the
630
631
188
CHAPTER III
conclusion that even reservations compatible with the object and purpose of a treaty
are inadmissible if they contradict other obligations previously assumed by a State
under international law.
A statement of another type was made by Germany in relation to all reservations
based on Islam objected by it except the reservations of Saudi Arabia and Mauritania.
This statement concerns a procedural aspect of human rights obligations and reads as
follows:
In relation to the Federal Republic of Germany, they [reservations] may not be invoked in
support of a legal practice which does not pay due regard to the legal status afforded to
women and children in the Federal Republic of Germany in conformity with the abovementioned articles of the Convention.
This objection would therefore prevent the use of reservations to which it relates as
a justication or defense with regard to non-respect of the reserved provision in any
eventual proceedings where Germany and one of the reserving States are parties. This
statement is a reection of an idea often expressed by scholars in the context of the
discussion on effects of objections. Some authors are of the opinion that objections,
for example, to modifying reservations or to material provisions of human rights
treaties have effects identical to acceptance. The part of the doctrine which disagrees
with this view emphasizes the importance of objections as a tool for preserving the
legal interests of the objecting State, in particular for the purposes of any future proceedings.632 To put it differently, although in ordinary circumstances the utility of
objections might be almost invisible, it becomes decisive in the case of judicial or
quasi-judicial proceedings in relation to the reserved provision. Whereas the reserving
State can rely on its reservations vis--vis accepting States, objections prevent it from
doing so vis--vis objecting States.
b) Reservations and National Law
When objecting to reservations based on Islam a number of States emphasized that
reservations () are () subject to the general principle of the observance of treaties
according to which a party may not invoke the provisions of its internal law as justication for its failure to perform its treaty obligations. It is in common interest of States that
contracting parties to international treaties are prepared to undertake the necessary
legislative changes in order to fulll the object and purpose of the treaty.633
On two occasions this principle is called by objecting States the general principle
of treaty interpretation.634 Norway, in its objections, speaks in this connection just
632
633
634
189
about a well-established treaty law. Any State making a reservation which invokes
provisions of its internal law as a justication of a failure to perform treaty obligations
would therefore violate this principle of international law. Such reservations, even if
they are not contrary to the object and purpose of a treaty, would be inadmissible
under international law.
In this connection the objection made by Denmark to the reservation of Libya should
be recalled.635 This objection does not contain any statement as to the compatibility of
the reservation with the object and purpose of the Convention, although making
reference to the impossibility to invoke internal law as a justication for the failure to
perform treaty obligations. In the light of the above-made interpretation of this type
of statements, it is possible to conclude that according to Denmark the reservation of
Libya is at least inadmissible.
Although the rule formulated in this type of statement cannot be disputed and even
deserves to be supported, some clarications are necessary in this connection. Not all
reservations mentioning the internal law of a State fall necessarily into the category of
inadmissible reservations invoked by objecting States in these statements. Internal
law may be invoked in a reservation in three different ways:
Invocation of internal law in reservations of transitional nature intended to apply
while national law is brought into harmony with provisions of a treaty is no more than
a mere indication of areas of concern which can be very useful in the context of activities of treaty-monitoring bodies. This type of reservation is a sign of a cooperative
attitude of a State, and gives an opportunity to a treaty-monitoring body to inuence
changes of internal law of a State in a way most favorable to the effective implementation of a treaty.
References to internal law in reservations explaining the relationship between some
provisions of a treaty and corresponding provisions of national law in the belief that
the latter are in line with requirements of a treaty can have the character of simple
interpretative declarations. The danger lies, however, in the fact that this type of invocation of internal law can also be used in order to hide real reservations, in most cases
inadmissible reservations belonging to the third group.
The third group includes such reservations which intend to protect the internal law
of a State from any changes which may be necessary as a consequence of the States
adherence to a treaty. These reservations are inadmissible and in many cases also
incompatible with the object and purpose of a treaty.
Statements of objecting States mentioned above relate only to the last group.
In practice, it is not always easy to determine which of these three groups a particular
reservation belongs to. States parties being faced with a reservation invoking internal
law and believing that they have only a limited time for reaction have no choice but to
object taking into account the worst scenario. A treaty-monitoring body should,
however, be more careful. After a certain period of time the attitude of the reserving
State, in particular its reports and discussions of these reports with the treaty-monitoring
body can reveal the real nature of the reservation. The choice of a correct attitude
635
190
CHAPTER III
636
637
638
639
It is important to emphasize that in cases where the text of the reservation itself is not
sufciently clear, a treaty-monitoring body should, from time to time, re-examine the attitude of the reserving State and, therefore, the nature of the reservation because the attitude
of the State and, therefore, the nature of reservations can change as a result, for example, of
the changing policy of the government.
This possibility to modify an objection is important also in the context of a possible change
in the nature of the reservation, as mentioned above in the previous footnote.
Namely 12 months upon notication or signature, ratication or accession. See above II.A.
Reactions of States to modications of reservations are of two types: either they are treated
as ordinary objections, if they are made within the prescribed time-limit and the modication
is accepted by all States (for example, the objection made by Finland to the modied
reservation of Libya), or they belong to this second group of reactions, if the modication
is not accepted or the time-limit was not respected. In the latter case they are very similar
to the late objections, but are nevertheless analyzed separately because the modication
of reservations to which they relate is not a common practice and includes elements distinct
from the ordinary practice of reservations.
191
munications, although from the point of view of content they are very similar and
sometimes even identical to objections.
By the end of January 2008 eight notications with regard to reservations based on
Islam are known. Two notications are treated separately, namely the notication
made by Finland on 17 August 1999 and by Germany on 16 August 1999 with regard
to the proposed modication of the Maldives. Thus, only six notications are analyzed at the present stage. Three of them were made in connection with the reservation
of Algeria640 and three relate to the reservation of Kuwait.641 All these notications
simply state that the reservations to which they relate are incompatible with the object
and purpose of the Convention and therefore prohibited by virtue of article 28,
paragraph 2 of the CEDAW.
Fourteen communications were made by the end of January 2008.642 They have a
richer content than notications. Apart from qualifying reservations to which they
relate as incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention, they contain
some other statements identical to those analyzed in relation to objections. Thus,
Denmark included in its communications a statement as to the impossibility to invoke
internal law as justication for failure to perform treaty obligations; Sweden and
Portugal emphasized that general reservations contribute to undermining the basis of
international law643; Sweden added that it is in the common interest of all States to
respect treaties as to the object and purpose and to undertake necessary legislative
changes644. All communications, after stating that they object to the relevant reservation, add that the objection does not preclude the entry into force of the Convention.
Furthermore, Sweden, with regard to the reservation of Pakistan as well as Denmark
with regard to all reservations addressed by it, said that reservations being incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention are not only inadmissible, but
also without legal effects under international law. More precisely it means that
the Convention will thus become operative between the two states without (the
reserving state) beneting from these reservations.645
The most signicant and new statement which was made by Sweden in relation to
the reservation of Pakistan and by Denmark with regard to all reservations addressed
640
641
642
643
644
645
192
CHAPTER III
646
647
648
193
of the nature of reservations, for the adoption of an appropriate attitude towards particular types of reservations, but also in the context of possible proceedings as a means
of preserving the legal position of a State submitting communications or notications
etc. Such statements could also be important for the development of rules of general
international law on the regime of reservations and in particular in order to complete
and clarify the Vienna Convention regime of reservations. More concrete answers
could be given only after an analysis of a much wider range of treaties. This goes, however, beyond the scope of this research.
2. Reactions to Modications
First of all, it is important to emphasize that no State objected to the deposit and
procedure adopted with regard to modications. The practice developed regarding
modication of reservations can therefore be judged as accepted, at least in the
framework of the CEDAW. Four communications received in connection with modications proposed by Malaysia and the Maldives relate exclusively to the material
content of the said modications.
Unfortunately, the situation that arose out of the reaction of France to the proposed
modication of Malaysia described above led to much confusion.649 Following this
precedent, States faced with proposed modications have to deal with a difcult
dilemma if they wish to object to the material content of a modication. On the one
hand, a State which proposes a modication of its reservation would, in most cases,
modify it in such a manner as to enlarge the scope of its obligations under a treaty. This
happened in the case of two modications proposed in the framework of the CEDAW.
Now, should another State nevertheless nd it necessary to object to the modied reservation, it runs a danger of preventing this enlargement of obligations of the reserving
State and to leave the reserving State with its initial more far-reaching reservation.
Should this State, however, choose not to object in order to allow the modication to
come into force, it will lose all possible rights and advantages following from an
objection. The States which chose to react to modications did so, therefore, either in
very careful terms in order not to create by their statements an obstacle to the entry into
force of the modication or expressed their objections after the expiration of the prescribed 90 days time-limit. The government of the Netherlands, for example, declared
in relation to the modication proposed by Malaysia:
The Government of the Kingdom of the Netherlands has examined the modication of the
reservation made by Malaysia ()
The Government () acknowledges that Malaysia has specied these reservations, made
at the time of its accession to the Convention. Nevertheless the Government () wishes
to declare that it assumes that Malaysia will ensure implementation of the rights
enshrined in the above articles and will strive to bring its relevant national legislation
into conformity with the obligations imposed by the Convention. The declaration shall
not preclude the entry into force of the Convention between the Kingdom of the
Netherlands and Malaysia.
649
194
CHAPTER III
This communication being submitted after the prescribed time-limit date could not
prevent the acceptance of the modication. One can dispute Germanys evaluation of
the nature of this modication. It is, however, not the principal issue to discuss in connection with the regime of modications and reactions to them. Another point
addressed in this communication is of much greater importance. Germany stated that
a State, after having bound itself by a treaty, cannot in any way restrict its obligations
under this treaty. A reserving State can only withdraw its reservations either totally or
partially. The statement conrms remarks on and evaluation of the practice of the
Secretary-General with regard to proposed modications presented above.651 It means
that the procedure of acceptance of modications applied by the Secretary-General
with regard to modications proposed by Malaysia and the Maldives should be
adopted in all cases where the possibility exists that a State is attempting to restrict its
obligations under a treaty through the proposed modication. In cases, however,
where there is an unambiguous withdrawal of reservations, either partial or total, no
procedure of acceptance is necessary. It is important that the depositary of a treaty
takes its decision about the necessity of the procedure of acceptance taking into account
the nature of the proposed modication and not the name given to it by a State.
As to the legal value and consequences of communications received by the
Secretary-General in connection with modications, it is again difcult to draw
any general conclusions regarding statements which are made after the expiration
of the prescribed time-limit. As in the case of late objections they can be an indi-
650
651
Finland, after having expressed its satisfaction with the fact that the Maldives specied its
reservation made upon accession, added that the reservations () still include elements
which are objectionable. The Government of Finland therefore wishes to declare that it
assumes that the Government of the Republic of Maldives will ensure the implementation
of the rights recognized in the Convention and will do its utmost to bring its national
legislation into compliance with obligations under the Convention with a view to
withdrawing the reservation. The declaration does not preclude the entry into force of the
Convention between the Maldives and Finland. (emphasis added).
See above I.A.1.(i).
195
cation of the opinion of States for the purposes of the Committees work or an
element of the formation of rules of general international law. A State submitting
its communication in time has, in any case, a possibility to prevent the acceptance
of a modication.
3. Views of States Parties to the Convention Submitted at the Request
of the Secretary-General
States parties to the Convention had also another possibility to express their views on
reservations that could be considered incompatible with article 28, paragraph 2 of the
Convention. The issue of reservations to the Convention was discussed at the third
meeting of States parties held on 25 March 1986 in New York. States being concerned
with reservations falling within the scope of article 28, paragraph 2 requested the
Secretary-General to seek the views of States parties on this type of reservations and
to include these views in the report on the status of the Convention to the General
Assembly at its forty-rst session. Out of eighty-seven States parties to the Convention
at the time of the request seventeen responded to it. These views were included as
requested in the report of the Secretary-General on the status of the Convention to the
General Assembly at its 41st session in 1986.
Some of the views submitted by States parties are very short and contain only
a conrmation of an already existing situation with regard to their own reservations
and objections (or their absence).652 Other more extensive replies are of a very different content. Many of them make an attempt to dene some criteria for the determination of the nature of reservations. The most comprehensive one is made by Canada.
It suggested the following factors which might be relevant to a determination of
whether a reservation falls within the scope of article 28, paragraph 2:
(a) Whether the reservation is made to one of the general provisions, that is, the denition of discrimination in article 1 or the general obligations of States parties ser
forth in articles 2, 3 and 24;
(b) Whether the reservation is in regard to a particularly crucial aspect of equality with
men, such as the right to equal legal capacity set forth in article 15;
(c) Whether the reservation is in regard to a provision that affects many women in a
very signicant facet of national life;
(d) The nature of the reservation itself, that is, whether it involves a reservation in toto
to the provision in question or is of a very specic nature.653
Two countries stated that no reservations should be needed to provisions, which are
mainly commitments to work towards the dened aims and cannot reasonably be
expected to be reached immediately.654
652
653
654
See, for example, replies by China, France and Gabon: General Assembly, 41st session,
Report of the Secretary-General. Status of the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms
of Discrimination against Women, 7 October 1986, UN Doc. A/41/608, at pp. 4 and 8.
Id., at p. 6.
See replies of Denmark and Sweden Id., at pp. 78 and 15.
196
CHAPTER III
Some States used this request as an opportunity to express their objections to some
reservations661, although it should be noted that these statements can not be considered
655
656
657
658
659
660
661
Id., at p. 12.
Id., at p. 13.
More on ways in which national law may be invoked in reservations and their relationship
with the question of compatibility of reservations see above I.C. and II.B.3.b).
General Assembly, 41st session, Report of the Secretary-General. Status of the Convention
on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against Women, 7 October 1986, UN
Doc. A/41/608, at p. 11.
See above II.B.3.b).
General Assembly, 41st session, Report of the Secretary-General. Status of the Convention
on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against Women, 7 October 1986, UN
Doc. A/41/608, at p. 14.
As far as reservations based on Islam are concerned, Portugal objected to reservations by
Egypt and Tunisia; Saint Lucie objected to reservations of the same two states, although
noting that these objections do not necessarily mean that the reservations are incompatible,
and Spain qualied reservations of Bangladesh, Egypt and Tunisia as totally incompatible
with the objectives and purpose of the Convention without formally objecting to them.
Id., at pp. 1113.
197
as objections in the strict sense of the term. The fact that they are made after the expiration of the time-limit is not an obstacle for such statements to have similar legal
effects as objections.662 However, what is more important, they are not addressed to
the depositary of the Convention. They could be compared to the late objections,
but are not included by the depositary in the compilation of multilateral treaties deposited with the Secretary-General, even not in the text of footnotes. The legal value of
such statements is therefore very limited, in particular because, although being able,
States do not address their observations to the depositary of the Convention, so that
they can be communicated to all States parties.
Mexico and Portugal made some observations concerning the possibility of acceptance of incompatible reservations. Mexico stated that acceptance of incompatible reservations constitutes a clear violation not only of article 28, paragraph 2 of the
Convention, but also of article 19 (c) of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties,
which enshrines the practice on this matter recognized by the international
community.663 Portugal simply states that all reservations incompatible with the
object and purpose of a treaty are unacceptable.664 These statements support the aboveexpressed opinion as to the impossibility of acceptance of incompatible reservations
and therefore the inapplicability of rules on acceptance and objections codied in
articles 20 and 21 of the Vienna Convention.665
Finally, Canada and the Soviet Union made some observations with regard to the
powers of the Committee. According to Canada the Committee may consider the
effect of reservations on the application of the Convention, but is not empowered to
make a nal or binding determination of their incompatibility.666 The Soviet Union is
even more categorical. It states that the Committee is not authorized either to interpret the reservations expressed by the States regarding the Convention or, much less,
to consider the question of their legality.667
D. Conclusions on General Trends in State Practice
The above analysis of reactions of States to reservations based on Islam shows that the
content of these reactions is more multifaceted than one could expect. States express
in their reactions, not only their opinion on a particular reservation, but also their
opinions on some very controversial issues of the reservations regime in general.
First of all, one should keep in mind that all the reactions analyzed above concern incompatible reservations, at least according to the interpretation given to the reservations
662
663
664
665
666
667
198
CHAPTER III
by the reacting States.668 Faced with incompatible reservations and the ambiguities of
their regime, reacting States do not remain passive and silent, but attempt to clarify and
express their opinion on some unresolved questions of the reservations regime codied
in the Vienna Convention.
The most important general conclusion which can be drawn from reactions of
States to reservations based on Islam is that the States refuse the application of the
same rules on effects of reservations to incompatible (inadmissible) and to compatible (admissible) reservations. This follows rst of all from statements denying the
possibility that incompatible reservations may have any legal effects. Statements in
which objecting States regard the Convention as being in force between themselves
and the reserving State can also be interpreted as a rejection of the application of
provisions on effects of objections and acceptance formulated in the Vienna
Convention to incompatible reservations. In particular, when an objecting State claries that it does not oppose the entry into force of the Convention as between itself
and the reserving State in its entirety, it obviously takes part of the permissibility
school and pronounces for the severability doctrine. The fact that several States
refused to apply the time-limit rule to incompatible reservations also places incompatible reservations in a particular position distinguishing them from other types of
reservations.
Another very interesting trend developed in the context of reservations based
on Islam is the practice of modification of reservations. Although the procedure
adopted by the Secretary-General with regard to the modification of reservations
and its practical implementation have some weak points,669 the practice of modification of reservations as such deserves to be supported. It introduces flexibility
and openness into the reservations regime, allowing for a better dialogue between
States and promotes universality of participation improving at the same time
compliance with the terms of a treaty. Together with the statements rejecting the
applicability of the time-limit rule and some objections which invite reserving
States to clarify or reconsider their reservations, the practice of modification of
reservations introduces a dynamic element into the reservations regime. This
dynamic element can be seen as an attempt of the States to deal with the ambiguities and gaps of the Vienna Convention regime without transgressing the limits of
this regime.
Finally, the question of the status of reservations invoking internal law should be
recalled. As already mentioned above, internal law can be invoked in reservations in
different ways.670 Not all of them would render the reservation incompatible with the
object and purpose of the treaty. States do agree with this in general terms.671
However, as far as certain provisions or certain reserving States are concerned, the
objecting States refuse to apply this differential treatment. Thus, Spain stated that
668
669
670
671
In four cases this was not expressed in an unambiguous way. It can, however, be deduced
through interpretation. See above II.B.1.
See above I.A.1.(i).
See above II.B.3.b).
See above II.C.3., especially views expressed by Spain and Portugal.
199
any reservation to article 16 of the CEDAW would be incompatible with the object
and purpose of the Convention.672 Some States, although accepting theoretically
these different types of invocation of internal law in reservations, do not differentiate, when they object to reservations based on Islam.673 Such an attitude of Western
States can be explained in certain cases only in terms of prejudices existing towards
Islamic culture. Why are some States not able to admit that due to the traditions and
culture of certain countries, governments need a period of time in order to bring the
legislation of their countries in line with the terms of the Convention? One should
not forget that the position of women in Western societies has not always been the
same. It sufces to recall how many years were required in several European States
in order to introduce voting rights for women.
672
673
674
675
676
Id.
See for example the objection of Portugal made to the reservation of the Maldives.
Article 21, paragraph 1 of the Convention.
Id.
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination
against Women, adopted and opened for signature, ratication and accession by General
Assembly resolution 54/4 of 6 October 1999. Entered into force in December of the
following year. Hereafter referred to as the Optional Protocol.
200
CHAPTER III
after a closed meeting following the discussion of a report and constructive dialogue
with a representative of a State.677
The issue of reservations has been addressed both during the discussion of reports
and in concluding comments. The most common form used by the Committee and its
members is a general expression of concern at reservations.678 It has often been suggested to States to review their reservations with a view to withdraw them.679 However,
more interesting are two other ways used by the Committee and its members to address
reservations. One of them is to enter into a dialogue with a representative of a State
about the exact content, consequences and sense of reservations, in particular in terms
of the internal law of a State. The second way consists of giving a determination,
explicit or implicit, of the nature of the States reservations.
1. Discussing the Impact of Reservations with States
The following are examples of a dialogue about reservations based on Islam. During
the discussion of the initial report of Bangladesh some members of the Committee
wondered whether the reservations entered by this country, in particular to article 2,
were really necessary taking into account the principle of equality proclaimed in the
Constitution of Bangladesh and legislative reforms undertaken and planned.680
During the consideration of Egypts initial report some experts wondered, after
having heard Egypts explanation of its reservation to article 16, whether it was
necessary to make this reservation.681 The issue was addressed again in 1990 in relation to the second periodic report of Egypt. One of the experts of the Committee
677
678
679
680
681
See Procedures and Format for the Elaboration of Concluding Comments adopted by the
Committee at its 19th session in 1998. The text is contained in the Report of the Committee
on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women to the General Assembly, 18th and
19th sessions, General Assembly Ofcial Records, 53rd session, Supplement N 38, UN
Doc. A/53/38/Rev.1, paras. 395397.
It appears in relation to all reservations based on Islam. See for example Concluding
comments of the Committee, Consideration of rst and second periodic reports of Jordan,
2000, UN Doc. A/55/38, para. 172; Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration
of the initial report of the Maldives, Unedited version, 2001, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/2001/I/
Add.6, para. 17.
Such statements are also made in relation to all reservations based on Islam. See for
example Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the combined initial
and second periodic reports of Tunisia, 1996, UN Doc. A/50/38, para. 271.
Consideration of the initial report submitted by Bangladesh, 6th session, Summary records
of the 96th meeting, 8 April 1987, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.96, para. 89: one of the
members of the Committee stated that it did not understand why it was judged necessary to
reserve article 2 taking into account the fact that the principle of equality between men and
women is recognized in the countrys Constitution as required by article 2 (a) of the
Convention; Id. para. 96: another member expressed estimation that if all legislative and
other programs described in the report were effectively applied without any restrictions the
reservation to article 2 would not be necessary and could be withdrawn.
Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the initial report submitted by
Egypt, 1984, UN Doc. A/39/45, para. 217.
201
felt that the reservations to articles 2 and 16 did a disservice to the country. The reservation to article 2 should not exist at all, because Egyptian law excluded discrimination. The
reservations to many subparagraphs of article 16 could also be withdrawn, because no
conict with Islamic law was involved.682
Similar comments and suggestions were made during the consideration of Libyas
initial report:
Since the Libyan Government believed that Islamic law provided more rights to women
than national and international legislation, () it should consider the possibility of withdrawing those reservations which related particularly to article 2 of the Convention,
taking into account the objections of many States parties in that regard.683
This observation contains another very important reference, namely, that relating to
objections expressed by other States. It is remarkable that in connection with Libyas
initial report the issue of objections has been raised on several occasions, which has
not been done during the discussion of any other report submitted by one of the
Muslim States.684
The discussion of Moroccos initial report led some members of the Committee to
similar observations. They stated, for example, that the reservation to article 16
appeared to conict with the Governments legal position685 or that the reservation to
article 2 appeared to conict with the aim of improving the status of women demonstrated by the government.686
Worth mentioning is also the following recommendation contained in concluding
comments to Malaysias report: [The Committee] encourages the State party to obtain
information on comparative jurisprudence and legislation, where more progressive
interpretations of Islamic law have been codied in legislative reforms.687 This encouragement is very valuable as it makes reference to internal resources and possibilities of
682
683
684
685
686
687
Consideration of the second periodic report submitted by Egypt, 9th session, Summary
record of the 164th meeting, 31 January 1990, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.164, para. 81.
Consideration of the initial report submitted by Libya, 13th session, Summary record of the
237th meeting, 19 January 1994, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.237, para. 42. Another member
of the Committee said that she did not see why those reservations should be upheld out of
respect for Sharia, when the report had emphasized the pioneering role the Sharia had
played in promoting womens rights. Furthermore, those reservations might imply that the
Sharia did not actually acknowledge the full rights of women. Id., para. 52.
Id., para. 35, 42. The principal question relating to objections was about Libyas possible
responses to many objections made by other States parties. It should be recalled that the
initial report of Libya was submitted and its consideration took place before the modication
of Libyas general reservation.
Consideration of the initial report submitted by Morocco, 16th session, Summary record
of the 313th meeting, 14 January 1997, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.313, para. 12.
Id., para. 19. This expert of the Committee also added that In many countries () in
which Islam was the dominant religion, the Islamic Sharia did not really regulate behavior,
but was often put forward as an excuse. She therefore urged the Government to examine
those areas in which Moroccan women still faced discrimination () and to decide
whether the provisions of the Convention really conicted with Islamic law.
Concluding Comments of the Committee with regard to the combined initial and second
periodic report of Malaysia, 31 May 2006, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MYS/CO/2, para. 14 at p. 3.
202
CHAPTER III
the country paying due attention to its peculiarities. The same encouraging effect which
opens a way for constructive dialogue can be achieved by statements similar to the
following made during the discussion of the Kuwaits combined initial and second
periodic report:
Ms. Gaspard, noting the understandably deep concern among Committee members at
Kuwait being the only remaining country to deny women the right to vote, said that history
had provided many examples of men who had put up resistance to womens suffrage.
In her own country, France, Parliament had rejected legislation to guarantee womens
right to vote 21 times between 1919 and 1939. In Kuwait, objections were made by men
who did not wish to see their wives or daughters being solicited by political candidates
without a male presence. In France, a high-ranking prewar political ofcial had said that
a ballot would not be elegant in a womans hands, which were meant for gloves and rings.
In both instances, resistance to granting women full political citizenship came from
political ofcials and parties. Contemporary Kuwait, however, offered a different example
from pre-war France in that Kuwaiti women were highly educated, and, in some respects,
better educated than their male counterparts.688
This observation draws on the history, pointing out similarities in the development
of the area, and thus on common values of both cultures. However, simultaneously, it
does not have depreciative effect, because it also refers to advantageous differences
between situations.
Comments and observations of this type allow States to see their reservations and
obligations under the Convention in a new light, to initiate a constructive dialogue
with representatives of States. This can lead to a positive change in a position of a
State. The best examples are the partial withdrawal of reservations by Bangladesh and
Kuwait, as well as the replacement of Libyas general reservation by a more precise
reservation.
2. Determining the Nature of Reservations
As far as the second way to address reservations is concerned, namely the determination
of the nature of reservations by the Committee, it was not used very frequently at the
early stage of the existence of the Committee. Even if the nature of reservations was
addressed also during the rst years of the existence of the Committee, it was
made exclusively by individual members in a rather indirect way. Members of the
Committee emphasized, for example, the capital importance of some provisions,
their central role for the enjoyment by women of their human rights, stating that these
are core or key provisions of the Convention.689 In particular when reservations to
688
689
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Kuwait,
30th session, Summary records of the 634th meeting, 15 January 2004, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/SR.634, para. 34 at p. 6.
See for example Consideration of the second report submitted by Bangladesh, 12th session,
Summary record of the 227th meeting, 1 February 1993, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.227, para.
58; Consideration of the initial report submitted by Iraq, 12th session, Summary record of
the 212th meeting, 20 January 1993, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.212, paras. 10, 13, 21;
Consideration of the initial report submitted by Morocco, 16th session, Summary record of
the 312th meeting, 14 January 1997, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.312, paras. 13, 18, 19.
203
article 2 have been discussed, such observations were very frequent. It is also in relation to article 2 that the majority of explicit statements with regard to the incompatibility
issue has been made.690
During the last years, the determination of the nature of reservations was made not
only by the Committees individual members, but also in the name of the Committee
as a whole, as a body. This occurred almost systematically with regard to reservations
to articles 2 and 16 and general reservations.691 However, the Committee did not
qualify as incompatible with the object and purpose of the Conventions the general
reservation of Pakistan.
Why did the Committee nd it necessary to make such determinations in relation
to reservations of some States and not of others? Are reservations based on Islam
entered by other States therefore judged compatible from the point of view of the
Committee? My suggestion is that the Committee was not fully aware of the extent of
Pakistans reservation. The use of the Constitution as a pretext for entering the
reservation and thus hiding the real reason, namely Islam, apparently played its role.
Finally, although Tunisia entered no reservation to article 2, it accompanied its
ratication of the Convention by a general declaration, which has identical or even
690
691
For example, with regard to the reservation entered by Iraq to paragraphs (f ) and (g) of
article 2 one of the members of the Committee stated that those paragraphs represented
the basic obligations of States parties, and she had serious doubts about the compatibility
between such reservations and the purpose of the Convention.: Consideration of the
initial report submitted by Iraq, 12th session, Summary record of the 212th meeting, 20
January 1993, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.212, para. 13; even more direct are remarks of
another member of the Committee with regard to the reservation entered by Bangladesh
to article 2: She urged the Government of Bangladesh to give very early consideration
to withdrawing its reservation to article 2 of the Convention, which was incompatible
with the object and purpose of the Convention. Consideration of the combined third and
fourth periodic reports submitted by Bangladesh, 17th session, Summary records of the
358th meeting, 23 July 1997, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.358, para. 12.
Consideration of the third and the combined fourth and fth periodic reports submitted by
Egypt, Advance unedited version, 2001, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/2001/I/Add.2, para.16;
Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the combined second and third
periodic reports of Iraq, Advance unedited version, 2000, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/2000/II/
Add.4, para. 21; Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the initial report
submitted by Libya, 1995, UN Doc. A/49/38, para. 179; Consideration of the combined
initial and second periodic report submitted by Malaysia, 31 May 2006, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
MYS/CO/2, para 10 at p. 2; Concluding comments of the Committee, Consideration of the
initial report submitted by Morocco, 1997, UN Doc. A/52/38/Rev.1, para. 59; Concluding
comments of the Committee, Consideration of the second periodic report by Alger, 15
February 2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/DZA/CC/2, para. 23 at p. 4; Concluding Comments of
the Committee, Consideration of the combined second and third periodic report submitted
by Maldives, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MDV/CO/3, 2 February 2007, para. 11 at p. 3; Concluding
comments of the Committee, Consideration of the initial report submitted by Syria, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/SYR/CO/1, para. 12 at p. 2; Concluding comments of the Committee,
Consideration of the initial report submitted by Mauritania, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MRT/
CO/1, 11 June 2007, para. 10 at p. 2; Concluding Comments of the Committee, Consideration
of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Niger, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
NER/CO/2, 11 June 2007, para. 9 at p. 2.
204
CHAPTER III
more far-reaching effects than reservations to article 2. The Committee did not,
however, address the issue of compatibility of this declaration. I think that it is the
general attitude of this country and practical effects of its reservations as presented
in the report, which persuaded the Committee that the declaration would not hinder
the withdrawal of reservations and full implementation of the Convention in the
near future.
Now it should be recalled that all States parties to the CEDAW those whose reservations were qualied as incompatible as well as those whose reservations were not
addressed as to their nature should be aware of the Committees opinion on reservations, their admissibility and compatibility, because the Committee expressed its view
on reservations not only in relation to each particular State during the discussion of
their periodic reports, but also in general on other occasions, independently of the
consideration of States reports.
B. Other Statements on Reservations
The Committee has been concerned with the issue of reservations from the very
beginning of its activities. Already in 1987 this concern resulted in the General
Recommendation N 4, which inter alia suggested to all States parties to reconsider their reservations if they appear incompatible with the object and purpose of
the Convention with a view to withdrawing them.692 Preoccupied with a great
number of reservations based on Islam the Committee took in the same year a
decision to request
the United Nations system as a whole, in particular the specialized agencies of the United
Nations, and the Commission on the Status of Women, to promote or undertake studies on
the status of women under Islamic laws and customs and in particular on the status and
equality of women in the family on issues such as marriage, divorce, custody and property
rights and their participation in public life of the society, taking into consideration the
principle of El Ijtihad in Islam.693
692
693
694
Report of the Committee to the General Assembly, 6th session, General Assembly Ofcial
Records, 42nd session, Supplement N 38, 1987, UN Doc. A/42/38, para. 579.
Id., para. 580 at p. 80.
Report of the Committee to the General Assembly, 11th session, General Assembly
Ofcial Records, Supplement N 38, 1992, UN Doc. A/47/38.
205
The Committee, therefore, makes it clear that reservations to article 2 and article 16
are, in its view, incompatible with the object and purpose of the Convention.
Another interesting observation made by the Committee concerns the fact that a
number of States entered reservations to some provisions of the Convention, although
they did not enter reservations to analogous provisions of other human rights treaties.
Others entered reservations to article 2 of the Convention despite the fact that their
national Constitutions or laws prohibit discrimination.698 Furthermore, the Committee
emphasized the importance of objections of other States parties not only as a means
of exerting pressure on reserving States, but also as a useful guide for the assessment
of the permissibility of a reservation by the Committee itself.699 It should be mentioned that on several occasions the Committee recalled in its statement reports of the
Special Rapporteur of the International Law Commission on the law and practice
relating to reservations to treaties. This was done in relation to such issues as options
open to a State which entered reservations, the role of the Committee and of objections to reservations by other States parties.700 The Committee agreed, in general,
with views expressed by the Special Rapporteur. However, it drew the attention of
States parties to its concern at the number and extent of impermissible reservations,
thereby emphasizing its role in the review of reservations.701
695
696
697
698
699
700
701
Report of the Committee to the General Assembly, 12th session, General Assembly
Ofcial Records, Supplement N 38, 1994, UN Doc. A/49/38 at pp. viixvi.
Report of the Committee to the General Assembly, 19th session, General Assembly Ofcial
Records, 53rd session, Supplement N 38, 1998, UN Doc. A/53/38/Rev.1, at pp. 4750.
Id., at p. 49.
Id., para. 3 at p. 47.
Id., para. 21 at p. 49.
Id., paras. 18, 21, 24 at p. 49.
Id., para. 24 at p. 49.
206
CHAPTER III
702
703
See the First Optional Protocol to the ICCPR; article 22 of the Convention against Torture and
Other Cruel, Inhuman and Degrading Treatment or Punishment; article 14 of the International
Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination; article 77 of the
International Convention on the Protection of the Rights of All Migrant Workers and Members
of Their Families. Some proposals concerning the introduction of these procedures into the
CEDAW were made already at the preparatory stage of the CEDAW itself, but did not nd
much support and had to be abandoned: see e.g. SUCHARIPA-BEHRMANN, Lilly. An Optional
Protocol to CEDAW: A Further Step Towards Strengthening of Womens Human Rights.
In: G. Hafner, G. Loibl, A. Rest, L. Sucharipa-Behrmann, K. Zemanek, eds. Liber Amicorum
Professor Seidl-Hohenveldern in honor of his 80th birthday, Hague, Boston, London:
Kluwer Law International, 1998, pp. 683698 with further references.
See, in particular, views expressed by Algeria, China, Egypt, India, Israel, Jordan, the United
States of America in their interpretative statements on the draft optional protocol to the
CEDAW contained in: Report of the Commission on the Status of Women at its forty- third
session, 112 March and 1 April 1999, UN Doc. E/1999/27, Annex II, para. 25.
207
the admissibility of communication.704 The opposite view stresses that the Committee
was not competent to take a position on the admissibility of reservations.705 At the
nal analysis one has, however, the impression that the former view is prevailing, or
at least that it would be at the Committee to nd an appropriate attitude when faced
with reservations.706
At the present stage, it is difcult to say denitely which of the two possibilities the
Committee will choose. There are, however, some indications favoring the determination of the compatibility of reservations by the Committee. Not only views expressed
by several States and international bodies during the preparation of the Optional
Protocol, but also the attitude developed by the Committee towards the issue of reservations in its practice during the last decade and the position of States parties faced
with this attitude make it difcult to imagine that after all these efforts the Committee
will suddenly choose a passive position. Moreover, the assessment made by the
Human Rights Committee as to its power to determine the nature of reservations in
the General Comment N 24 which had been recalled in connection with the elaboration of the Optional Protocol is a further argument in favor of the possibility and
necessity for the Committee to consider the nature of reservations in connection with
procedures established under the Optional Protocol.
D. Conclusions
The short overview of the Committees activities with regard to reservations shows
that the Committee is concerned with reservations and attempts by all appropriate
means to improve the situation both through recommendations, suggestions and comments as well as clear determinations. The latter were regularly used in the last years.
However, the Committee did not attempt till now to ascribe to itself or to exercise
functions which could be interpreted as an imposition of the Committees views on
States. The ways and means chosen by the Committee to deal with the problem are
rather traditional. The Committee has not yet gone so far as the Human Rights
Committee with some ideas expressed in its General Comment N 24. Nevertheless,
this very careful and diplomatic attitude of the Committee towards reservations is, at
704
705
706
208
CHAPTER III
the same time, a very active one and leads to signicant improvements. It afrms the
power of human rights treaty-monitoring bodies to determine the nature of reservations and shows the signicance of the role which these bodies, even not vested with
mandatory powers, can play in the improvement of States parties commitments under
the treaty.
707
See draft guideline 2.6.13. on time period for formulating objections and 2.6.15. on late
objections in Eleventh report, UN Doc A/CN.4/574 at pp. 46 and 52. However, the real
meaning and impact of these guidelines will become clear only after the consideration of
the issue of effects of objections, an issue which is still to be discussed by the Special
Rapporteur.
209
IV
PROMOTING THE DIALOGUE
I. APPROACHING CONCLUSIONS
The analysis made above clearly demonstrated that introduction of laws based on Islam
in relation to the status of women should not necessarily mean safeguarding and promotion of discriminatory practices and traditions. In particular in modern times, many
Muslim scholars have developed new understandings and interpretations of Islam which,
if translated into legislation, would produce rules benecial to the promotion and respect
of women, their interests and experiences. On the other hand, the realty in Muslim States
reects the conservative vision of the status of women in Islam, not only at the level of
societal practices and attitudes, but also at the ofcial, legislative level. Despite a few
exceptions in certain areas and several limited improvements, the overall evaluation of
the situation in Muslim States leaves an impression that modernist voices are not heard
in Muslim States. As a consequence, the question about reasons for this exclusion of
modernist voices from the ofcial discourse in Muslim States arises. A detailed answer
to this question goes beyond the scope of the present research. However, identication
of some general tendencies and most important reasons is necessary.
Factors preventing wider dissemination and acceptance of modernist women-friendly
understandings of Islam in Muslim States can be divided into two large groups. The
rst group encompasses the so-called internal factors which by denition originate in
Muslim communities and States themselves. The second group includes external
factors, including possible inuences of international and more specically human
rights law. This latter group of factors relates to the question of the role of human rights
law and international law more generally in the process of interaction between the
CEDAW as the international instrument on womens rights and Islam and will therefore be discussed in more detail below using results of the analysis made in previous
chapters.
A detailed analysis of the situation not only at the ofcial level of governments and
politics in Muslim States but also at the level of historical traditions and religious
212
CHAPTER IV
708
709
710
213
711
712
713
714
715
Leading dualists include Heinrich Triepel and Dionisiio Anzilotti: TRIEPEL, Heinrich.
Vlkerrecht und Landesrecht, Leipzig: Hirschfeldt, 1899; ANZELOTTI, Dionisio. Corso di
diritto internazionale. Vol. I: Introduzione e teorie generali, Roma: Athenaum, 3d edition,
1928. For a general presentation of monism and dualism see STARKE, Joseph Gabriel.
Monism and Dualism in the Theory of International Law. 17 BYbIL 66 (1936).
Main representatives of this theory are Hans Kelsen, Alfred Verdross, Hirsch Lauterpacht:
KELSEN, Hans. General Theory of Law and State. Cambridge: Harvard University Press
1945, pp. 363 80; VERDROSS, Alfred. Die Einheit des rechtlichen Weltbildes auf Grundlage
der Vlkerrechtsverfassung. Thbingen: Mohr, 1923; LAUTERPACHT, Hirsch. International
law and Human Rights. New York: Praeger, 1950.
For a presentation and analysis of the issue of relationship between international law and
municipal legal orders see e.g. FITZMAURICE, Gerald G. The General Principles of
International Law Considered from the Standpoint of the Rule of Law. 92 RdC 1957 (II),
pp. 7080.
See e.g. FITZMAURICE, loc.cit. above fn. 713; FROWEIN, Joachim. Treaty-Making Power in
the Federal Republic of Germany. in:. Jacobs, Francis G., Roberts, Shelly, eds. The Effect
of Treaties in Domestic Law. London: Sweet & Maxwell, 1987, at p. 63; GEIGER, Rudolph.
Grundgesetz und Vlkerrecht. Munich: Beck, 2002, at p. 14.
See e.g. BROWNLIE, Ian. Principles of Public International Law. Oxford: Oxford University
Press, 6th edition, 2003, chapter 2;. CASSESE, Antonio. International Law. Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 2002, chapter 8; SHAW, Malcolm. International Law. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 4th edition, 1997, chapter 4.
214
CHAPTER IV
In this connection, from the point of view of international law, the central general
principle is that a State may not invoke provisions of its internal law as a justication for its failure to comply with its international obligations.716 Thus, once it is
clearly established that a State has assumed a particular obligation under international law, the State theoretically cannot escape compliance with this obligation and
has to introduce necessary changes into its municipal legal order. On the other hand,
international law has very few means at its disposal not only to ensure compliance
in case of breaches, but also to determine formally and unambiguously the existence
of such a breach.
I will briey recall the situation resulting from the participation of Muslim States
in the CEDAW. By becoming parties to human rights treaty States by denition
undertake an obligation to ensure a certain treatment of individuals in their internal
legal orders. This may also require under certain circumstances to introduce a series
of legislative changes. Muslim States whose participation in the CEDAW has been
analyzed above however made their participation in the treaty subject to reservations.
By a way of simplication one can say that reservations express the belief of governments of these States that national legislation based on Islam although sometimes
appearing discriminatory against women is at the nal analysis not contradictory to
the requirements of the CEDAW because the relevant legislative provisions in their
entirety strike the necessary equitable balance between different rights and obligations
of men and women. The position of some States would go so far as to imply that even
when certain contradictions between municipal law based on Islam and the CEDAW are
present, the municipal law may not be modied because it is based on divine immutable and unchangeable injunctions. Rules of international law permit participation in a
treaty with reservations. From a purely formal point of view and as a matter of general
principle Muslim States, as all other States, are entitled to become parties to a treaty
with reservations permitting them to disregard certain requirements of this treaty and
thus protecting their legislation from some changes.
The principle embodied in article 27 of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties
prohibiting States from using their internal legislation as a justication for a failure to
perform their international obligations refers to already existing obligations of a State.
The practice of entering reservations occurs at the preliminary stage to the actual establishment of obligations with regard to the State and serves the purpose to exclude certain
provisions from the set of obligations by which the State will become bound. On the
other hand, since the very purpose of the CEDAW is modication of national legislation
of States parties in a certain manner, the question of compatibility of reservations entered
by Muslim States may arise, which is distinct from a simple prohibition to use municipal
law as a justication for a failure to perform an already assumed obligation. In this sense
716
This principle is codied in article 27 of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties.
It is also reected in article 13 of the Declaration on the Rights and Duties of States
of 1949 (GA resolution 375 (IV) ) and has been reafrmed in jurisprudence: Alabama
Claims Arbitration (1 International Arbitrations 1872, especially p. 656); Exchange of
Greek and Turkish Populations Case, Advisory Opinion (P.C.I.J. Reports, Series B, N 10,
1925, p. 20).
215
reference to the impossibility for a State to invoke its internal laws made in many
objections to reservations of Muslim States is unjustied and misplaced.
Apart from the fact that, as has been shown above, it is not at all clear who and how
is entitled in international law to determine the nature of reservations, the question of
the consequences of such a determination is not at all clear. Should the existing
international law procedures and mechanisms despite all deciencies generate a determination of the nature of a reservation and its consequences, as for example in the
case of an individual complaint against Trinidad and Tobago717, what can international
law do to ensure compliance with the determination? What means has international
law at its disposal to deal, for example, with States parties to the CEDAW which do
not comply with its reporting obligations and thus despite the existence of the formal
act of adherence to the Convention actually remain outside of its regime? All these
questions demonstrate in the rst place the inability of traditional international law to
resolve possible conicts between municipal and international legal orders even at a
purely theoretical level.
B. Situation with the Municipal Law of Muslim States
In practical terms, what is relevant in the case of conicts between international
obligations of a State and its national legislation, is on the one hand, the ways in which
municipal law itself deals with such conicts and, on the other hand, the ability of and
means by which international law determines a breach and ensures compliance.
Thus, as a next step, it is necessary to inquire about ways used by municipal law to
deal with a States international treaty obligations and possible conicts. A treaty
becomes internationally binding on a State through one of the procedures described in
articles 11-16 of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties. The fact that a State
is internationally bound by a treaty, more concretely a human rights treaty, does not
necessarily mean at the same time that any individual feeling that his or her rights as
guaranteed by this treaty are violated can invoke this treaty against the authorities of
the State at a domestic level. In some States the simple fact that a treaty became binding internationally is not sufcient for provisions of this treaty to acquire domestic
validity. National legislation of such States requires in addition the adoption of special
legislation which will transform provisions of an international treaty into provisions of
domestic law.718 Furthermore, even in States where national law does not require adoption of special legislation these States have developed a concept of non-self-executing
treaties. This concept describes treaties which despite the general rule about direct
717
718
See the presentation and short analysis of this case above Chapter Two, III.C.1.b).
In international law literature States whose national laws require this transformation of
provisions of international treaties into provisions of national law are known as dualist
States. In contrast, those States were the simple fact of a treaty being internationally
binding on a State is sufcient to make its provisions valid domestically are called monist
States. See e.g. JACOBS, Francis G., ROBERTS, Shelly, eds. The Effect of Treaties in Domestic
Law. London: Sweet & Maxwell, 1987 and the presentation of monist and dualist theories
few paragraphs earlier. In this connection it is interesting to recall the following statement
made by Judge Rosalyn Higgins in her famous book:
216
CHAPTER IV
719
720
721
722
The domestic court may be faced with a difcult question, when the domestic law
which is its day-to-day task to apply entails a violation of an international obligation.
Domestic courts do address that problem differently. Leaving the theoretical aspects aside
for a moment, it is as a practical matter difcult to persuade a nation court to apply
international law, rather than the domestic, if there appears to be a clash between the two.
But it is more possible in some quarters than in others. And, although I have sympathy
with the view of those who think the monist-dualist debate is pass, I also think it right that
the difference in response to a clash of international law and domestic law in various
domestic courts is substantially conditioned by whether the country concerned is monist or
dualist in its approach.
In: HIGGINS, Rosalyn. Problems and Process International Law and How We Use It.
Oxford: Clarendon, 1994, pp. 206207.
For a detailed discussion of this concept see e. g. BUERGENTHAL, Thomas. Self-Executing
and Non-Self-Executing Treaties in National and International Law. 235 RdC 1992 (IV),
pp. 307400; IWASAWA, Yuji. The Doctrine of Self-Executing Treaties in the United States:
A Critical Analysis. in: 26 VJIL 1986, pp. 627697.
In many other Muslim States the situation is similar: an international treaty becomes
binding as part of national legislation of the country upon its ratication and ofcial
publication. See e.g. Combined Fourth and Fifth periodic report of Egypt submitted on
30 March 2000, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/EGY/4-5, p. 25; Second periodic report of Jordan
submitted on 26 October 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/JOR/2, para. 2, p. 5; Second periodic
report of Libya submitted on 15 March 1999, CEDAW/C/LBY/2, p. 4. One should not
however, overestimate the apparent simplicity and therefore quickness with which
international obligations can be transformed into domestic laws. Thus, Jordan stated in its
second periodic report the following: It should be mentioned that as of the drafting of this
report, the necessary formalities for the Conventions publication in the Ofcial Gazette and
for it to become legally binding had not all been completed. (Second periodic report of
Jordan submitted on 26 October 1999, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/JOR/2, para. 2, p. 5).
Initial Report of Algeria submitted on 1 September 1998, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/DZA/1,
para. 3.2, p. 8.
Id. This principle was also conrmed in a decision of Constitutional Council of 20 August
1989.
217
723
724
725
726
Combined Third and Fourth periodic report of Bangladesh submitted on 1 April 1997, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/BGD/3-4, para. 2.1.2, p. 24.
Id., pp. 2425.
Combined Fourth and Fifth periodic report of Egypt submitted on 30 March 2000, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/EGY/4-5, pp. 24.25.
Combined Fourth and Fifth periodic report of Egypt submitted on 30 March 2000, UN
Doc. CEDAW/C/EGY/4-5, p. 25.
218
CHAPTER IV
principal source of legislation.727 It follows from this provision that any law which is
not in conformity with the principles of the Sharia can be declared null and void by
the Constitutional Court.728 Furthermore, reservations entered by Egypt to the CEDAW
are aimed in the rst place to preserve certain provisions of Egyptian family law based
on Sharia. It is therefore to a certain extent hypocritical to state that provisions of the
Convention acquire the status of highest legal authority of the same level as the
Constitution. At the nal analysis, everything will depend on the attitude of judges of
the Constitutional Court, on their openness to new interpretations and new visions of
Islamic law.
Many States do not address the question of the relationship between national
legislation and international treaty obligations at all, because for them it is simply
impossible to envisage a possibility that some external, secular standards can take
precedence over what they believe or assume to be religious precepts. However, some
States express this idea openly.729 Being framed in religious terms and being closely
linked to the religious life of Muslim communities the issue of womens rights should
be addressed as a religious one. It is counterproductive for the improvement of the situation of people who suffer from violations of their rights or do not have rights simply
to insist on compliance with human rights standards without paying due attention to
internal religious and other factors. Being faced with a pressure of unconditional and
immediate compliance, many Muslim States will simply withdraw from participation
in a particular human rights regime because national and religious considerations are
more important to them than the immediate compliance with human rights standards.
This withdrawal will not always be expressed in clear terms. A sign of such a withdrawal may also be the silence of the State ignoring all requirements of an international
regime, either substantial or procedural. As a result, international law will lose all
possibilities to inuence the situation in the State and therefore also to help individuals
living in inadequate conditions and suffering from the lack of human rights.
The analysis of the reservations regime and in particular of the practice developed
in the context of reservations entered by Muslim States to the CEDAW has demonstrated
this in the context of participation of States in human rights treaties. The rst step,
727
728
729
219
namely the entering of reservations itself, is already a means for States to avoid
possible conicts and escape the claim of international law that national legislation
should be brought in conformity with international standards. Despite a theoretical
possibility that a reservation can be declared incompatible and the State will nd itself
bound by the entire treaty, the reservation is still the best way to protect domestic
legislation from immediate and undesirable modications. In such cases the treatymonitoring body is not able not only to require States and pressure them to comply
with the reserved provisions, but even its competence to make a denitive and
mandatory determination of the nature of the reservation is not clearly established.
There is no other agency or procedure which could realistically fulll these functions.
In the case of a too high pressure on a reserving State to withdraw the reservation and
amend its legislation which can be exercised by other States parties or by the treatymonitoring body the response is the withdrawal from the treaty regime. The best
example in this connection is the situation which occurred around the proposed
modication of the initial reservation by Malaysia.730 After a period of silence during
which no report was submitted Malaysia acceded the CEDAW on 5 July 1995 the
government of Malaysia proposed a modication of its initial reservation on 6 February
1998. Although this new proposed text of the reservation demonstrated not only the
willingness of this State to limit the scope of its initial reservation, but also to explain in
more detail the reasons behind the remaining reservations, the modication was not
formally accepted due to an objection and lack of clarity concerning exact rules applicable to such cases. This attempted modication was a clear sign from the State of its
willingness to comply with reporting obligations and the fact that it takes its obligations
under the CEDAW seriously. However, after the modication was rejected, the government of Malaysia again took its initial passive position expressed through silence and
non-submission of periodic reports. A breakthrough was possible thanks to a change in
the attitude of the CEDAW Committee who was able to demonstrate its recognition of
the partial withdrawal despite possible theoretical impediments.
It should, however, be mentioned that no State party to the CEDAW formally
terminated its participation in the Convention. Rather, this withdrawal from the treaty
regime takes either a form of silent ignorance expressed in the rst place through
non-submission of periodic reports, as in the case of Malaysia, or through more indirect means of supercial reporting and avoiding of sensitive issues, as in the case of
Saudi Arabia.
Thus, international and human rights law procedures and mechanisms are not able
to resolve the conicts existing in this area between international standards and
internal law in a traditional legalistic way by simply choosing between right
and wrong and forcing the wrongdoer to change his/her behavior. At the same
time it should be noted that a simple imposition of a particular view of what is right,
correct or good on somebody who does not accept this vision of right, correct
or good would run against the ideas and principles of the human rights law itself.
730
Some legal aspects of this situation are presented and analyzed above in Chapter Three,
I.A.1.(i).
220
CHAPTER IV
Since, as has been stated above, the present research addresses in the rst place the
position of those who really believe that Islam, their religion requires them to behave
in a certain way,731 in order to be effective and persuasive on a long term human rights
law, while looking for possibilities and ways of improving the situation of women,
should respect their opinions and beliefs.
In the light of the above-made remarks, what methods should human rights law
choose, what attitudes should be adopted in order to address effectively such conicts
and resolve them in a way most favorable to the improvement of the situation of
victims, of those who suffer?
III. SUGGESTIONS
A. Summary of the Analysis
My suggestions are based on the above made analysis of the nature and structure of
human rights law, of the articulation and formulation of womens interests by
women themselves, and of the nature and internal possibilities of reformation of
Islam. The last two, namely womens interests and Islam are regarded in this
research as two forces, actors which come into contact in the area of human rights
of women, an area which forms part of general international law. Both have certain
interests and claims, partially contradictory and competing in the same area of
human rights. International law in general and human rights law in particular appears
to be an arena for the discussion and negotiation of these claims. This negotiation in
the arena of human rights law is not a completely spontaneous and free process but
is subject to certain rules and limitations formalized in rst place by general international law. In order to make valuable and effective suggestions for the improvement of the interaction of these three elements, their peculiarities and individual
possibilities shall be taken into account.
As far as womens interests are concerned, the analysis demonstrated their
multifaceted diversity and constant development. Although some common general
characteristics can be identied, the growing diversity and dynamic change are more
and more visible particularly at the procedural level. To put it differently, each category or group of women has its own experience and conditions of life. In order to
respond adequately to their interests any change should be undertaken with particular
attention to their personal, specic experiences and conditions. In relation to human
rights law this requires, as feminist authors stressed, a great margin of exibility of
human rights law norms and procedures. From this point of view feminist scholars
would require the formulation of rather open-ended rules, in order to be able to take
into account specic circumstances of new cases. For a positivist lawyer this would
raise the question of predictability which from the positivist point of view is one of the
central characteristics of a legal system. However, human rights law itself developed
731
It should always be kept in mind that among these Muslims who believe in the Islamic
character of certain discriminatory practices are not only men, but also many women.
221
222
CHAPTER IV
seen in the different attitudes of States parties which are modied by the distinct
character of human rights obligations the absence of reciprocity and the regime of
human rights treaties as a whole. An important factor which should be recalled again
is the specic nature of many human rights treaty obligations. These obligations have
been described above as soft obligations of means. In relation to the provisions of
the CEDAW they are marked by the requirement to take all appropriate measures in
order to achieve certain goals without identifying what this appropriateness should
mean. This leaves a signicant freedom to States themselves in their appreciation of
what is appropriate. On the other hand, a treaty-monitoring body can directly inuence the process of progressive adjustment of the situation in a particular State to
the requirements of the human rights treaty. This also gives the possibility to negotiate
the best possible solution for each particular State, a solution which takes into account
peculiarities of the situation in this State.
Furthermore, it should also be recalled that provisions of human rights treaties are
not xed by the meaning originally attributed to them by States parties, but evolve
over time.
In the context of the reservations practice this orientation towards an evolving
negotiative process and dynamic change instead of insistence on alleged ultimate
authentic truth reveals its effectiveness in achieving improvement of the situation with
human rights in individual States.
B. Proposals
It is on the basis of these general conclusions derived from the above-made analysis
that I formulate some suggestions for the improvement of the effectiveness of the
work of treaty-monitoring bodies and human rights law in general. Before I come to
the presentation of these proposals, I would like to emphasize that the effectiveness of
human rights law is understood here as an improvement of the situation of ordinary
individuals, as a development benecial to victims. By victims I mean here persons
who suffer as a result of lack of or insufciency in protection of their human rights.
The criminal law approach which often dominates the human rights law discourse and
is associated with the necessity to identify cases of human rights violations and those
responsible for such violations is rejected as counterproductive.
Treaty-monitoring bodies established under various human rights treaties can play the
central role in the achievement of the effectiveness of human rights law. In this connection
particular attention should be paid to the safeguard of their independence, impartiality,
and competence. A treaty-monitoring body should not necessarily have power to take
binding decisions; it should not become another dictator and colonizer. More important
is its ability to provide States and other concerned bodies with a possibility for discussion, its ability to open a space for a dialogue. In fullling this function the independent
body in the context of treaties it would be a treaty monitoring body should attempt to
provide the widest possible palette of views by inviting NGOs, international organizations
and individuals to give their opinions on issues under consideration. Such a procedure,
if organized adequately, can provide international bodies as well as States and other
actors with a unique opportunity to negotiate their claims. In order to fulll this function
effectively the body shall take into account several considerations.
223
First of all, its working methods should be oriented towards questioning, inquiry
rather than teaching and imposition of its own views and interpretations.
The widest possible range of actors should be invited to give their opinions and
included into the dialogue. In this process the inclusion of voices of victims and other
affected persons, communities, entities is crucial. Therefore, any work on human
rights issues should not be a domain reserved almost exclusively to lawyers. In order
to fully understand the widest possible range of implications and factors the qualication
and knowledge of specialists from other elds should also be implicated.
The work of treaty-monitoring bodies should not be isolated. Other measures
should also be taken simultaneously at international and national levels.
In particular, interdependence of rights should become not only a slogan in
international documents and a subject for scholarly research, but a part of the daily
work of human rights bodies.
In sum, human rights law and international law in general should be more process
oriented than rule centered. Human rights are only an ideal; nobody respects all human
rights everywhere. And how can we be sure that what is dened as human rights in
modern treaties is really the best way of life for everybody and everywhere? Rules,
provisions of treaties at least most of them should be regarded as goals and law be
seen as a process which regulates the move towards these goals, providing the space
for negotiation and dialogue. The effectiveness of this process-oriented approach has
been proven in the context of the reservations practice to the CEDAW.
It is important that both the feminist scholarship and a signicant part of Islamic
tradition also advocate this process-oriented vision of law which, although having
some basic substantial rules, is not limited by those rules. Rules are rather regarded as
an expression of fundamental principles and goals, as an orientation. The ultimate goal
for both is to nd the best solution in each concrete situation. What they are looking
for, is the closest possible approximation of justice in each concrete case. Rules are
there to orient this search for best possible solutions. In contrast, international lawyers
in their traditional work are concerned with rules, objectivity, security of law, but
much less with justice. In the context of human rights treaties the situation is slightly
different. Thus, in the context of practice of reservations to the CEDAW based on
Islam, the orientation towards a negotiative process is also intuitively chosen as a
response to ambiguities and arising conicts of interests in the context of the
reservations regime. Is it because of the interaction of both actors which have tradition
of such process-oriented approach to law? Can we seriously expect that human rights
law will choose this negotiative process as an integral working method? No clear
answer to this latter question can be given today.732 However, it will to a very great
extent depend on general international law.
732
In the area of human rights law one also can nd examples of attitudes which demonstrate
preference for formalism and dogmatism even at the expense of coherence and promotion
of human rights. The most striking example from an area which again brings women and
Islam together is consideration by the EuCtHR of various cases related to the issue of
Islamic veil. It is impossible to go here into detail of these cases and of the question of
veiling. However, the attitude of the Court when it simply attributes to the practice
224
CHAPTER IV
225
rules, they would rather adjust reality to imagined rules, in order to prove that the rule
is still valid, than to adjust rules to reality in order to make the rule more adequate and
able to respond to the needs of reality. While studying international law, one often has
the impression to be in a science-ction story, where ction dominates science; that
international lawyers are those who dene international law and not the practice
of States. In their fanatic defense of allegedly inviolable rules of international law,
international lawyers are very similar to traditionalist Muslim authors, who prevent
by all available means the spread of new ideas and developments.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
I. DOCUMENTS
A. ILC
1. Reservations to Treaties
a) Reports by the Special Rapporteur
First Report on the Law and Practice Relating to Reservations to Treaties. Preliminary Report
by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/470, 47th session of the ILC, 30 May 1995.
Second Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/477,
48th session of the ILC, Geneva, 21 May 1996.
Second Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapposteur, A/CN.4/477/
Add.1, Unity or Diversity of the Legal Regime for Reservations to Treaties (reservations to
human rights treaties), 48th session of the ILC, Geneva, 13 June 1996.
Third Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/491,
50th session of the ILC, Geneva, 30 April 1998.
Third Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/491/Add.1, Denition of Reservations to Treaties (and of Interpretative
Declarations), 50th session of the ILC, Geneva, 5 May 1998.
Third Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/491/Add.2, The Denition of Reservations Tested in Practice, Judicial Decisions
and Doctrine, 50th session of the ILC, Geneva, 22 May 1998.
Third Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/491/Add.3, Persistent Problems With Denitions, 50th session of the ILC, Geneva,
19 June 1998.
Third Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/491/Add.4, The Distinction Between Reservations and Interpretative Declarations,
50th session of the ILC, Geneva, 2 July 1998.
Fourth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/499,
51st session of the ILC, Geneva, 25 March 1999.
Fifth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/508,
52nd session of the ILC, Geneva, 29 March 2000.
Fifth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/508/Add.1, Alternatives to Reservations and Interpretative Declarations, 52nd session of the ILC, Geneva, 1 May 2000.
Fifth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum, A/
CN.4/508/Add.3, Procedure Regarding Reservations and Interpretative Declarations, 52nd
session of the ILC, Geneva, 23 June 2000.
Fifth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/508/Add.4, Procedure Regarding Reservations and Interpretative Declarations
(continued), 52nd session of the ILC, Geneva, 7 July 2000.
Sixth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, A/CN.4/518,
53rd session of the ILC, Geneva, 3 May 2001.
Sixth Report on Reservations to Treaties by Alain Pellet, Special Rapporteur, Addendum,
A/CN.4/518/Add.1, Formulation, Modication and Withdrawal of Reservations and
Interpretative Declarations (continued), 53rd session of the ILC, Geneva, 21 May 2001.
228
BIBLIOGRAPHY
BIBLIOGRAPHY
229
2501st Meeting, 27 June 1997, 49th Session, The law and practice relating to reservations to
treaties, Second Report of the Special Rapporteur, YbILC 1997, Vol. I, pp. 188197
2502nd Meeting, 1 July 1997, 49th Session, The law and practice relating to reservations to
treaties, Second Report of the Special Rapporteur, YbILC 1997, Vol. I, pp. 197207
2503rd Meeting, 2 July 1997, 49th Session, The law and practice relating to reservations to
treaties, Second Report of the Special Rapporteur, YbILC 1997, Vol. I, pp. 207212
2. Law of Treaties
Report of the ILC to the General Assembly, Third Session of the ILC, Document A/1858,
YbILC 1951, Vol. II, pp. 123144
Report on the Law of Treaties by G.G. Fitzmaurice, Special Rapporteur, Document A/
CN.4/101, YbILC 1956, Vol. II, pp. 104128
First Report on the Law of Treaties by Sir Humphrey Waldock, Special Rapporteur, Document
A/CN.4/144, YbILC 1962, Vol. II, pp. 2770
Fourth Report on the Law of Treaties by Sir Humphrey Waldock, Special Rapporteur,
Document A/CN.4/177 and Add.1 and 2, YbILC 1965, Vol. II, pp. 356
Report of the ILC to the General Assembly, Eighteenth Session of the ILC, Law of Treaties,
Comment to draft articles, YbILC 1966, Vol. II, pp. 189190 & 202209 in particular.
United Nations Conference on the Law of Treaties. First Session, Vienna, 26 March 24 May
1968. Ofcial Records. Summary Records of the Plenary Meetings and of the Meetings of
the Committee as a Whole (UN Doc A/CONF.39/11)
United Nations Conference on the Law of Treaties. Second Session, Vienna, 9 April 22 May
1969. Ofcial Records. Summary Records of the Plenary Meetings and of the Meetings of
the Committee as a Whole (UN Doc A/CONF.39/11/Add.1)
United Nations Conference on the Law of Treaties. First and Second Sessions. Ofcial Records.
Documents of the Conference (UN Doc A/CONF.39/11/Add.2)
230
BIBLIOGRAPHY
BIBLIOGRAPHY
231
Report of the Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women, 15th session,
General Assembly Ofcial Records, 51st session, Supplement N 38, 1996, UN Doc.
A/51/38
Report of the Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women, 16th and 17th
sessions, General Assembly Ofcial Records, 52nd session, Supplement N 38, 1997, UN
Doc. A/52/38/Rev.1
Report of the Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women, 18th and 19th
sessions, General Assembly Ofcial Records, 53rd session, Supplement N 38, 1998, UN
Doc. A/53/38/Rev.1
Report of the Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women, 20th and 21st
sessions, General Assembly Ofcial Records, 54th session, Supplement N 38, 1999, UN
Doc. A/54/38/Rev.1
232
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Kuwait, 30th session, Summary records of the 634th meeting, 15 January 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.634
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Kuwait, 30th session, Summary records of the 635th meeting, 15 January 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.635
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Kuwait, 30th session, Summary records of the 642nd meeting, 22 January 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.642
Consideration of the fth periodic report submitted by Bangladesh, 31st session, Summary
records of the 654th meeting, 9 July 2004, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.654
Consideration of the second periodic report submitted by Alger, 32nd session, Summary
records of the 667th meeting, 11 January 2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.667
Consideration of the second periodic report submitted by Alger, 32nd session, Summary
records of the 668th meeting, 11 January 2005, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.668
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Malaysia, 35th
session, Summary records of the 731st meeting, 24 May 2006, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
SR.731
Consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report submitted by Malaysia, 35th
session, Summary records of the 732nd meeting, 24 May 2006, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
SR.732
Consideration of the combined second and third periodic report submitted by Maldives, 37th
session, Summary records of the 763d meeting, 19 January 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.763
(B)
Consideration of the combined second and third periodic report submitted by Maldives, 37th
session, Summary records of the 764th meeting, 19 January 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
SR.764 (B)
Consideration of the combined initial, second and third periodic report submitted by Pakistan,
38th session, Summary records of the 781st meeting, 22 May 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
SR.781
Consideration of the combined initial, second and third periodic report submitted by Pakistan,
38th session, Summary records of the 782nd meeting, 22 May 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/
SR.782
Consideration of the combined initial report submitted by Syria, 38th session, Summary records
of the 785th meeting, 24 May 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.785
Consideration of the combined initial report submitted by Syria, 38th session, Summary records
of the 786th meeting, 24 May 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/SR.786
BIBLIOGRAPHY
233
Responses to the list of issues and question for consideration of the combined second and third
periodic report of Maldives, 27 September 2006, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MDV/Q/3/Add.1
Responses to the list of issues and question for consideration of the initial report of Mauritania,
27 April 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MRT/Q/1/Add.1
Responses to the list of issues and question for consideration of the combined third and fourth
report of Morocco, 15 November 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/MAR/Q/4/Add.1
Responses to the list of issues and question for consideration of the initial and second periodic
report of Niger, 20 February 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/NER/Q/2/Add.1
Responses to the list of issues and question for consideration of the initial, second and third
periodic report of Pakistan, 1 March 2007, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/PAK/Q/3/Add.1
Responses to the list of issues and questions for consideration of the combined initial and second periodic report of Saudi Arabia, 18 December 2007, CEDAW/C/SAU/Q/2, UN Doc.
CEDAW/C/SAU/Q/2/Add.1
Responses to the list of issues and questions for consideration of the initial periodic report of
Syria, 2 March 2007, UN Doc.CEDAW/C/SYR/Q/1/Add.1
2. Miscellaneous
Status of the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against Women.
Report of the Secretary-General, 7 October 1986, UN Doc. A/41/608 and Addendum,
23 October 1986, UN Doc. A/41/608/Add.1
234
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Guidelines for Preparation of Reports by States Parties, 26 July 1996, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/7/
Rev.3
Reservations to the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against
Women. Report by the Secretariat, 12 November 1996, UN Doc. CEDAW/C/1997/4
CEDAW, The Optional Protocol: Text and Materials. United Nations, 2000, UN Publication
Sales N E.00.IV.2 ISBN 92-1-130202-1
Rules of Procedure of the Committee on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against
Women, 27 November 2001, UN Doc. A/56/38
D. Others
Report of the World Conference of the International Womens Year, Mexico City, 19 June 2
July 1975, UN Doc. E/CONF.66/34, United Nations Publications Sales Number E.76.IV.1
Practice of the Secretary-General in his Capacity as Depositary of Multilateral Treaties
Regarding (1) Reservations and Objections to Reservations Relating to Treaties not
Containing Provisions in that Respect (2) Correction of Errors in the Original of a Treaty.
Aide Memoire. 1976 United Nations Judicial Yearbook, pp. 2092119
United Nations Human Rights Committee General Comment N 24(52) relating to reservations, 2 November 1994, adopted at 1382nd meeting (52nd session), UN Doc. CCPR/C/21/
Rev.1/Add.6
United Kingdoms Observations on General Comment N 24, Report of the Human Rights
Committee to the General Assembly, 1996, General Assembly Ofcial Records, 50th
Session, Supplement N 40, A/50/40, Annex VI, Section B, pp. 130134
United States Observations on General Comment N 24, Report of the Human Rights
Committee to the General Assembly, 1996, General Assembly Ofcial Records, Supplement
N 40, A/50/40, pp. 126129
French Memorandum on General Comment N 24, Report of the Human Rights Committee to
the General Assembly, 1997, General Assembly Ofcial Records, 51st Session, Supplement
N 40, A/51/40, pp. 104106
State Obligations, Indicators, Benchmarks and the Right to Education, Background paper submitted by Paul Hunt, Committee on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights, ECOSOC, UN
Doc. E/C.12/1998/11, 16 July 1998
Reservations to Human Rights Treaties. Working Paper Submitted by Ms. Franoise Hampson
Pursuant to Sub-Commissions Decision 1998/113, 28 June 1999, UN Doc. E/CN.4/
Sub.2/1999/28
Reservations to Human Rights Treaties. Expanded Working Paper Submitted by Ms. Franoise
Hampson Pursuant to Sub-Commissions Decision 1998/113, UN Doc. E/CN.4/
Sub.2/2002/34
Reservations to Human Right Treaties. Final working paper submitted by Ms. Franoise
Hampson Pursuant to Sub-Commissions Decision 1998/113, UN Doc. E/CN.4/
Sub.2/2004/42
Compilation of General Comments and General Recommendations adopted by Human Rights
Treaty Bodies. 8 May 2006, UN Doc. HRI/GEN/1/Rev.8
The Status of Women in Iraq: An Assessment of Iraqs De Jure and De Facto Compliance with
International Legal Standards, Iraq Legal Development Project, American Bar Association,
July 2005 and Update 2006 available at http://www.abanet.org/rol/publications/iraq_status_
of_women_2005_english.pdf and http://www.abanet.org/rol/publications/iraq_status_of_
women_update_2006.pdf
BIBLIOGRAPHY
235
Reservations to the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide.
Advisory Opinion of May 28, 1951, ICJ Reports, 1951, pp. 1569
Case of Certain Norwegian Loans. France v. Norway. Judgement of July 6, 1957, ICJ Reports,
1957, pp. 8100
North See Continental Shelf Cases. Federal Republic of Germany v. Denmark; Federal
Republic of Germany v. Netherlands. Judgement of February 20, 1969, ICJ Reports, 1969,
pp. 1257
Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo (New Application: 2002) (Democratic Republic
of the Congo v. Rwanda), Provisional Measures, Order of 10 July 2002, I.C.J. Reports 2002
Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo (New Application: 2002) (Democratic Republic
of the Congo v. Rwanda), Judgement of 3 February 2006, available at http://www.icj-cij.org
D. Others
Alabama Claims Arbitration, 1 International Arbitrations 1872
Case Concerning the Delimitation of the Continental Shelf Between the United Kingdom of
Great Britain and Northern Ireland, and the French Republic, Decision of 30 June 1977,
XVIII RIAA, pp. 3126
Application N 788/60, Austria v. Italy, EuComHR, YbEuCHR 1961, pp. 116183
Application N 9940/82, France v. Turkey, EuComHR, 26 YbEuCHR 1983, pp. 132
Communication N 845/1999: Trinidad and Tobago, Decision of the HRC under the Optional
Protocol to the ICCPR, 67th Session, 31 December 1999, UN Doc. CCPR/C/67/D/845/1999
III. BOOKS
ABD AL ATI, HAMMUDAH. The Family Structure in Islam. American Trust Publications, 1977
ABOU EL FADL, KHALED M. And God Knows the Soldiers: The Authoritative and Authoritarian
in Islamic Discourses. Lanham, New York, Oxford: University Press of America, 2001
ABOU EL FADL, KHALED M. Conference of the Books: The Search for Beauty in Islam. Lanham,
New York, Oxford: University of America Press, 2001
ABOU EL FADL, KHALED M. Speaking in Gods Name: Islamic Law, Authority and Women.
Oxford: Oneworld Publications, 2001
ADAMS, KRISTINE, BYRNES, ANDREW, eds. Gender Equality and the Judiciary: Using International
Human Rights Standards to Promote the Human Rights of Women and the Girl-Child at the
236
BIBLIOGRAPHY
National Level. Papers and Statements from the Caribbean Regional Judicial Colloquium
Georgetown, Guyana, 1417 April 1997, London: Commonwealth Secretariat, 1999
AFKHAMI, MAHNAZ, ed. Faith and Freedom: Womens Human Rights in the Muslim World.
Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1995
AFKHAMI, MAHNAZ, FRIEDL ERIKA, eds. Muslim Women and the Politics of Participation:
Implementing the Beijing Platform. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1997
AHMED, LEILA. Women and Gender in Islam: Historical Roots of a Modern Debate. New Haven:
Yale University Press, 1992
ALFREDSSON, GUDMUNDUR, TOMASEVSKI, KATARINA, eds. A Thematic Guide to Documents on the
Human Rights of Women: Global and Regional Standards Adopted by Intergovernmental
Organizations, International Non-Governmental Organizations and Professional
Associations. The Hague, Boston, London: Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1995
ALI, SHAHEEN SARDAR. Gender and Human Rights in Islam and International Law: Equal
Before Allah, Unequal Before Man? The Hague, Boston, London: Kluwer Law International,
2000
AL-MISRI, AHMAD IBN NAQIB. Reliance of the Traveller: A Classic Manual of Islamic Sacred
Law. Beltsville: Amana Publications, Revised Edition 1994
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED, GORT, JERALD D., JANSEN, HENRY, VROOM, HENDRIK M.,
eds. Human Rights and Religious Values: An Uneasy Relationship? Amsterdam: Editions
Rodopi, 1994
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED, ed. Human Rights in Cross-Cultural Perspectives: A Quest for
Consensus. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1992
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED. Toward an Islamic Reformation: Civil Liberties, Human Rights,
and International Law. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1996
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED, ed. Islamic Family Law in a Changing World: A Global Resource
Book. London, New York: Zed Books, 2002
ANZELOTTI, DIONISIO. Corso di diritto internazionale. Vol. I: Introduzione e teorie generali,
Roma: Athenaum, 3d edition, 1928
ASCHA, GHASSAN. Mariage, Polygamie et Rpudiation en Islam: Justications des auteurs
arabo-musulmans contemporains. Paris, Montreal: LHarmattan, 1997
ASHRAFI, TALAT ARA. Muslim Women in Changing Perspective. New Delhi: Commonwealth
Publishers, 1993
ASKIN, KELLY D., KOENIG, DOREAN M., eds. Women and International Human Rights Law. Vol.
IIII, Ardsley: Transnational Publishers Inc., 19992001
AZIMI, MOHAMMAD MUSTAFA. Studies in Early Hadith Literature. Indianapolis: American Trust
Publications, 1978
BAKHTIAR, LALEH. Encyclopaedia of Islamic Law: A Compendium of the Views of the Major
Schools. Chicago: ABC International Group, Inc., KAZI Publications, 1996
BARLAS, ASMA. Believing Women In Islam: Unreading Patriarchal Interpretations of the
Qur-an. Austin: University of Texas Press, 2002
BARLETT, KATHARINE T., KENNEDY, ROSANNE, eds. Feminist Legal Theory: Readings in Law and
Gender. Boulder: Westview Press, 1991
BAUER, MONIKA. Vorbehalte zu Menschenrechtsvertrgen. Inaugural-Dissertation zur Erlangung
der Doktorwrde einer Hohen Juristischen Fakultt der Ludwig-Maximilians-Universitt zu
Mnchen, Mnchen, 1994
BAYES, JANE B., TOHIDI, NAYEREH, eds. Globalization, Gender, and Religion: The Politics of
Implementing Womens Rights in Catholic and Muslim Contexts. New York: Palgrave,
2001
BEHNSEN, ALEXANDER, Das Vorbehaltsrecht vlkerrechtlicher Vertrge. Vorschlag einer Reform,
Berlin: Duncker & Humblot, 2007
BODMAN, HERBERT L., TOHIDI, NAYEREH, eds. Women in Muslim Societies: Diversity Within
Unity. Colorado: Lynne Rienner Publishers, 1998
BREMS, EVA. Human Rights: Universality and Diversity. The Hague, Boston, London: Martinus
Nijhoff Publishers, 2001
BIBLIOGRAPHY
237
BROWNLIE, IAN. Principles of Public International Law. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 6th
edition, 2003
BOSSUYT, MARC. Linterdiction de la discrimination dans le droit international des droits de
lhomme. Bruxelles: Bruylant, 1976
CALDER, NORMAN. Studies in Early Muslim Jurisprudence. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1993
CASSESE, ANTONIO. International Law. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2002
CHARLESWORTH, HILARY, CHINKIN, CHRISTINE. The Boundaries of International Law: A Feminist
Analysis. Juris Publishing Manchester University Press, 2001
CHARRAD, MOUNIRA M. States and Womens Rights: The Making of Postcolonial Tunisia,
Algeria, and Morocco. Berkeley, Los Angeles, London: University of California Press,
2001
CLAPHAM, ANDREW. Human Rights in the Private Sphere. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1993
COMBACAU, JEAN. Le droit des traits. P.U.F., Que sais-je N 2613, Paris, 1991
COOK, REBECCA J.,ed. Human Rights of Women: National and International Perspectives.
Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1994
COOKE, MIRIAM. Women Claim Islam: Creating Islamic Feminism Through Literature. New
York, London: Routledge, 2001
COOMARASWAMY, RADHIKA. Reinventing International Law: Womens Rights as Human Rights
in the International Community. Harvard College, 1997
COULSON, NOEL J. A History of Islamic Law. Edinburgh: Edinburgh University Press, 1964
COULSON, NOEL J. Conicts and Tensions in Islamic Jurisprudence. Chicago, London:
University of Chicago Press, 1969
COWAN, JANE K., DEMBOUR, MARIE-BENEDICTE, WILSON, RICHARD A., eds. Culture and Rights:
Anthropological Perspectives. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001
DAHL, TOVE STANG. The Muslim Family: A Study of Womens Rights in Islam. Skandinavian
University Press, 1997
DALLMEYER, DORINDA G., ed. Reconceiving Reality: Women and International Law. Studies in
Transnational Legal Policy N 25, The American Society of International Law, Washington,
D.C.1993
DECAUX, EMMANUEL. La rciprocit en droit international. Paris: Librairie gnrale de droit et
de jurisprudence, 1980
DETTER, INGRID. Essays on the Law of Treaties. Stockholm, London: P.A. Norstedt & Sners
frlag, Sweet & Maxwell, 1967
EDGE, PETER W., HARVEY, GRAHAM, eds. Law and Religion in Contemporary Society:
Communities, Individualism and the State. Aldershot: Ashgate, 2000
EIDE, ASBJORN, HAGTVET, BERNT, eds. Human Rights in Perspective: A Global Assessment.
Blackwell Publishers, 1992
ELIAS, TASLIM OLAWALE. The Modern Law of Treaties. New York, Leiden: Oceana Publications,
Inc.-Dobbs Ferry, A.W. Sijthoff, 1974
EL ALAMI, DAWOUD S. The Marriage Contract in Islamic Law in the Shariah and Personal
Status Laws of Egypt and Morocco. London, Dordrecht, Boston: Graham & Trotman
EL ALAMI, DAWOUD S., HINCHCLIFFE DOREEN, eds. Islamic Marriage and Divorce Laws of the
Arab World. CIMEL Book Series No 2, London, The Hague, Boston: Kluwer Law
International, 1996
EL-BAHNASSAWI, SALEM. Women Between Islam and World Legislations: A Comparative Study.
Kuwait: Dar-ul-Qalam, 1985
EL-SAADAWI, NAWAL. The Hidden Face of Eve: Women in the Arab World. Boston: Beacon
Press, 1982
ENGINEER, ASGHAR ALI. The Rights of Women In Islam. New York: St. Martins Press, 1992
ENGINEER, ASGHAR ALI. The Quran, Women and Modern Society. New Delhi: Sterling
Publishers, 1999
ESPOSITO, JOHN L. Women in Muslim Family Law. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1982
(2nd edition, with Natana J. DeLong-Bas, 2001)
FRIEDMAN, THOMAS L. The Lexus and the Olive Tree. New York: Farrar Straus Giroux, 1999
238
BIBLIOGRAPHY
FRIEDMANN, WOLFGANG. The Changing Structure of International Law. London: Stevens &
Sons, 1964
GARDNER, J.P., ed. Human Rights as General Norms and a States Rights to Opt Out:
Reservations and Objections to Human Rights Conventions. London: British Institute of
International and Comparative Law, 1997
GEERTZ, CLIFFORD. Islam Observed: Religious Developments in Morocco and Indonesia.
Chicago, London: The University of Chicago Press, 1968
GEIGER, RUDOLPH. Grundgesetz und Vlkerrecht. Munich: Beck, 2002
GLANDER, ANNELIES. Inheritance in Islam: Womens Inheritance in Sanaa (Republic of Yemen):
Law, Religion, Reality. Frankfurt am Main: Peter Lang, 1998
GLEAVE, ROBERT, KERMELI, E., eds. Islamic Law: Theory and Practice. London, New York: I.B.
Tauris Publishers, 1997
GOLDSMITH, JACK L., POSNER, ERIC A. The Limits of International Law, Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 2005
GOULD, CAROL C., WARTOFSKY, MARX W., eds. Women and Philosophy: Toward a Theory of
Liberation. New York: Perigee Books, 1980
GOULD, CAROL C., ed. Beyond Domination: New Perspectives on Women and Philosophy,
Totowa: Rouman & Littleeld Publications, 1989
GUSTAFSON, CARRIE, JUVILLER, PETER, eds. Religion and Human Rights: Competing Claims?
Armonk, London: M.E. Sharpe, 1999
HALLAQ, WAEL B. Law and Legal Theory in Classical and Medieval Islam. Aldershot,
Brookeld: Variorum, 1994
HALLAQ, WAEL B. A History of Islamic Legal Theories: An Introduction to Sunni Usul Al-Fiqh.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1997
HALLAQ, WAEL B. Authority, Continuity, and Change in Islamic Law. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 2001
HAUGESTAD, ARNHILD. Reservations to the United Nations Womens Convention with Special
Focus on Reservations submitted by Muslim Countries. Studies in Womens law N 39,
Institutt for offentlig retts skriftserie nr. 7/1995, Oslo, 1995
HEER, NICHOLAS, ed. Islamic Law and Jurisprudence. Seattle, London: University of Washington
Press, 1990
HELBLING, GIANFRANCO. Das vlkerrechtliche Verbot der Geschlechtsdiskriminierung in einem
plurikulturellen Kontext: Das Beispiel des Schutzes der Menschenrechte muslimischer
Frauen in westlichen Lndern. Dissertation der Rechtswissentschaichen Fakultt der
Universitt Zrich zur Erlangung der Wrde eines Doktors der Rechtswissenschaft, Zrich:
Schulthess Juristische Medien AG, 2001
HEPPLE, BOB, SZYSZCZAK, ERIKA M., eds. Discrimination: The Limits of Law. London: Mansell,
1992
HIGGINS, ROSALYN. Problems and Process: International Law and How We Use It. Oxford:
Clarendon Press, 1994
HOLLOWAY, KAYE. Les Rserves dans les traits internationaux. Paris: L.G.D.J., Bibliothque
de droit international, tome V, 1958
HOLLOWAY, KAYE. Modern Trends in Treaty Law: Constitutional Law, Reservations and the
Three Modes of Legislation. London, New York: Stevens, 1967
HORN, FRANK. Reservations and Interpretative Declarations to Multilateral Treaties.
Amsterdam, New York, Oxford, Tokyo: North-Holland, 1988
HOWLAND, COURTNEY W., ed. Religious Fundamentalisms and the Human Rights of Women.
New York: St. Martins Press, 1999
IBN ABIDIN, MUHAMMAD AMIN IBN UMAR. Radd Al-Muhtar. Vol. IV, Beirut: Dar al-Kutub
al-Ilmiya, 1994
IBN RUSHD. The Distinguished Jurists Primer. Bidayat al-Mujtahid wa Nibayat al-Muqtasid.
Garnet Publishing, Reading, Volume I, 1994, Volume II, 1996.
IGNATIEF, MICHAEL. Human Rights as Politics and Idolatry. Princeton, Oxford: Princeton
University Press, 2001
BIBLIOGRAPHY
239
240
BIBLIOGRAPHY
MERON, THEODOR. Human Rights Law-Making in the United Nations: A Critique of Instruments
and Process. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1986
MIR-HOSSEINI, ZIBA. Marriage on Trial: A Study of Islamic Family Law: Iran and Morocco
Compared. London, New York: I.B. Tauris & Co Ltd Publishers, 1993
MOGHISSI, HAIDEH. Feminism and Islamic Fundamentalism: The Limits of Postmodern Analysis.
London, New York: Zed Books, 1999
MOHANTY, CHANDRA TALPADE, RUSSO, ANN, TORRES, LOURDES, eds. Third World Women and the
Politics of Feminism. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1991
MUTAHHARI, MURTAD. The Rights of Women in Islam. Teheran: WOFIS, World Organisation for
Islamic Services, 1981
MUTUA, MAKAU. Human Rights: A Political and Cultural Critique. Philadelphia: University of
Pennsylvania Press, 2002
NASEEF, FATIMA UMAR. Women in Islam: A Discourse in Rights and Obligations. New Dehli:
Sterling Publishers, 1999
NASIR, JAMAL J. The Islamic Law of Personal Status. Third Edition, London: Graham &
Trotman, 2002
NASIR, JAMAL J. The Status of Women under Islamic Law and under Modern Islamic Legislation.
Second Edition, London: Graham & Trotman, 1994
NUSSBAUM, MARTHA C., GLOVER JOHNATHAN, eds. Women, Culture, and Development: A Study of
Human Capabilities. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1995
NUSSBAUM, MARTHA C. The Fragility of Goodness: Luck and Ethics in Greek Tragedy and
Philosophy. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1986
NUSSBAUM, MARTHA C. Sex and Social Justice. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1999
PERRY, MICHAEL J. The Idea of Human Rights: Four Inquires. New York, Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 1998
PETERS, JULIA, WOLPER, ANDREA, eds. Womens Rights, Human Rights: International Feminist
Perspectives. New York, London: Routledge, New York, 1995
RAHMAN, FAZLUR. Islam. Second Edition, Chicago, London: University of Chicago Press, 1979
RAHMAN, FAZLUR. Major Themes of the Quran. Minneapolis: Bibliotheca Islamica, 1980
RAHMAN, FAZLUR. Islam and Modernity: Transformation of an Intellectual Tradition. Chicago,
London: University of Chicago Press, 1982
REHMAN, JAVAID, BREAU, SUSAN, eds. Religion, Human Rights and International Law. A
Critical Examination of Islamic State Practices. Leiden, Boston: Martinus Nijhof
Publishers, 2007
REHOF, LARS ADAM. Guide to the Travaux Prparatoires of the United Nations Convention
on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against Women. International Studies
in Human Rights, Vol. 29, Dordrecht, Boston, London: Martinus Nijhoff Publishers,
1993
REUTER, PAUL. Introduction to the Law of Treaties. Publication of the Graduate Institute of
International Studies, Geneva, London, New York: Kegan Paul International, 1995, 2nd rev.
edition
ROSENNE, SHABTAI. A Guide to the Legislative History of the Vienna Convention. Leiden, New
York: A.W. Sijthoff, Oceana Publications, Inc. Dobbs Ferry, 1970
ROSENNE, SHABTAI. Developments in the Law of Treaties 19451986. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 1989
SARAT, AUSTIN, GARTH, BRYANT, KAGAN, ROBERT A., eds. Looking Back at Laws Century. Ithaca,
London: Cornell University Press, 2002
SCHACHT, JOSEPH. An Introduction to Islamic Law. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1964
SCHACHTER, OSKAR, NAWAZ, MAHOMED, FRIED JOHN. Toward Wider Acceptance of UN Treaties.
A UNITAR Study, New York: Arno Press, 1971
SHAW, MALCOLM. International Law. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 4th edition,
1997
SHELTON, DINAH, ed. Commitment and Compliance: the Role of Non-Binding Norms in the
International Legal System. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2000
BIBLIOGRAPHY
241
242
BIBLIOGRAPHY
IV. ARTICLES
ABAZA, MONA. Images on Gender and Islam: The Middle East and Malaysia, Afnities,
Borrowings and Exchanges. 39 Orient 1998, pp. 271284
ABDEL HALIM, ASMA. Challenges to the Application of International Womens Human Rights
in the Sudan. In: Cook, Rebecca J., ed. Human Rights of Women: National and International
Perspectives. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1994, pp. 397421
ABI-SAAB, GEORGES. Whither the International Community 9 EuJIL 1998, pp. 248265
ACCAD, EVELYNE. Sexuality and Sexual Politics. Conicts and Contradictions for Contemporary
Women in the Middle East. In: Mohanty, Chandra Talpade, Russo, Ann, Torres, Lourdes,
eds. Third World Women and the Politics of Feminism. Bloomington: Indiana University
Press, 1991, pp. 237250
ACEVES, WILLIAM J. Critical Jurisprudence and International Legal Scholarship: A Study of
Equitable Distribution. 39 Columbia Journal of Transnational Law 2001, pp. 299393
AFKHAMI, MAHNAZ. Cultural Relativism and Womens Human Rights. In: Askin, Kelly D.,
Koenig, Dorean M., eds. Women and International Human Rights Law. Vol. II, Ardsley:
Transnational Publishers Inc., 2000, pp. 479486
AFSHAR, HALEH. Islam and Feminism: An Analysis of Political Strategies. In: Yamani, Mai,
ed. Feminism and Islam: Legal and Literary Perspectives. New York: New York University
Press, 1996, pp. 197216
AFSHARIPOUR, AFRA. Empowering Ourselves: The Role of Womens NGOs in the Enforcement
of the Womens Convention. 99 Columbia Law Review 1999, pp. 129172
ALBERTSON FINEMAN, MARTHA. Equality Across Legal Cultures: The Role for International
Human Rights. 27 Thomas Jefferson Law Review 2004, pp. 113
AL-HIBRI, AZIZAH. Islamic Law and Custom: Redening Womens Rights. In: Askin, Kelly
D., Koenig, Dorean M., eds. Women and International Human Rights Law. Vol. III, Ardsley:
Transnational Publishers Inc., 2001, pp. 379420
ALI, SHAHEEN SARDAR. Is an Adult Muslim Woman Sui Juris? Some Reections on the Concept
of Consent in Marriage without a Wali (with Particular Reference to the Saima Waheed
Case). 3 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 1996, pp. 156174
ALI, SHAHEEN SARDAR. Womens Human Rights in Islam: Towards a Theoretical Framework.
4 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 19971998, pp. 117152
ALSTON, PHILIP. Out of the Abyss: the Challenges Confronting the new UN Committee on
Economic, Social and Cultural Rights. 9 HRQ 1987, pp. 332381
ALSTON, PHILIP. The Best Interests Principle: Towards a Reconciliation of Culture and Human
Rights. In: Alston, Philip, ed. The Best Interests of the Child: Reconciling Culture and
Human Rights. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1994, pp. 123
ANDREASSEN, BARD-A., SMITH, ALAN G., STOKKE, Hugo. Compliance with Economic and Social
Human Rights: Realistic Evaluation and Monitoring in the Lights of Immediate Obligations.
In: Eide, Asbjorn, Hagtvet, Bernt, eds. Human Rights in Perspective: A Global Assessment.
Blackwell Publishers, 1992, pp. 252267
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED. Toward and Islamic Hermeneutics for Human Rights.
In: An-Naim, Abdullahi Ahmed, Gort, Jerald D., Jansen, Henry, Vroom, Hendrik M., eds.
Human Rights and Religious Values: An Uneasy Relationship? Amsterdam: Editions Rodopi,
pp. 229242
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED. Islamic Law, International Relations, and Human Rights:
Challenge and Response. 20 Cornell International Law Journal 1987, pp. 317335
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED. The Rights of Women and International Law in the Muslim
Context. 9 Whittier Law Review 1987, pp. 491516
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED. Human Rights in the Muslim World: Socio-Political Conditions
and Scriptural Imperatives. A Preliminary Inquiry. 3 Harvard Human Rights Journal 1990,
pp. 1352
AN-NAIM, ABDULLAHI AHMED. State Responsibility Under International Human Rights Law to
Change Religious and Customary Laws. In: Cook, Rebecca, J., ed. Human Rights of
BIBLIOGRAPHY
243
244
BIBLIOGRAPHY
BORISOV, S. Suverennoe pravo gosudarstv-uchastnikov mnogostoronnykh dogovorov zaiavliat ogovorki. Sovetskoe gosudarstvo i pravo 1952, N 4, pp. 6469
BOURGUIGNON, HENRY J. The Belilos Case: New Light on Reservations to Multilateral Treaties.
29 Virginia Journal of International Law 1989, pp. 347386
BOWETT, D.W. Reservations to Non-Restricted Multilateral Treaties. BYbIL 19761977,
pp. 6792
BRADLEY, CURTIS, A., GOLDSMITH, JACK L. Treaties, Human Rights and Conditional Consent.
149 University of Pennsylvania Law Review 2000, pp. 399468
BRANDT, MICHELE, KAPLAN, JEFFREY A. The Tension between Womens Rights and Religious
Rights: Reservations to CEDAW by Egypt, Bangladesh and Tunisia. 12 Journal of Law
and Religion 1995/1996, pp. 105142
BREMS, EVA. Enemies or Allies? Feminism and Cultural Relativism as Dissent Voices in
Human Rights Discourse. 19 HRQ 1997, pp. 136164
BROWNLIE, IAN. Problems Concerning the Unity of International Law. In: International Law
at the Time of Codication: Essays in honour of Roberto Ago. Milano: Dott.A. Guiffr
Editore, 1987, pp. 153162
BUCHANAN, RUTH, JOHNSON, REBECCA. The Unforgiven Sources of International Law: Nationbuilding, Violence, and Gender in the West(ern). In: Buss, Doris, Maji, Ambreena eds.
International Law: Modern Feminist Perspectives, Oxford, Hart Publishing, Forthcoming
Available at SSRN: http://ssrn.com/abstract=555891
BUERGENTHAL, THOMAS. Self-Executing and Non-Self-Executing Treaties in National and
International Law. 235 RdC 1992 (IV), pp. 303400
BUONAMANO, ROBERTO LUIGI. The Economy of Violence: Derrida on Law and Justice. 11
Ratio Juris 1998, pp. 168179
BUNCH, CHARLOTTE. Womens Rights as Human Rights: Toward a Re-Vision of Human
Rights. 12 HRQ 1990, pp. 486498
BURROWS, NOREEN. Monitoring Compliance of International Standards Relating to Human
Rights: The Experience of the United Nations Commission on the Status of Women. XXXI
NILR 1984, pp. 332354
BURROWS, NOREEN. The 1979 Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination
Against Women. XXXII NILR 1985, pp. 419460
BUSTELO, MARA R. The Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination Against Women at
the Crossroads. In: Alston, Philip, Crawford, James, eds. The Future of UN Human Rights
Treaty Monitoring. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2000, pp. 79111
BYRNES, ANDREW C. The Other Human Rights Treaty Body: The Work of the Committee on
the Elimination of Discrimination Against Women. 14 Yale Journal of International Law
1989, pp. 167
BYRNES, ANDREW C. Women, Feminism and International Human Rights Law Methodological
Myopia, Fundamental Flaws or Meaningful Marginalisation? Some Current Issues. 12
Australian Year Book of International Law 1992, pp. 205240
BYRNES, ANDREW C. Towards More Effective Enforcement of Womens Human Rights
Through the Use of International Human Rights Law and Procedures. In: Cook, R. J., ed.
Human Rights of Women: National and International Perspectives. Philadelphia: University
of Pennsylvania Press, 1994, pp. 189227
CALERO SECALL, ISABELL M. Rulers and Qadis: Their Relationship During the Nasrid
Kingdom. 7 Islamic Law and Society 2000, pp. 235255
CAMERON, IAIN, HORN, FRANK. Reservations to the European Convention on Human Rights:
The Belilos Case. 33 German Yearbook of International Law 1990, pp. 69129
CASSESE, ANTONIO. A New Reservations Clause (Article 20 of the United Nations Convention
on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination). In: Recueil dtudes de droit
international en hommage Paul Guggenheim. Geneva: Institut Universitaire de Hautes
Etudes Internationales, 1968, pp. 266304
CASSESE, ANTONIO. Su alcuna riserve alla convenzione sui diritti politici della donna. 51
Rivista di Diritto Internazionale 1968, pp. 294314
BIBLIOGRAPHY
245
246
BIBLIOGRAPHY
CRAVEN, MATHEW. Legal Differentiation and the Concept of the Human Rights Treaty in
International Law. 11 European Journal of International Law 2000, pp. 489517
CRAWFORD, JAMES. The Legal Effects of Automatic Reservations to the Jurisdiction of the
International Court of Justice. 50 BYbIL 1979, pp. 6386
CRAWFORD, JAMES. The UN Human Rights Treaty System: A System in Crisis? In: Alston,
Philip, Crawford, James, eds. The Future of UN Human Rights Treaty Monitoring.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2000, pp. 112
CROOMS, LISA A. Indivisible Rights and Intersectional Identities or, What Do Womens
Human Rights Have to Do with the Race Convention? 40 Howard Law Journal 1997,
pp. 619640
CROWTHER, ANN LUERSSEN. Empty Gestures: The (In)signicance of Recent Attempts to
Liberalize Algerian Family Law. 6 William and Mary Journal of Women and the Law 2000,
pp. 611642
CULLITON, KATHERINE M. Finding a Mechanism to Enforce Womens Right to State Protection
from Domestic Violence in the Americas. 34 Harvard International Law Journal 1993,
pp. 507561
DEFEIS, ELIZABETH F. Womens Human Rights: the Twenty-First Century. 18 Fordham
International Law Journal 1995, pp. 17481755
DEHAUSSY, R. Le problme de la classication des traits et le projet de convention tabli par
la Commission du Droit International. In: Recueil dtudes de droit international en hommage Paul Guggenheim. Geneva: Institut Universitaire de Hautes Etudes Internationales,
1968, pp. 305326
DELBRCK, JOST. Die Konvention der Vereinten Nationen zur Beseitigung jeder Form der
Diskriminierung der Frau vom 1979 im Kontext der Bemhungen um einen vlkerrechtlichen Schutz der Menschenrechte. In: Von Munch, ed. Staatsrecht, Vlkerrecht, Europarecht.
Festschrift fr Hans-Jrgen Schlochauer, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1981, pp. 247270
DERRIDA, JACQUES. Force of Law: the Mystical Foundation of Authority 11 Cardozo Law
Review 1990, pp. 9191045
DESPHANDE, PURVA. The Role of Women in Two Islamic Fundamentalist Countries: Afghanistan
and Saudi Arabia. 22 Womens Rights Law Reporter 2002, pp. 193204
DIMAURO, JULIE. Toward a More Effective Guarantee of Womens Human Rights:
A Multicultural Dialogue in International Law. 17 Womens Rights Law Reporter 1996,
pp. 333344
DONNER, LAURA A. Gender Bias in Drafting International Discrimination Conventions: The
1979 Womens Convention Compared With the 1965 Racial Convention. 24 California
Western International Law Journal 1994, pp. 241254
DUPRET, BAUDOUIN. A propos de la constitutionnalit de la sharia: prsentation et traduction
de larrt du 26 mars 1994 (14 Shawwal 1414) de la Haute Cour Constitutionnelle (almahkama al-dusturiyya al-ulya) gyptienne. 3 Islamic Law and Society 1997, pp. 91113
DURDENJEWSKY, V.N. The Effect of Objections to Treaty Reservations. 60 Yale Law Journal
1951, pp. 728735
EDWARDS, RICHARD W. Reservations to Treaties. 10 Michigan Journal of International Law
1989, pp. 362405
EL-ALAMI, DAWOUD S. Law No 100 of 1985 Amending Certain Provisions of Egypts Personal
Status Laws. 1 Islamic Law and Society 1994, pp. 116136
EL-ALAMI, DAWOUD S. Mutat al Talaq under Egyptian and Jordanian Law. 2 Yearbook of
Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 1995, pp. 5460
EL-ALAMI, DAWOUD S. Remedy or Device? The System of Khul and the Effects of its
Incorporation into Egyptian Personal Status Law. 6 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern
Law 1999/2000, pp. 134139
EL-NIMR, RAGA. Women in Islamic Law. In: Yamani, Mai, ed., Feminism and Islam: Legal
and Literary Perspectives. New York: New York University Press, 1996, pp. 87102
ENGLE, KAREN. Female Subjects of Public International Law: Human Rights and the Exotic
Other Female. 26 New England Law Review 1992, pp. 15091526
BIBLIOGRAPHY
247
ENGLE, KAREN. International Human Rights and Feminism: When Discourses Meet. 13
Michigan Journal of International Law 1992, pp. 517610
ENTELIS, JOELLE. International Human Rights: Islams Friend or Foe? Algeria as an Example
of the Compatibility of International Human Rights Regarding Womens Equality and
Islamic Law. 20 Fordham International Law Journal 1997, pp. 12511305
ERNST, JULIA. The U.S. Ratication of the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Discrimination against Women. 3 Michigan Journal of Gender and Law 19951996,
pp. 299367
EVANS, MALCOLM D. Religion, Law and Human Rights: Locating the Debate. In: Edge, Peter
W., Harvey, Graham, eds. Law and Religion in Contemporary Society: Communities,
Individualism and the State. Aldershot: Ashgate, 2000, pp. 177197
EVATT, ELIZABETH. Eliminating Discrimination against Women: The Impact of the UN
Convention. 18 Melbourne University Law Review 1991, pp. 435449
FADEL, MOHAMMAD. Rules, Judicial Discretion, and the Rule of Law in Nasrid Granada:
An Analysis of al-Hadiqa al-mustaqilla al-nadra sl-fatawa al-sadira an ulama al-hadra.
In: Gleave, Robert, Kermeli, E. eds. Islamic Law: Theory and Practice. London, New York:
I.B. Tauris, 1997, pp. 4986
FADEL, MOHAMMAD. Reinterpreting the Guardians Role in the Islamic Contract of Marriage:
The Case of the Maliki School. 3 Journal of Islamic Law 1998, pp. 123
FALATURI, ABDOOLJAVAD. Die Saria Islamische Rechtssystem. In: Zur Diskussion gestellt:
Weltmacht Islam, Mnchen, Bayerische Landeszentrale fr Politische Bildungsarbeit, 1988,
pp. 93113
FALK, RICHARD. Cultural Foundations for the International Protection of Human Rights.
In: An-Naim, Abdullahi Ahmed, ed. Human Rights in Cross-Cultural Perspectives: A Quest
for Consensus. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1992, pp. 4480
FELLMETH, AARON XAVIER. Feminism and International Law: Theory, Methodology, and
Substantive Reform. 22 HRQ 2000, pp. 658733
FENWICK, GHEQUIER CHARLES. When is a Treaty not a Treaty? 46 AJIL 1952, pp. 296298
FITZMAURICE, GERALD G. Reservations to Multilateral Conventions. 2 ICLQ 1953, pp. 126
FITUMAURICE, GERALD G. The Law and Procedure of the International Court of
Justice, 19511954: Treaty Interpretation and Other Treaty Points. XXXIII BYbIL 1957,
pp. 203293
FITZMAURICE, GERALD G. The General Principles of International Law Considered from the
Standpoint of the Rule of Law. 92 RdC 1957 (II), pp. 1227
FITZMAURICE, M. On the Protection of Human Rights the Rome Statute and Reservations.
10 Singapore Yearbook of International Law 2006, pp. 133173
FLAUSS, JEAN-FRANOIS Le contentieux de la validit des rserves la CEDH devant le
Tribunal fdral Suisse: Requiem pour la dclaration interprtative relative larticle 6, par.
1 5 Revue universelle des droits de lhomme 1993, pp. 297303
FLOR, PATRICIA. <Gender Mainstreaming> Damit die Gleichberechtigung der Geschlechter
Wirklichkeit wird. In: G. Baum, E. Riedel, M. Schaefer, eds. Menschenrechtsschutz in der
Praxis der Vereinten Nationen. Baden-Baden: Nomos Verlagsgesellschaft, 1998, pp.
167178
FRASER, ARVONNE S. The Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination
Against Women (The Womens Convention). In: Winslow, Anne, ed. Women, Politics, and
the United Nations. Westport, London: Greenwood Press, 1995, pp. 7794
FRASER, ARVONNE S. Becoming Human: the Origins and Development of Womens Human
Rights. 21 HRQ 1999, pp. 853906
FREDMAN, SANDRA, SZYSZCZAK, ERIKA. The Interaction of Race and Gender. In: Hepple, Bob,
Szyszczak, Erika M. Eds. Discrimination: The Limits of Law. London: Mansell, 1992,
pp. 214226
FREEMAN, MARSHA A. Women, Development and Justice: Using the International Convention
on Womens Rights. In: Kerr, Joanna, ed. Ours by Right:. Womens Human Rights as
Human Rights. Zed Books/The North-South Institute, 1993, pp. 93105
248
BIBLIOGRAPHY
FROWEIN, JOCHEN Abr.. Treaty-Making Power in the Federal Republic of Germany. In: Jacobs,
Francis G., Roberts, Shelly, eds. The Effect of Treaties in Domestic Law. London: Sweet
& Maxwell, 1987, at p. 63
FROWEIN, JOCHEN ABR. Reservations to the European Convention on Human Rights.
In: Matscher, Franz, Petzold, Herbert, eds. Protecting Human Rights: The European
Dimension: Studies in honour of Grard J. Wiarda. Kln, Berlin, Bonn, Mnchen: Carl
Heymenns Verlag KG, 1988, pp. 193200
FROWEIN, JOCHEN ABR. Reservations and the International ordre public. In: Makarczyk, Jerzy,
ed. Theory of International Law at the Threshold of the 21st Century: Essays in Honour of
Krzisztof Skubiszewski. The Hague, Boston, London: Kluwer Law International, 1996,
pp. 403412
GAJA, GIORGIO. Reservations to Treaties and the Newly Independent States. 1 Italian Yearbook
of International Law 1975, pp. 5268
GAJA, GIORGIO. Unruly Treaty Reservations. In: International Law at the Time of Codication:
Essays in honour of Roberto Ago. Milano: Dott.A. Guiffr Editore, 1987, pp. 307330
GALEY, MARGARET E. International Enforcement of Womens Rights. 6 HRQ 1984,
pp. 463490
GALLAGHER, ANNE. Ending the Marginalisation: Strategies for Incorporating Women into the
United Nations Human Rights System. 19 HRQ 1997, pp. 283333
GALTUNG, JOHAN. The Universality of Human Rights Revisited: Some Less Applaudable
Consequences of the Human Rights. In: Eide, Asbjorn, Hagtvet, Bernt, eds. Human Rights
in Perspective: A Global Assessment. Blackwell Publishers, 1992, pp. 152173
GAMBLE, JOHN KING. Reservations to Multilateral Treaties: A Macroscopic View of State
Practice. 74 AJIL 1980, pp. 372394
GELLNER, ERNEST. Human Rights and the New Circle of Equity: Muslim Political Theory and
the Rejection of Scepticism. In: Eide, Asbjorn, Hagtvet, Bernt, eds. Human Rights in
Perspective: A Global Assessment. Blackwell Publishers, 1992, pp. 113129
GIBB, H. A. R. Constitutional Organisation. In: Khadduri, Majid, Liebesny Herbert J., eds.
Origin and Development of Islamic Law. Washington D.C.: Middle East Institute, 1984,
pp. 327
GIEGERICH, THOMAS. Vorbehalte zu Menschenrechtsabkommen: Zulssigkeit, Gltigkeit und
Prfungskompetenzen von Vertragsgremien. 55 ZaRV 1995, pp. 713782
GILANI, RIAZUL HASAN. A Note on Islamic Family Law and Islamization in Pakistan. In:
Chibli Mallat, Jane Connors, eds. Islamic Family Law. London: Graham & Trotman, 1990,
pp. 339346
GLOVER, RUPERT GRANVILLE. International Humanitarian Law with Reservations? 2 The
Canterbury Law Review 1984, pp. 220229
GOLSONG, H. Les Rserves aux Instruments Internationaux pour la Protection des Droits de
lHomme. In: Les Clauses Echappatoires en matire dInstruments Internationaux relatifs
aux Droits de lHomme, Bruxelles, 1982, pp. 2342
GOODMAN, RYAN. Human Rights Treaties, Invalid reservations, and State Consent. 96 AJIL
2002, pp. 531560
GORMLEY, W. PAUL. The Modication of Multilateral Conventions by Means of Negotiated
Reservations and Other Alternatives : A Comparative Study of the ILO and Council of
Europe 39 Fordham Law Review October 1970March 1971, pp. 3959
GORNIG, GILBERT, MARTIN, NEY. Die Erklrungen der DDR zur UN-Antifolterkonvention aus
vlkerrechtlicher Sicht: Ein Beitrag zur Zulssigkeit von Vorbehalten und ihren
Rechtsfolgen. 43 Juristen Zeitung 1988, pp. 10481053
GOITEIN, S. D. The Birth-Hour of Muslim Law? 50 The Muslim World 1960, pp. 2329
GOULD, CAROL C. The Woman Question: Philosophy of Liberation and the Liberation of
Philosophy. In: Gould, Carol C., Wartofsky, Marx W., eds. Women and Philosophy: Toward
a Theory of Liberation. New York: Perigee Books, 1980, pp. 544
GRAEFRATH, BERNHARD. Vorbehalte zu Menschenrechtsvertrgen, Neue Projekte und alte
Streitfragen. 9 Humanitres Vlkerrecht 1996, pp. 6875
BIBLIOGRAPHY
249
250
BIBLIOGRAPHY
HAMADEH, NAJLA. Islamic Family Legislation: The Authoritarian Discourse of Silence. In:
Yamani, Mai, ed. Feminism and Islam: Legal and Literary Perspectives. New York: New
York University Press, 1996, pp. 331349
HATEM, MERVAT. Toward the Development of Post-Islamist and Post-Nationalist Feminist
Discourses in the Middle East. In: Tucker, Judith E., ed. Arab Women: Old Boundaries,
New Frontiers. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1993, pp. 2948
HATHAWAY, OONA A. Do Human Rights Treaties Make a Difference? 111 Yale Law Journal
June 2002, pp. 19352041
HATHAWAY, OONA A. Between Power and Principle: An Integrated Theory of International
Law. 72 University of Chicago Law Review 2005, pp. 469536
HATHAWAY, OONA A. Hamdan v. Rumsfeld: Domestic Enforcement of International Law.
In: Noyes, John, Janis, Mark, Dickinson, Laura, eds., International Law Stories, Foundation
Press, 2007, pp. 834
HAZOU, LINDA L. Determining the Extent of Admissibility of Reservations: Some
Considerations with Regard to the Third United Nations Conference on the Law of the Sea.
9 Denver Journal of International Law and Policy 1980, pp. 6983
HELFER, LAURENCE R. Not Fully Committed? Reservations, Risk and Treaty Design. 31 Yale
Journal of International Law 2006, pp. 367382
HELIE-LUCAS, MARIE AIMEE. Women Living Under Muslim Laws. In: Kerr, Joanna, ed. Ours
by Right: Womens Human Rights as Human Rights. Zed Books/The North-South Institute,
1993, pp. 5264
HELIE-LUCAS, MARIE AIMEE. What is Your Tribe? Womens Struggles and the Construction
of Muslimness. In: Howland, Courtney W., ed. Religious Fundamentalisms and the Human
Rights of Women. New York: St. Martins Press, 1999, pp. 2132
HENKIN, LUIS. The Treaty Makers and the Law Makers: The Niagara Reservation. 56
Columbia Law Review 1956, pp. 11511182
HENKIN, LUIS. The Connally Reservation Revisited and, Hopefully, Contained. 65 AJIL 1971,
pp. 374377
HENKIN, LOUIS. Human Rights: Religious or Enlightened? In Gustafson, Carrie, Juviller,
Peter, eds. Religion and Human Rights: Competing Claims? Armonk, London: M.E. Sharpe,
pp. 3135
HERNANDEZ-TRUYOL, BERTA ESPERANZA. Womens Rights as Human Rights Rules, Realities
and the Role of Culture: A Formula for Reform. 21 Brooklyn Journal of International Law
1996, pp. 605677
HIGGINS, ROSALYN. Derogations under Human Rights Treaties. BYbIL 19761977, pp. 281320
HIGGINS, ROSALYN. Human Rights: Some Questions of Integrity. (due to the error of the
editor entitled: The United Nations: Still a Force for Peace), 52 Modern Law Review 1989,
pp. 121
HIGGINS, TRACY. A Reection on the Uses and Limits of Western Feminism in a Global
Context. 28 Thomas Jefferson Law Review 2006, pp. 423448
HIJAB, NADIA. Islam, Social Change, and the Reality of Arab Womens Lives. In: Yazbeck
Haddad, Yvonne, Esposito, John L., eds. Islam, Gender and Social Change. Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 1998, pp. 4555
HOLLIS, DUNCAN B. Why State Consent Still Matters: Non-State Actors, Treaties, and the
Changing Sources of International Law. 23 Berkeley Journal of International Law 2005,
pp. 139
HOLMES, HELEN B. A Feminist Analysis of the Universal Declaration of Human Rights.
In: Gould, Carol C., ed. Beyond Domination: New Perspectives on Women and Philosophy,
Totowa: Rowman & Littleeld Publications, 1983, pp. 250264
HOLMES KATZ, MARION The Corruption of the Times and the Mutability of Sharia. 28
Cardozo Law Review 2006, pp. 171185
HOQ, LABONI AMENA. The Womens Convention and its Optional Protocol: Empowering
Women to Claim Their Internationally Protected Rights. 32 Columbia Human Rights Law
Review 2001, pp. 677726
BIBLIOGRAPHY
251
HOSSAIN, SARA. Equality in the Home: Womens Rights and Personal Laws in South Asia.
In: Cook, Rebecca J., ed. Human Rights of Women: National and International Perspectives.
Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1994, pp. 465494
HOWLAND, COURTNEY W. The Challenge of Religious Fundamentalism to the Liberty and
Equality Rights of Women: An Analysis under the United Nations Charter. 35 Columbia
Journal of Transnational Law 1997, pp. 271377
HOWLAND, COURTNEY W. Women and Religious Fundamentalism. In: Askin, Kelly D.,
Koenig, Dorean M., eds. Women and International Human Rights Law. Vol. I, Ardsley:
Transnational Publishers Inc., 1999, pp. 533621
HYLTON, DANIEL N. Default Breakdown: The Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties
Inadequate Framework on Reservations. 27 Vanderbilt Journal of Transnational Law 1994,
pp. 419451
IMBERT, PIERRE-HENRI. La question des rserves dans la dcision arbitrale du 30 juin 1977 relative la dlimitation du plateau continental entre la rpublique franaise et le Royaume-Uni
de Grand-Bretagne et dIrlande du nord. XXIV AFDI 1978, pp. 2958
IMBERT, PIERRE-HENRI. A loccasion de lentre en vigueur de la Convention de Vienne sur le
droit des traits. Rexions sur la pratique suivie par le secrtaire gnrale des Nations Unies
dans lexercice de ses fonctions de dpositaire. XXVI AFDI 1980, pp. 524541
IMBERT, PIERRE-HENRI. Reservations and Human Rights Conventions. VI Human Rights
Review 1981, pp. 2860
JACOBSON, ROBERTA. The Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women.
In: Alston, Philip, ed. The United Nations and Human Rights: A Critical Appraisal. Oxford:
Clarendon Press, 1992, pp. 444472
JALAL, AYESHA. The Convenience of Subservience: Women and the State of Pakistan.
In: Kandiyoti, Deniz, ed. Women, Islam and the State. Philadelphia: Tample University
Press, 1991, pp. 77114
JENEFSKY, ANNA. Permissibility of Egypts Reservations to the Convention on the Elimination
of all Forms of Discrimination against Women. 15 Maryland Journal of International Law
and Trade 1991, pp. 199233
JENNINGS, R.Y. Recent Cases on Automatic Reservations to the Optional Clause. 7 ICLQ
1958, pp. 349366
JOHNSON-ODIM, CHERYL. Common Themes, Different Contexts: Third World Women and
Femenism. In: Mohanty, Chandra Talpade, Russo, Ann, Torres, Lourdes, eds. Third World
Women and the Politics of Feminism. Bloomington, Indianapolis: Indiana University Press,
1991, pp. 314327
JOHNSTON, DOUGLAS. Theory, Consent, and the Law of Treaties: A Cross-Disciplinary
Perspective. 12 Australian Year Book of International Law 1992, pp. 109124
JOSEPH, SUAD. Elite Strategies for State-Building: Women, Family; Religion and State in Iraq
and Lebanon. In: Kandiyoti, Deniz, ed., Women, Islam and the State. Philadelphia: Tample
University Press, 1991, pp. 176200
JOSEPH, SUAD. Women and Politics in the Middle East. In: Joseph, Suad, Slyomovics, Susan,
eds. Women and Power in the Middle East. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press,
2001, pp. 3440
JOUANNET, EMMANUELLE. Universalism and Imperialism: The True-False Paradox of
International Law? 18 European Journal of International Law 2007, pp. 379407
KABEER, NAILA. The Quest for National Identity: Women, Islam and the State in Bangladesh.
In: Kandiyoti, Deniz, ed. Women, Islam and the State. Philadelphia: Tample University
Press, 1991, pp. 115143
KALAMKARYAN, R.A. K voprosu o dopustimosti formulirovaniya ogovorok soglasno venskoy konvenzii o prave meshdunarodnih dogovorov 1969g. Gosudarstvo i pravo 1998, N10, pp. 8893
KLIN, WALTER. Die Vorbehalte der Trkei zu ihrer Erklrung gem. Art. 25 EMRK. 14
EuGRZ 1987, pp. 421429
KLIN, WALTER. Menschenrechtsvertrge als Gewhrleistung einer objektiven Ordnung.
In: Aktuelle Probleme des Menschenrechtsschutzes (Current Problems of Human Rights
252
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Protection), Berichte der Deutschen Gesellschaft fr Vlkerrecht, Band 33, Heidelberg: C.F.
Mller Juristischer Verlag, 1994, pp. 948
KAMALI, MOHAMMAD HASHIM. Islamic Law in Malaysia: Issues and Developments. 4 Yearbook
of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 19971998, pp. 153179
KAMMERHOFER, JORG. Uncertainity in the Formal Sources of International Law: Customary
International Law and Some of Its Problems. 15 European Journal of International Law
2004, pp. 523553
KANDIYOTI, DENIZ. Reections on the Politics of Gender in Muslim Societies: From Nairobi to
Beijing. In: Afkhami, Mahnaz, ed. Faith and Freedom: Womens Human Rights in the
Muslim World. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1995, pp. 1932
KAPPELER, DIETRICH. Praxis der Depositre multilateraler Staatsvertrge gegenber
Vorbehalten. 20 Schweizerisches Jahrbuch fr internationales Recht 1963, pp. 2140
KARAM, AZZA M. Women, Islamism and State: Dynamics of Power and Contemporary
Feminisms in Egypt. In: Afkhami, Mahnaz, Friedl, Erika, eds. Muslim Women and the
Politics of Participation: Implementing the Beijing Platform. Syracuse: Syracuse University
Press, 1997, pp. 1828
KAUFMAN HEVENER, N. An Analysis of Gender Based Treaty Law: Contemporary Developments
in Historical Perspective. 8 HRQ 1986, pp. 7088
KEARNEY, RICHARD D., DALTON, ROBERT E. The Treaty on Treaties. 64 AJIL 1970, pp. 495561
KELLER, LINDA M. The Convention on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women:
Evolution and (Non)Implementation Worldwide. 27 Thomas Jefferson Law Review 2004,
pp. 3543
KENNEDY, DAVID. The Twentieth-Century Discipline of International Law in the United
States. In: Sarat, Austin, Garth, Bryant, Kagan, Robert A., eds. Looking Back at Laws
Century. Ithaca, London: Cornell University Press, 2002, pp. 386433
KHALIQ, URFAN. Beyond the Veil? An Analysis of the Provisions of the Womens Convention
in the Law as Stipulated in Shariah. 2 Buffalo Journal of International Law 1995,
pp. 147
KNOP, KAREN. Re/Statements: Feminism and State Sovereignty in International Law.
3 Transnational Law and Contemporary Problems 1993, pp. 293344
KNOP, KAREN. Why Rethinking the Sovereign State is Important for Womens International
Human Rights Law. In: Cook, R. J., ed. Human Rights of Women. National and International
Perspectives. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1994, pp. 153164
KRISCH, NICO. International Law in Times of Hegemony: Unequal Power and the Shaping of
the International Legal Order. 16 European Journal of International Law 2005,
pp. 369408
KOH, JEAN KYONGUN. Reservations to Multilateral Treaties: How International Legal Doctrine
Reects World Vision. Harvard International Law Journal 1982, pp. 71107
KORKELIA, KONSTANTIN. New Challenges to the Regime of Reservations under the International
Covenant on Civil and Political Rights. 13 EuJIL 2002, pp. 437477
KOSKENNIEMI, MARTTI. The Future of Statehood. 32 Harvard International Law Journal 1991,
pp. 397410
KHNER, ROLF. Vorbehalte und Auslegende Erklrungen zur Europischen Menschenrechtskonvention. Die Problematik des Art. 64 MRK am Beispiel der schweizerischen auslegenden Erklrung zu Art. 6 Abs. 3 lit. e MRK. 42 ZaRV 1982, pp. 5892
KHNER, ROLF. Die <auslegende Erklrung> der Schweiz zu Art. 6, Abs. 3 lit. e der
Europischen Menschenrechtskonvention. 43 ZaRV 1983, pp. 828833
KUNNEMANN, ROLF. A Coherent Approach to Human Rights. 17 HRQ 1995, pp. 323342
LACEY, NICOLA. Feminist Legal Theory and the Rights of Women in: Knop, Karen, ed.
Gender and Human Rights, Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2004, pp. 1355 (IX, 254 p.)
LAU, MARTIN. Pakistan- Abdul Waheed v. Asma Jehangir (the Saima Waheed Case). 3
Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 1996, pp. 518531
LAUTERPACHT, HERSCH. Some Possible Solutions to the Problem of Reservations to Treaties.
In: The Grotius Society Transactions for the Year 1953, London, Vol. 39, 1954, pp. 97118
BIBLIOGRAPHY
253
254
BIBLIOGRAPHY
MENKE, CHRISTOPH. Ability and Faith: On the Possibility of Justice. 27 Cardozo Law Review
2005, pp. 595612
MERON, THEODOR. Enhancing the Effectiveness of the Prohibition of Discrimination against
Women., 84 AJIL 1990, pp. 213217
MERRY, SALLY ENGLE. Changing Rights, Changing Culture. In: Cowan, Jane K., Dembour,
Marie-Benedicte, Wilson, Richard A., eds. Culture and Rights: Anthropological Perspectives.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001, pp. 3155
MERTUS, JULIE, GOLDBERG, PAMELA. A Perspective on Women and International Human Rights
After the Vienna Declaration: The Inside/Outside Construct. 26 New York University
Journal of International Law and Politics 1994, pp. 201234
MICHAELSON, JAY. In Praise of the Pound of Flesh: Legalism, Multiculturalism, and the
Problem of the Soul. 6 Journal of Law in Society 2005, pp. 98153
MIGLIORINO, LUIGI. Effeti giuridici delli obieczioni a riserve incompatibili con loggetto e lo
scopo del trattato. 77 Rivista di Diritto Internazionale 1994, pp. 635654
MIKHAIL, JOHN. Islamic Rationalism and the Foundation of Human Rights. In: Soeteman,
Arend, ed. Pluralism and Law: Proceedings of the 20th IVR Congress, Global Problems,
Vol. 3, March 2005, pp. 6170
MINOR, JULIE A. An Analysis of Structural Weaknesses in the Convention on the Elimination
of All Forms of Discrimination Against Women. 24 Georgia Journal of International and
Comparative Law 1994, pp. 137153
MITCHELL, RUTH. Family Law in Algeria Before and After the 1404/1984 Family Code.
In: Gleave, Robert, Kermeli, E., eds. Islamic Law: Theory and Practice. London, New York:
I.B. Tauris, 1997, pp. 194204
MODOOD, TARIQ. Cultural Diversity and Racial Discrimination in Employment Selection.
In: Hepple, Bob, Szyszczak, Erika M., eds. Discrimination: The Limits of Law. London:
Mansell, 1992, pp. 227239
MOHANTY, CHANDRA TALADE. Under Western Eyes: Feminist Scholarship and Colonial
Discourses. In: Mohanty, Chandra Talpade, Russo, Ann, Torres, Lourdes, eds. Third World
Women and the Politics of Feminism. Bloomington, Indianapolis: Indiana University Press,
1991, pp. 5180
MOLLER OKIN, SUSAN. Inequalities Between the Sexes in Different Cultural Contexts.
In: Nussbaum, Martha C., Glover, Johnathan, eds. Women, Culture, and Development:
A Study of Human Capabilities. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1995, pp. 274297
MOLYNEUX, MAXINE. The Law, the State and Socialist Policies with Regard to Women; the
Case of the Peoples Democratic Republic of Yemen. 19671990 In: Kandiyoti, Deniz, ed.
Women, Islam and the State. Philadelphia: Tample University Press, 1991, pp. 237271
MONTGOMERY, JONATHAN. Legislating for a Multi-faith Society: Some Problems of Special
Treatment. In: Hepple, Bob, Szyszczak, Erika M., eds. Discrimination: The Limits of Law.
London: Mansell, 1992, pp. 193213
MOORS, ANNELIES. Debating Islamic Family Law: Legal Texts and Social Practices. In:
Meriwether, Margaret L., Tucker, Judith E., eds. Social History of Women and Gender in the
Middle East. Westview Press, 1999, pp. 141175
MORGAN-FOSTER, JASON. Third Generation Rights: What Islamic Law Can Teach the
International Human Rights Movement. 8 Yale Human Rights and Development Law
Journal 2005, pp. 67116
MOSLER, HERMANN. The International Society as a Legal Community. 140 RdC 1973 (III), pp.
1320
MOUNTIS, ELENE G. Cultural Relativity and Universalism: Reevaluating Gender Rights in
a Multicultural Context. 15 Dickinson Journal of International Law 1996, pp. 113150
NAJJAR, FAUZI M. Egypts Laws of Personal Status. 10 Arab Studies Quarterly 1988,
pp. 319344
NARAIN, VRINDA. Womens Rights and the Accommodation of Difference: Muslim Women
in India. 8 Southern California Review of Law and Womens Studies. 1998, pp. 4372
NAVEH, IMMANUEL. The Tort of Injury and Dissolution of Marriage at the Wifes Initiative in
Egyptian Mahkamat Al-Naqd Rulings. 9 Islamic Law and Society 2001, pp.1641
BIBLIOGRAPHY
255
256
BIBLIOGRAPHY
BIBLIOGRAPHY
257
SCHABAS, WILLIAM A. Invalid Reservations to the International Covenant on Civil and Political
Rights: Is the United States Still a Party? XXI Brooklyn Journal of International Law
1995/1996, pp. 277325
SCHABAS, WILLIAM A. Reservations to the Convention on the Rights of the Child. 18 HRQ
1996, pp. 472491
SCHABAS, WILLIAM A. Reservations to the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Discrimination against Women and the Convention on the Rights of the Child. 3 William
and Mary Journal of Women and the Law 1997, pp. 79112
SCHACHT, JOSEPH. Problems of Modern Islamic Legislation. 12 Studia Islamica 1960,
pp. 99129
SCHACHTER, OSKAR. The Obligation to give Effect to the Covenant on Civil and Political
Rights. 73 AJIL 1979, pp. 402405
SCHACHTER, OSKAR. The Obligation to Implement the Covenant in Domestic Law. In: Henkin,
Louis, ed. The International Bill of Rights: The Covenant on Civil and Political Rights. New
York: Columbia University Press, 1981, pp. 311331
SCHACHTER, OSKAR. The Decline of the Nation-State and its Implications for International
Law. 36 Columbia Journal of Transnational Law 1997, pp. 723
SCHLAG, PIERRE. Survey of Deconstruction. 27 Cardozo Law Review 2005, pp. 741752
SCHMIDT, MARKUS G. Reservations to United Nations Human Rights Treaties the Case of the
Two Covenants. In: Gardner, J.P., ed. Human Rights as General Norms and a States Rights
to Opt Out: Reservations and Objections to Human Rights Conventions. London: British
Institute of International and Comparative Law, 1997, pp. 2034
SCHOOLEY, KIMBERLY YOUNCE. Cultural Sovereignty, Islam and Human Rights Toward
a Communitarian Revision. 25 Cumberland Law Review 1994, pp. 651714
SCHPP-SCHILLING, HANNA BEATE. Das Frauenrechtsbereinkommen ein wirksames
Instrument fr die weltweite Gleichberechtigung und Gleichstellung von Frauen? In: Baum,
G., Riedel, E., Schaefer, M., eds. Menschenrechtsschutz in der Praxis der Vereinten Nationen.
Baden-Baden: Nomos Verlagsgesellschaft, 1998, pp. 155166
SCHPP-SCHILLING, HANNA BEATE. Effektivitt von Abkommen zum Schutz der Menschenrechte
am Beispiel der CEDAW. 74 Die Friedens-Warte 1999, pp. 204228
SCHWELB, EGON. The Law of Treaties and Human Rights. 16 Archiv des Vlkerrechts
19741975, pp. 127
SCOTT, ROBERT E., STEPHAN, PAUL B. Self-Enforcing International Agreements and the Limits
of Coercion in: Columbia Law and Economics Working Paper No. 246. Available at SSRN:
http://ssrn.com/abstract=511362
SEN, AMARTYA. Gender Inequality and Theories of Justice. In: Nussbaum, Martha C., Glover,
Johnathan, eds. Women, Culture, and Development: A Study of Human Capabilities. Oxford:
Clarendon Press, 1995, pp. 259273
SHAHEED, FARIDA. Networking for Change: The Role of Womens Groups in Initiating
Dialogue on Womens Issues. In: Afkhami. Mahnaz, ed. Faith and Freedom: Womens
Human Rights in the Muslim World. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press, 1995, pp. 78103
SHAPIRO-LIBAI, NITZA. The Concept of Sex Equality: The UN Decade for Women. 11 Israel
Yearbook on Human Rights 1981, pp. 106148
SHELTON, DINAH. State Practice on Reservations to Human Rights Treaties. Canadian
Yearbook of Human Rights 1983, pp. 205234
SHELTON, DINAH. Issues Raised by the United States Reservations, Understandings and
Declarations. In: Hannum, Hurst, Fischer, D., eds. United States Ratication of the
International Covenants on Human Rights. Irvington-on-Hudson: Transnational Publishers,
1993, pp. 269277
SHELTON, DINAH. The Human Rights of Women in the Jurisprudence of Permanent International
Tribunals. Askin, Kelly D., Koenig, Dorean M., eds. Women and International Human
Rights Law. Vol. II, Ardsley: Transnational Publishers Inc., 2000, pp. 3150
SHELTON, DINAH L. Soft Law. In: Handbook of International Law, Routledge Press,
Forthcoming 2008 Available at SSRN: http://ssrn.com/abstract=1003387
258
BIBLIOGRAPHY
SHERMAN, EDWARD F. The U.S. Death Penalty Reservation to the International Covenant on
Civil and Political Rights: Exposing the Limitations of the Flexible System Governing
Treaty Formation. 29 Texas International Law Journal 1994, pp. 6993
SIDDIQUI, MONA. Law and Desire for Social Control: An Insight into the Hana Concept of
Kafaa with Reference to the Fatwa Alamgiri (16641672). In: Yamani, Mai, ed. Feminism
and Islam: Legal and Literary Perspectives. New York: New York University Press, 1996,
pp. 4968
SIDDIQUI, MONA. The Concept of Wilaya in Hana Law: Authority versus Consent in al-Fatwa
al-Alamgiri. 5 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle Eastern Law 19981999, pp. 171185
SIMMA, BRUNO. From Bilateralism to Community Interest in International Law. 250 RdC
1994 (VI), pp. 217384
SIMMA, BRUNO. International Human Rights and General International Law: A Comparative
Analysis. Collected Courses of the Academy of European Law, 1993, The Protection of
Human Rights in Europe, Vol. IV Book 2, The Hague, Boston, London: Martinus Nijhoff
Publishers, 1995, pp. 153236
SIMMA, BRUNO. Reservations to Human Rights Treaties-Some Recent Developments. In:
Hafner, G., Loibl, G., Rest, A., Sucharipa-Behrmann, L., Zemanek, K., eds. Liber Amicorum
Professor Seidl-Hohenveldern in honour of his 80th birthday. Leiden: Kluwer Law
International, 1998, pp. 659682
SINGER, MICHAEL. Relativism, Culture, Religion, and the Identity. In: Howland, Courtney W.,
ed. Religious Fundamentalisms and the Human Rights of Women. New York: St. Martins
Press, 1999, pp. 4554
SINGH, KIRTI. Obstacles to Womens Rights in India. In: Cook, Rebecca J., ed. Human Rights
of Women: National and International Perspectives. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania
Press, 1994, pp. 375396
SIRAJ, MEHRUN. Women and the Law: Signicant Developments in Malaysia. 28 Law and
Society Review 1994, pp. 561572 (comments pp. 573581)
SOHBI, SAEED HASSON. Womens Rights in Yemen Today. 6 Yearbook of Islamic and Middle
Eastern Law 19992000, pp. 7686
SOUTHARD, Jo LYNN. Protection of Womens Human Rights under the Convention on the
Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against Women. 8 Pace International Law
Review 1996, pp. 190
STACKHOUSE, MAX L. Human Rights and Public Theology: The Basic Validation of Human
Rights. In: Gustafson, Carrie, Juviller, Peter, eds. Religion and Human Rights: Competing
Claims? Armonk, London: M.E. Sharpe, pp. 1230
STARK, BARBARA. International Human Rights Law, Feminist Jurisprudence, and Nietzsches
Eternal Return: Turning the Wheel. 19 Harvard Womens Law Journal 1996, pp. 169199
STARK, BARBARA. Women and Globalisation: The Failure and Postmodern Possibilities of
International Law. 33 Vanderbilt Journal of Transnational Law 2000, pp. 503571
STARKE, JOSEPH GABRIEL. Monism and Dualism in the Theory of International Law. 17 BYbIL
1936, at p. 66
STEIN, TED L. The Approach of a Different Drummer: The Principle of the Persistent Objector
in International Law. 26 Harvard International Law Journal 1985, pp. 457482
STONE PETERS, JULIE. Reconceptualizing the Relationships Between Religion, Women, Culture,
and Human Rights. In: Gustafson, Carrie, Juviller, Peter, eds. Religion and Human Rights:
Competing Claims? Armonk, London: M.E. Sharpe, pp. 140144
STOWASSER, BARBARA. The Status of Women in Early Islam. In: Hussain, Freda, ed. Muslim
Women. London, Sydney: Croom Helm, 1984, pp. 1143
STOWASSER, BARBARA. Gender Issues and Contemporary Quran Interpretation. In: Yazbeck
Haddad, Yvonne, Esposito, John L., eds. Islam, Gender and Social Change. Oxford, New
York: Oxford University Press, 1998, pp. 3044
SUBEDI, SURYA P. Protection of Women against Domestic Violence: The Response of
International Law. European Human Rights Law Review 1997 (6), pp. 587606
BIBLIOGRAPHY
259
260
BIBLIOGRAPHY
BIBLIOGRAPHY
261
INDEX
264
Convention on the Rights of the Child, 105,
109, 110
custody and guardianship of children, 69f,
137, 142, 146, 149, 160, 162, 167,
172, 174
custom, 4, 6, 29
national legislation, 155, 163, 164
source of international law, 13f, 19f
dialogue, 5, 76, 113, 171, 198, 200, 202,
208f, 222
discrimination, 28
prohibition of in the CEDAW, 26ff
prohibition of in the CERD, 26f
protective measures, 27f, 35, 42
diversity, 4, 8, 52, 56, 72, 76, 220f
dissolution of marriage
CEDAW, 38
Islam, 67ff
national legislation of Muslim States,
132f, 136f, 140, 141ff, 144, 145f, 148f,
153, 156, 159, 161f, 167, 170f
domestic law
invocation in reservation, 143, 181f, 186,
188ff, 196, 198f, 214f
international law, 169, 213ff
dualism, 213
dynamism
reservations, 112f, 198, 208f, 222
treaty, 111ff
Islamic law, 72ff, 221
Effect of Reservations on the Entry
into Force of the American Convention
on Human Rights, Advisory Opinion of
the Int.-Am.CHR, 100f
Egypt, 37, 38, 139ff
conclusion of marriage, 63, 141
Constitution, 140, 217
Constitutional court, 218
dissolution of marriage, 69, 139,
140, 141ff
reservations to the CEDAW, 116, 124f,
139f, 200f, 217
enforcement
human rights law, 2f, 10, 15, 41
international law, 14
European Commission of Human
Rights (EuComHR), 96, 97,
100, 102
European Convention on Human Rights
(EuCHR), 99, 102, 185, 221
European Court of Human Rights
(EuCtHR), 92, 100, 102, 104, 185
INDEX
Fadel, Mohammad, 62
family, 17, 25, 29, 37ff, 56, 57, 128f,
163, 171f
feminism, 6, 41, 43f, 49, 74, 220
external critique, 8, 11
human rights law, 8ff
internal critique, 8ff, 42
legal theories, 7ff
qh, 46, 47f
freedom of movement, 37f, 127, 147f,
155f, 161
general principles of law, 20
globalization, 1, 5
guardian
of a woman in Muslim tradition, 60ff,
132, 148, 151, 153
of children, 69f, 137, 146, 149, 160,
162, 167, 172, 174
hadith, 49f, 58, 59
Hallaq, Wael B., 49, 51, 53, 54, 55
Hana school of law, 53, 54, 63,
71, 73, 169
conclusion of marriage, 60, 61f
custody of children, 69
dissolution of marriage, 67f, 142
Hanbali school of law, 53, 54, 169
conclusion of marriage, 60
head of family, 66f, 131f, 163, 172
Higgins, Rosalyn, 84, 85, 87
Human Rights Committee (HRC), 105
General Comment No 24, 87, 103ff,
185, 207
Trinidad and Tobago case, 104,
106f, 215
human rights treaties
enforcement, 2f, 10, 15
special character, 2, 95ff,
112, 221
Ibadi community, 46, 165
ijma, 49, 50f
ijtihad, 53ff
closure of gate of, 55
incompatible reservations, 80, 86, 106, 181f,
187f, 195f, 197, 205, 214f
effects, 87f, 99, 100f, 104, 107, 108f,
183f, 197f
human rights treaties, 99, 187f
powers of treaty-monitoring bodies, 86f,
104, 107f
procedure for determination, 84ff
inheritance rights, 136, 154f
INDEX
265
reservations to the CEDAW, 117, 120,
124f, 152, 154, 201
Loizidu case, 100f
Malaysia, 154ff, 176, 201
dissolution of marriage, 72, 156
inheritance rights, 154f
Islamic Family Law Act, 156
polygamy, 156f
reservations to the CEDAW, 117, 118ff,
121f, 123, 126, 155f, 219
Maldives, 157ff, 177
Family Law, new, 158
reservations to the CEDAW, 117,
118, 120, 121, 157f
Maliki school of law, 53, 54, 169
conclusion of marriage, 60, 62
custody of children, 69
marriage
dissolution, 38, 67ff, 136f, 140, 141ff,
144, 145f, 148f, 151, 153, 156, 159,
161f, 167, 170f
right to, 38, 60ff, 132, 141, 145, 151,
153, 170
rights and obligations of spouses
during, 39, 63ff, 141, 145, 151, 153,
155f, 173f
Mauritania, 159f
Constitution, 159
Nationality Act, 160
Personal Status Code, 159
reservations to the CEDAW, 117,
159, 160
methodology, 7ff, 51f, 55, 72ff
modication of reservations, 92ff, 111, 208
practice within the context of the
CEDAW, 118ff, 194, 198
reactions of States to, 93f, 190, 193ff
monism, 213
Morocco, 38, 66f, 72, 160ff
conclusion of marriage, 63
dissolution of marriage, 161f
Family Code, new, 66f, 161f
Law of Personal Status, old, 63, 66, 161f
Nationality Code, 161
reservations to the CEDAW, 117, 124f,
127, 160f, 161f, 201
Muhammad, prophet, 46f, 49f, 66
mujtahid, 52, 53ff
muqallid, 53f
municipal law
international law, 213ff
international law in Muslim States, 169,
214, 215f
266
New Economic Order, 23f
Niger, 163ff
Civil Code, 164
Customary Law Act, 164
Family Code, project, 164
reservations to the CEDAW, 117, 122,
124f, 128, 163, 165
non-discrimination principle, 10, 21, 26f, 30
notication, 178ff, 190f
object and purpose test (see also
compatibility test, incompatible
reservations), 79f, 99, 187f, 195f,
205, 214f
objection, 76, 89ff, 95, 108, 178ff, 201, 205
late, 190ff, 197
notion, 90, 178ff
effects, 90, 183f
time-limit rule, 89, 99, 109, 110, 111, 190,
192, 198, 208
objectivity, 1, 8, 11f
obligations
appropriate measures language, 28, 30,
33, 36, 37, 38, 175, 222
means/result, 28, 30, 32f, 175ff, 222
Oman, 46, 117, 165
opposability school, 82f, 84f, 88
the other, 11
Pakistan, 165ff
Constitution, 165f, 167
dissolution of marriage, 167
reservation to the CEDAW, 118,
165f, 167
Pan-American system, 78f
permissibility school, 82ff, 88, 101,
104, 198
polygamy, 11, 57, 70f, 129, 133f, 138, 141,
156f, 159, 171, 172
positionality, 12
process, 72ff, 76, 208f, 223f
protective measures, 17, 27f, 35, 42
public/private distinction, 9f, 16f, 27, 128f
qiyas, 49, 50
Quran, 46f, 52, 57, 58, 61, 68, 70, 71, 73
interpretation, 47, 49f, 58, 64ff
verse about polygamy, 70f
reciprocity, 111
human rights treaties, 95ff, 222
international law, 2, 14
reservations, 89, 95, 97f
religion and custom/tradition, 4, 6, 11, 155
INDEX
reservation, 75ff
acceptance, 81ff, 89, 95, 97f, 178, 197
admissibility, 81ff
domestic (national) law, 102, 143, 181f,
186, 188ff, 196, 198f
EuCHR, 102, 185
general, 102, 109, 110, 185ff
General Comment No 24, 87, 103ff,
185, 207
human rights treaties, 95ff
incompatible, 80, 83, 84ff, 87f, 99, 100f,
104, 106, 107, 108f, 181f, 183f, 187,
195f, 197f, 205, 214f
Int.-Am.CHR, 97, 100f
modication, 92ff, 111, 118ff, 193ff,
198, 208
notion, 76f
object and purpose test, 79ff, 98, 181f,
187f, 195f
objection to, 89ff, 95, 103, 109, 111,
178ff, 183f, 190ff, 192, 196f, 201, 205
opposability, 81ff
permissibility, 81ff
reactions of States, 89ff, 177ff
reciprocity, 89, 95, 97f
validity, 81ff
temporary nature, 110, 175, 189, 208f
theories, 78ff
withdrawal of, partial, 93, 110, 150, 154,
161f, 170
withdrawal of, total, 159, 177, 190
reservations regime, 6, 75ff, 221, 224
functions, 94ff, 97f
Reservations to the Convention on the
Prevention and Punishment of the
Crime of Genocide, ICJ Advisory
Opinion, 79ff, 87
Restrictions to the Death Penalty, Advisory
Opinion of the Int.-Am.CHR, 97
right to
choose a place of residence, see also
freedom of movement, 37f, 127, 172
choose a profession, 141, 149
free movement, 37f, 147f
marry, 60ff, 132, 141, 145, 151, 153, 170
political participation, 31ff, 150,168
rights
civil and political, 9f, 16f
conicts between, 10, 27
economic and social, 10, 16, 18
Saudi Arabia, 64, 167ff, 176
political rights of women, 150, 168
reservations to the CEDAW, 118
267
INDEX